The Two Babylons
The Two Babylons
The Two Babylons
THE LIBRARY
of
VICTORIA UNIVERSITY
Toronto
THE TWO BABYLONS
OR
BY THE LATE
popular Edition
LONDON
S. W. PARTRIDGE & CO.
8 & 9 PATERNOSTER ROW
1903
i4-5
4-9ZI9
19-&-32-
TO THE RIGHT HONOURABLE
PRIMEVAL ANTIQUITY ;
IS RESPECTFULLY INSCRIBED
THE AUTHOR.
CONTENTS.
......
. . . . . . vii
.........
PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION, viii
INTRODUCTION, 1
CHAPTER
DISTINCTIVE CHARACTER OF THE Two SYSTEMS,
I.
... .4
CHAPTER II.
Section I.
II.
Trinity in Unity,
The Mother and
....
OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
Section I. ...
........
Christmas and Lady-day,
FESTIVALS.
.91
II. Easter,
III. ...
The Nativity of St. John,
IV. The Feast of the Assumption, . . .
.113
.125
103
CHAPTER IV.
... .129
.144
III. The Sacrifice of the Mass, . . 156
IV. Extreme Unction, . .165
,, V. Purgatory and Prayers for the Dead, . . .167
vi CONTENTS.
CHAPTER V.
CHAPTER VI.
. .
206
219
CHAPTER VII.
II.
The Great Red Dragon.
The Beast from the Sea,
.
.
... .
225
242
,,
III. The Beast from the Earth,
IV. The Image of the Beast, . . ... . . 256
263
V. The Name of the Beast, the Number
Head of the Papacy,
of his
...
Name the Invisible
269
... ......
.
.......
CONCLUSION, . 282
APPENDIX, 291
INDEX, . . . . 325
NOTE BY THE EDITOK.
vi i
PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION.
*****
could not have ventured to anticipate as a thing capable of attain
ment.
the author would make. The first has reference to the Babylonian
legends. intended
These were primarily to commemorate facts
all
"
And now, in sending forth this new Edition, the author hopes he
X PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION.
can say that, however feebly, he has yet had sincerely an eye, in the
whole of his work, to the glory of that name that is above every
"
all tribes,and peoples, and kindreds, and tongues, of this sinful and
groaning earth, are yet destined to be blest. In the prosecuting of
his researches, he has found his own faith sensibly His
quickened.
prayer is, that the good Spirit of all grace may bless the work for
the same end to all who may read it.
PKEFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION.
IN giving the Third Edition of this work to the public, I have little
else to do than to express my acknowledgments to those to whom
I am under obligations, for enabling me thus far to bring it to a
successful issue.
To Mr. Murray, of Albemarle Street, London; Mr. Vaux, of the
British Museum and
;
Messrs. Black and Messrs. Chambers, Edin
required wide, and, at the same time, minute research, and the
consultation of works of a very recondite character ; and, taking also
into view not only the very limited extent of my own library, but
the distance of my abode from any of the great libraries of the land,
where rare and expensive works may be consulted, the due prepara
tion of such a work was attended with many difficulties. The
kindness of friends, however, has tended wonderfully to remove these
difficulties. From all quarters I have met with the most disinter
ested aid, of which I retain a grateful and pleasing remembrance.
To enumerate the different sources whence help has come to me,
in the prosecution of my task, would be impossible. There are three
individuals, however, who stand out from the rest whom I cannot
pass over without notice. Each of them has co-operated (and all
spontaneously), though in different ways, in enabling me thus far to
accomplish my task, and their aid has been of the most essential
importance.
Xll PREFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION.
but his greatest work is his Catalogue of Ecliptic Stars. This (which was
published by aid from the Government grant placed at the disposal of the Royal
Society, and which the Royal Irish Academy honoured with their Cunningham
Medal) contains upwards of 60,000 stars down to the twelfth magnitude, of which
very few had been previously discovered."
Mr. Cooper was a Fellow of the Royal Society and of the Royal Astronomical
Society, as well as a Member of the Royal Irish Academy. He represented the
"
County of Sligo in Parliament for many years, and was a kind and good landlord,
making great exertions to educate and improve his numerous tenantry. His
personal qualities were of a high order. Blameless and fascinating in private life,
Jie was a sincere Christian, no mean
poet, an accomplished linguist, an exquisite
musician, and possessed a wide and varied range of general information." See
Obituary Notice in the Proceedings of the Royal Society, 1864.]
PKEFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION. xiii
no fewer than 240* out of the 270 works contained in the accom
panying list of "Editions," many of them of large extent, all of
which are in his own and not a few of which he has
possession,
procured for the purpose of verification. His object and mine has
been, that the argument might be fairly stated, and that error might,
as far as possible, be avoided. How far this object has been attained,
the references and list of "Editions" will enable each reader
competent to the task, to judge for himself. For myself, however,
I cannot but express my high sense of the incalculable value of the
service which the extraordinary labours of my kind and disinterested
friend have rendered to the cause of universal Protestantism.
But while making mention of my obligations to the living, I may
not forget what I owe to the dead. To him whose name stands on
the front of this work, I am, in some respects, pre-eminently
indebted, and I cannot send forth this edition without a tribute of
affection to his It is not for me to speak of his wit,
memory.
and the brilliancy of his conversational powers, that captivated all
who knew him ; of the generous unselfishness of his nature, that
made him a favourite with every one that came in contact with him ;
or of the deep interest that he took in the efforts at present being
made for improving the dwellings of the working-classes, and
especially of those of his own estate, as well as in their moral and
religious improvement. But I should be liable to the charge of
ingratitude if I contented myself, in the circumstances, with the mere
formal dedication, which, though appropriate enough while he was
alive, is now no more
so when he is gone.
The time and
the circumstances in which his active friendship was
extended to me, made it especially welcome. His keen eye saw at a
glance, as soon as the subject of this work came under his attention,
the importance of it ; and from that time forward, though the work
was then in its most rudimentary form, he took the deepest interest
in it. He did not wait till the leading organs of popular opinion, or
the great dispensers of fame, should award their applause ; but,
prompted by his own kindly feeling, he spontaneously opened up a
correspondence with me, to encourage and aid me in the path of
discovery on which I had entered.
His own studies qualified him to appreciate the subject and
pronounce upon it. For many years he had deeply studied the
*
The whole number of works actually examined by the eminent individual
above referred to, in connection with this subject, is upwards of 260 but space
;
does not permit me to avail myself of anything like the full amount of the new
evidence that has been gathered. The above number, therefore, refers only to the
works actually quoted in this edition.
XIV PREFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION.
Druidical system, which, with the haze and mystery around it, and
with its many points of contact with the patriarchal
religion, had a
strange and peculiar fascination for him. For the elucidation of this
subject, he had acquired most valuable works ; and what he possessed
he was most to communicate.
ready In the prosecution of
my inquiries, hadImet with what to me seemed insuperable
difficulties. He had only to know of this to set himself to remove
them; and the aid derived from him was at once precious and
opportune ; for through his acquaintance with Druidism, and the
works received from him, difficulties disappeared, and a flood of
light irradiated the whole subject. If, therefore, the reader shall
find the early history of superstition, not only in our native land,
but in the world at large, set in a new and instructive light in these
pages, he must know that he is essentially indebted for that to Lord
John Scott. In one, who was an entire stranger, being
thus
prompted to render efficient assistance to me
such a time, I could
at
not but thankfully recognise the hand of a gracious Providence ; and
when I reflect on the generous, and humble, and disinterested
kindness with which the four years correspondence between us was
conducted on his part, a correspondence in which he always
treated me with as much confidence as if I had been his friend and
brother, I cannot but feel warm and tender emotions, mingling with
the thoughts that spring up in my bosom. Friendship such as his
was no ordinary friendship. His memory, therefore, must be ever
dear tome the remembrance of his kindness ever fragrant.
;
Unexpected was the stroke now, alas near three years ago
!
For years back he had found the emptiness of the world, and had
begun to seek the better part. His religion was no sentimental
religion ; his fear of God was not taught by the commandment of
men. His faith was drawn directly from the inspired fountain of
Divine truth. From the time that the claims of God to the homage
of his heart had laid hold on him, the Word of God became his
grand study, and few men have I ever known who held with a more
firm and tenacious grasp the great truth that the "Word of God, and
that Word alone, is the light and rule for the guidance of Christians ;
and that every departure from that Word, alike on the part of
Churches and individuals, implies, as he himself expressed it, "going
off the rails," and consequently danger of the highest kind. As his
religion was Scriptural, so it was spiritual. In one of his earliest
PKEFACE TO THE THIRD EDITION. XV
pasture ;
and in accepting the dedication of my work, he particularly
stated, that the interest that he took in it was not as a mere matter
of literary curiosity, but as being "fitted to teach great truths,
which the world is not very willing to learn." This, in the connec
tion in which he wrote it, evidently had special reference to the
great doctrine of "regeneration." His mind was deeply penetrated
with a sense of the majesty of God, and the awfulness of our " "
He read it, and re-read it, and continually carried it about with him,
till it was entirely worn away. Under the impressions springing
from such views of sin, he said to an intimate friend, when in the
enjoyment of health and vigour, is easy to die the death of a
"It
gentleman, but that will not His death was not the death of a
do."
himself had specially referred, to dwell more than ever before on the
necessity not merely of having hope towards God, but of having
the question of personal acceptance decisively settled, and the
and mother, son and daughter, were all engulfed in a watery grave.
My letter concluded with these words In view of such a solem
"
nising event, well may we say, What is man? But oh, man is
great, ifhe walks with God, and the divine words are fulfilled in his
experience, God, who commanded the light to shine out of darkness,
hath shined in our hearts, to give the light of the knowledge of the
glory of God in the face of Jesus Christ. That this may be more
and more the experience of your Lordship, is my earnest desire."
When I wrote this I had not the least suspicion that I was writing
to a dying man. But so it proved to be. Only a few days after he
received this, he was smitten with his death-sickness. From his
dying bed he sent me a kindly memorial of his affectionate remem
brance, and in his painful illness he manifested the supporting power
of faith, when faith has respect to the truth as it is in Jesus, and
Aminianus .Marcelliniis,
Anacreon, . . ...
......
Apocalypse, Original Interpretation,
......
Apocriphi (Diodati, Bibbia),
.....
Apollodorus,
.....
Apuleius,
Arati Phcenomena,
......
......
Aristophanes,
.....
Arnobius,
.....
Athenasus,
- .....
Athenagoras,
Asiatic Journal,
.... Researches,
.....
Augustini Opera Ornnia,
Augustine s City of God, with Lud. Vives s Comment.,
.....
Aulus
.....
Gellius,
Aurelius Victor,
Ausonii Opera,
....
Barker aud Ainsworth
.....
Barker s Hebrew Lexicon,
s Lares and Penates of Cilicia,
.....
Baronii Annales,
Bede
Begg
s
s
Works,
Handbook of Popery,
.....
Bell
......
-
s (Robert) Wayside Pictures,
(John) Italy,
.
....
Berosus,
Betham s Etruria Celtica,
Gael and Cymbri, .... xvii
XV111 EDITIONS OF WORKS QUOTED OR REFERRED TO.
....
Cambridge,
Blakeney s Popery in its Social Aspect, Edinburgh, S. D.
Borrow s Gipsies, London, 1843
Bower s Lives of the Popes, London, 1750
....
.
.....
London,
Caesar, London, 1770
Callirnachus, Utrecht, 1697
Catechismus Romanus, 1659
Catlin
Catullus,
s
Cedreni Compendium,
.....
American Indian*, .
Lyons,
London,,
Utrecht,
Bonn,
1841
1659
1838
Charlotte Elizabeth s Personal Recollections, London, 1847
Sketches of Irish History, Dublin, 1844
Chesney s
Chronicon Paschale,
Chrysostomi Opera Omnia,
....
Euphrates Expedition,
.
London,
Bonn,
Paris,
1850
1832
1738
Ciceronis Opera Omnia, Paris, 1740
Clemens Alexandrinus, Opera, Wurtzburg, 1778
Clemens Protrepticos, Lutetian, 1629
Clericus (Johannes) de Chaldaeis et de Saboeis, Amsterdam, 1700
Clinton, Fasti Hellenici, Oxford, 1834
Codex Theodosiarms, Bonn, 1842
Coleman s Hindoo Mythology,
Cory s Fragments, .... London,
London,
1832
1732
Courayer s Council of Trent,
Covenanter, Irish,
Crabb s
Mythology,
....
....
London,
Belfast,
London,
1736
1862
1854
Crichton s Scandinavia, Edinburgh, 1838
Cumrnianug (Patr. Patrum), . Paris, 1851
Daubuz s
Symbolical Dictionary, London, 1842
D Aubigne s Reformation, Brussels, 1839
David s
Davies s Druids,
Davis s (Sir J. F. ) China,
....
Antiquites Etrusques, &c., . Paris,
London,
London,
1787
1809
1857
....
.
.....
Paris,
1682
Epiphanii Opera Omnia,
Eunapius,
Euripides, .....
Eusebii Preepar. Evangel.,
Cologne,
Geneva,
Cambridge,
Lcipsic,
1616
1694
1842
EDITIONS OF WORKS QUOTED OR REFERRED TO. XIX
.....
Venice,
1529
.....
Chron., Basle,
Vita Constantin., Paris, 1677
Eustace 1813
.....
s Classical Tour, London,
Eutropius (Rom. Hist. Script. Grgec. Min.), Frankfort, 1590
....
.
1853
Evangelical Christendom,
Do.
Firmicus, Julius,
Flores Seraphici,
do.,
......
......
London,
London,
Oxford,
c Colonies
1855
1678
1640
Furniss
Fuss s
s
......
\Agrippince,
London,
Oxford,
f Dublin,
s.
1840
1850
D.
... ( London, S.
1848-49
D.
......
Gaussen s Daniel, Paris,
Gebelin, Monde Primitif, 1773-82
.....
Paris,
Gesenii Lexicon, London, 1855
Gibbon
Gibson
s
s
Decline and Fall,
Preservative, .....
.....
Dublin,
London,
1781
1848
Gieseler s Eccles. History,
Gill s Commentary, ....
...... Edinburgh, 1846
London, 1852-54
Gillespie s Sinim,
Golden Manual, .... Edinburgh, 1854
London, 18fO
Gregorii Nazianzeni Opera,
Greswell s Dissertations,
Guizot s European
.....
....
.
Civilisation,
Antwerp,
Oxford,
London,
1612
1837
1846
Hanmer s to translation of
Chroriographia
..... appended
;
......
Hay s Sincere Christian,
Heathen Mythology,
Herodoti Historia,
Hesiodus, . ...
Hesychii Lexicon,
.....
. . .
Hieronymi Opera,
Hislop
Homer,
s
(Pope s),
Light
.
of
. ....
Prophecy,
Horatius, ....
Horapollo s Hieroglyphics, .
Hue
....
s Voyage dans la Tartarie et Thibet,
....
Humboldt s Mexican Researches,
.
Kurd s
.....
Rites and Ceremonies,
......
Hyde s
Hygini Fabulas,
Irensei Opera, ......
Religio Persarum,
....
Jamblichus on the Mysteries,
Jamieson s Scottish Dictionary,
Jewell (British Reformers), .
Lactantius, .
Cambridge, 1685
Lafitan, Mceurs des Sauvages Americains, .
Paris, 1724
Landseer Sabean Researches,
s London, 1823
Layard s Babylon and Nineveh, London, 1853
Nineveh, .
London, 1849
Livius, .
Amsterdam, 1710
Lorimer s Manual of Presbytery, Edinburgh, 1842
Lucan. de Bell. Civ., Leyden, 1658
Lucianus, .
Amsterdam, 1743
Lucretius, .
Oxford, 1695
Lycophron (Poet. Graec. Min.), Geneva, 1814
Macrobius, . Sanct. Colon. 1521
M Gavin s Protestant, Glasgow, 1850
Maimonides More Nevochim, Basle, 1629
Maitland on the Catacombs, London, 1846
Mallet s Northern Antiquities, London, 1770
Mallet, London, 1847
Manilius, .
Berlin, 1846
Martialis Epigrarnmata, Leijden, 1656
Massy, Memoir of Rev. G., .
London, 1859
Maurice s Indian Antiquities, London (See Note}.
Mede s Works, .
London, 1672
Middleton s Letter from Rome, London, 1741
Milner s Church History, London, 1712
Milton s Paradise Lost, London, 1695
Minutius Felix, .
Leyden, 1672
Missale Romanum, .
Paris, 1677
Do. do., .
Vienna, 1506
Missionary Record of Free Church, .
Edinburgh, 1855
Moor s Hindoo Pantheon, London, 1810
Morgan s (Lady) Italy, London, 1824
Moses of Chorene", .
London, 1736
Miiller s Dorians, .
Oxford, 1830
Mulleri Fragmenta, .
Paris, 1846-51
Newman s Development, London, 1846
Niebuhr s Roman History, .
London, 1855
Nonnus de Phil. Oriental, et Dionysiaca, Leipsic, 1857
Orphic Hymns (Poet. Gra?c.), Paris, 1556
Ouvaroff s Eleusinian Mysteries, London, 1817
EDITIONS OF WOEKS QUOTED OR REFERRED TO. XXI
Ovidii Opera,
Pancarpium Marise,
.....
.... Leyden,
....
.
.....
.
Parson s Japhet,
.....
Pausanias,
Paxton s Illustrations, Geography, .
Persius,
Petri Suavis Polani, Concilium Tridentinum,
Pfeiffer s (Ida) Iceland,
Photii Bibliotheca, ....
Pindarus, .....
Lexeon Synagoge,
Pinkerton
Platonis Opera,
s
....
.....
Voyages,
Plinii Opera,
Plutarchi Opera, ....
Pococke s India in Greece,
Pompeii, ..... .
Pontificale
Do.
Poor Man sManual,
....
Romanum,
....
do.,
....
.
Prisciani Opera,
Proclus in Timaeo,
....
Mexico,
....
Propertius, .....
on Plat. Theology, .
Russell
Ryle s
s Egypt,
(Rev. J.) Commentary,
....
Rome in the Nineteenth Century,
....
.
Suidas,
Symmachi
......
Epistolse,
.....
Tacitus,
s Mystic Hymns of Orpheus,
Taylor
.....
Pausauias
Tertulliani Opera,
....
Theocritus (Poet. Graec. Min.),
.....
Theopompus
.....
(Mullet),
Thevenot, Voyages,
Thuani Historia,
Todd s Western India, ....
Toland s Druids,
Tooke s Pantheon,
Trimen s Architecture,
.....
....
. .
Turner s Anglo-Saxons,
Usher s Sylloge, .....
Valerius Maximus,
Vaux ..... . .
......
s Nineveh,
Antiquities of the British Museum,
Virgilius,
....
....
Vitruvius de Architectura,
Walpole s Ansayri,
Wilkinson s Egyptians,
.....
Vossius de Idololatria,
....
Williams s Missionary Enterprises, .
Zonaras,
Zosimus (Rom. Hist. Script. Graeci. Min.), .
otherwise stated, the 1st, 2nd, and 7th vols. are 1806 the 3rd, 1794 the 4th
; ;
FIG.
1.
2.
Woman
Do.
with Cup from Babylon,
do. from Rome,
....
...
PAGE
5
6
3. Triune Divinity of Ancient Assyria, . . 17
4. Do. do. of Pagan Siberians, . . . .17
Goddess Mother and Son, from Babylon, 19
.....
5. .
......
6. do. do. .
12.
13.
14.
Three-Horned Cap
Tyrian Hercules, .....
of Vishnu,
.37
36
38
.....
.
.....
. . .
.....
. . .
s
47
48
Head,
24. Baal-Berith, ...
Lord of the Covenant,
60
70
25.
26.
27.
....
Dove and Olive Branch of Assyrian Juno,
....
Circe, the Daughter of the Sun,
The Yule Log,
. .
.38
79
98
28. Roman Emperor Trajan burning Incense to Diana, . . 100
29. Egyptian God Seb, and Symbolic Goose, . . .101
30. The Goose of Cupid, . . . 102
31. Sacred Egg of Heliopolis, and Typhon s Egg, 108
....
.
FIG. PAGE
37. Ceres, Mother of Bar,
"
......
38. Sun- Worship in Egypt, . . . . . .
Heart,"
....
. . .
.....
. . . .
51.
.........
49. Maltese God with similar Mitre,
50. The Sacrificial Mitre of Chinese Emperor, as Pontifex Maximus of the
Nation,
Babylonian Crosier, . . . . . .217
216
216
.....
54. . .
.....
58. Virgin
59. The Serpent of ^Esculapius, and the Fly-Destroying Swallow, the
Symbol of Beel-zebub, from Pompeii, 279
60. Popish Image of with bandaged Globe of Paganism,
"God,"
. . 301
61. Supreme Divinity of Ancient Persia, with bands of Cybele, "the
Binder with Cords," . 303
THE TWO BABYLONS.
And upon her forehead was a name written, MYSTERY, BABYLON TEE GREAT,
"
INTRODUCTION.
THERE is this great difference between the works of men and the
works of God, that the same minute and searching investigation,
which displays the defects and imperfections of the one, brings out
also the beauties of the other. If the most finely polished needle on
which the art of man has been expended be subjected to a micro
scope, many inequalities, much roughness and clumsiness, will be
seen. But if the microscope be brought to bear on the flowers of
the field, no such result appears. Instead of their beauty diminish
ing, new beauties and still more delicate, that have escaped the
naked eye, are forthwith discovered beauties that make us appre
;
was not arrayed like one of these." The same law appears also in
comparing the Word of God and the most finished productions of
men. There are spots and blemishes in the most admired produc
tions of human genius. But the more the Scriptures are searched,
the more minutely they are studied, the more their perfection
appears; new beauties are brought into light every day; and the
discoveries of science, the researches of the learned, and the labours
of infidels, all alike conspire to illustrate the wonderful harmony of
all the parts, and the Divine beauty that clothes the whole.
If this be the case with Scripture in general, it is especially the
case with prophetic Scripture. As every spoke in the wheel of
Providence revolves, the prophetic symbols start into still more
bold and beautiful relief. This is very strikingly the case
with the prophetic language that forms the groundwork and
corner-stone of the present work. There never has been any
difficultyin the mind of any enlightened Protestant in identify
ing the woman sitting on seven mountains," and having on her
"
forehead the name written, Mystery, Babylon the Great," with the
"
B
2 INTRODUCTION.
refers to it: "Rome has both become the most beautiful (city) in
the world, and alone has surrounded for herself seven heights with a
wall."*
Propertius, in the same strain, speaks of it (only adding
another trait, which completes the Apocalyptic picture) as The "
lofty city on seven hills, which governs the whole world, Its "f
xvii. 18). To call Rome the city the seven hills" was by its "of
prefect of the city, and the last acting Pagan Pontifex Maximus, as
the Imperial substitute, introduces by letter one friend of his to
another, he calls him De septem montibus virum "
"a
Now, "||
while this characteristic of Rome has ever been well marked and
denned, has always been easy to show, that the Church which has
it
its and headquarters on the seven hills of Rome might most
seat
appropriately be called Babylon," inasmuch as it is the chief seat
"
Babylon the Great than this. /It has been known all along that
Popery was baptised Paganism but God is now making it manifest, ;
that the Paganism which Rome has baptised is, in all its essential
elements, the very Paganism which prevailed in the ancient literal
Babylon, when Jehovah opened before Cyrus the two-leaved gates of
brass, and cut in sunder the bars of iron.
That new and unexpected light, in some way or other, should be
cast, about this very period, on the Church of the grand Apostacy,
the very language and symbols of the Apocalypse might have
prepared us to anticipate. In the Apocalyptic visions, it is just
before the judgment upon her that, for the first time, John sees the
*
Scilicet et rerura facta est pulcherrima Roma
Septemqueuna sibi muro circumdedit arces.
Georg., lib. ii. v. 534, 535.
f Septem urbs alta jugis toto quae prsesidet orbi. Lib. iii. Eleg. 9, p. 721.
t Diis, quibus septem placuere colles. Carmen Seculare, v. 7, p. 497.
Septein dominos montes. Lib. iv. Ep. 64, p. 254.
|| SYMMACHUS, lib. ii. Epis. 9, Note, p. 63.
INTRODUCTION. 3
Apostate Church with the name Babylon the Great written upon
"
golden CUP."
To drink of mysterious beverages," says Salverte, was indispensable
"
4
DISTINCTIVE CHARACTER OF THE TWO SYSTEMS. 5
;;
flour. f From the ingredients avowedly and from the nature used>
MOTHER "
of the
gods,1I with such atrocious rites
as identified her with Yenus,
the MOTHER of all impurity,
and raised the very city where
she had reigned to a bad eminence among the nations, as the
grand seat at once of idolatry and consecrated prostitution, ff Thus
*
EUSEBE SALVERTE, Des Sciences Occultes, p. 259.
t GEBELIN, Monde Primitif, vol. iv. p. 319.
J See SALVERTE, pp. 258, 259.
AMMIANUS MARCELLINUS, lib. xiv. cap. 6, p. ad. 26, and lib. xxiii. cap. 6, pp.
371, 374, compared with JUSTINUS, Historia, lib. i. cap. 1, p. 615, and EUSEBIUS S
Chronicle, vol. i. pp. 40, 70, &c. Eusebius says that Ninus and Semiramis
reigned in the time of Abraham. See vol. i. p. 41, and vol. ii. p. 65. In regard
to the age of Semiramis, see further in note on next page.
Chronicon Paschale, vol. i. p. 65.
|| IT HESIOD, Thcogonia, v. 453, p. 36.
*
The shape of the cup in the woman s hand is the same as that of the cup
held in the hand of the Assyrian kings ; and it is held also in the very same
manner. See VAUX, pp. 243, 284.
[A correspondent has pointed out a reference by Pliny to the cup of Semiramis,
which fell into the hands of the victorious Cyrus. Its gigantic proportions must
have made it famous among the Babylonians and the nations with whom they had
intercourse. It weighed fifteen talents, or 1200 pounds. PLINII, Hist. Nat., lib.
xxxiii. cap. 15.]
ft HERODOTUS, Historia, lib. i.
cap. 199, p. 92 ; QUINTUS CURTIS, v. 1.
6 DISTINCTIVE CHARACTER OF
Woman
in the Apocalypse, with the golden cup in her hand, and
"
a cross, and in her right a CUP, with the legend around her, Sedet "
super universum" "The whole world is her seat."f (Fig. 2.) Now
the period when Semiramis lived, a period when the patriarchal
faith was still fresh in the minds of men, when Shem was still alive,]:
to rouse the minds of the faithful to rally around the banner for the
truth and cause of God, made it hazardous all at once and publicly
Fig. 2.
be punished by the judge ; for I should have denied the God that is
above (Job xxxi. 26-28). Now if this was the case in Job s day,
"
much more must it have been the case at the earlier period when the
Mysteries were instituted. It was a matter, therefore, of necessity,
if idolatry were to be brought in, and especially such foul idolatry as
the Babylonian system contained in its bosom, that it should be done
stealthily and in secret. f Even though introduced by the hand of
power, it might have produced a revulsion, and violent attempts
might have been made by the uncorrupted portion of mankind to
put it down j and at all events, if it had appeared at once in all its
hideousness, it would have alarmed the consciences of men, and
defeated the very object in view. That object was to bind all man
kind in blind and absolute submission to a hierarchy entirely
dependent on the sovereigns of Babylon. In the carrying out of this
scheme, all knowledge, sacred and profane, came to be monopolised
by the priesthood, % who dealt it out to those who were initiated in
exactly as they saw fit, according as the interests
"
the "
Mysteries
of the grand system of spiritual despotism they had to administer
might seem to require. Thus the people, wherever the Babylonian
system spread, were bound neck and heel to the priests. The priests
were the only depositaries of religious knowledge they only had the ;
true tradition, by which the writs and symbols of the public religion
could be interpreted ; and without blind and implicit submission to
them, what was necessary for salvation could not be known. Now
compare this with the early history of the Papacy, and with its
spirit and modus operandi throughout, and how exact was the
coincidence Was it in a period of patriarchal light that the
!
period of still greater light that that unholy and unscriptural system
commenced, that has found such rank development in the Church of
Rome. It began in the very age of the apostles, when the primitive
Church was in its flower, when the glorious fruits of Pentecost were
everywhere to be seen, when martyrs were sealing their testimony
for the truth with their blood. Even then, when the Gospel shone
so brightly, the Spirit of God bore this clear and distinct testimony
by Paul THE MYSTERY OF INIQUITY DOTH ALREADY WORK
:
" "
*
That which I have rendered "and" is in the authorised version "or,"
but
there no reason for such a rendering, for the word in the original is the very
is
same as that which connects the previous clause, "and my heart," &c.
f*
It will be seen by-and-by what cogent reason there was, in point of fact, for
the profoundest secrecy in the matter. See Chapter II.
EuBiBE SALVEBTE, DCS Sciences Occultes, passim.
8 DISTINCTIVE CHAEACTER OF
(2 Thess. ii. 7). That system of iniquity which then began it was
divinely foretold was to issue in a portentous apostacy, that in due
time would be awfully "revealed," and would continue until it
should be destroyed "by the breath of the Lord s mouth, and
consumed by the brightness of His coming (Ibid. v. 8). But at its "
In this place
I lay my
bones. Spare your tears, dear husband and daughter, and
believe that it is forbidden to weep for one who lives in God."* A
prayer here and there for the dead May God refresh thy spirit,"
"
proves that even then the Mystery of iniquity had begun to work ;
but inscriptions such as the above equally show that it had been
slowly and cautiously working, that up to the period to which they
refer, the Roman Church had not proceeded the length it has done
"
now, of absolutely
"
v. 16), which implies that the priest should confess to the people, as
well as the people to the priest, if either should sin against the other.
This could never have served any purpose of spiritual despotism ;
and therefore, Rome, leaving the Word of God, has had recourse to
the Babylonian system. In that system, secret confession to the
priest, according to a prescribed form, was required of all who
were admitted to the Mysteries ; and till such confession had been
"
"
that darkness covered the earth, and gross darkness the people."
"
It was the very same claim, in the hands of the Roman priests, that
ushered in the dark ages, when, through many a dreary century, the
Gospel was unknown, and the Bible a sealed book to millions who
bore the name of Christ. In every respect, then, we see how justly
Rome bears on its forehead the name, Mystery, Babylon the Great." "
*
Light of Prophecy, Appendix, Note C.
initiated there was a difference.
t Even among the Some were admitted only
the Greater were for a favoured few. WILKINSON S
" "
OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
Mysteries occupied in
"
these
countries, and that, whatever circumstantial diversities there might
be, in all essential in the different
these " "
Mysteries
respects
countries were the same. the language of Jeremiah,
Now, as
already quoted, would indicate that Babylon was the primal source
from which all these systems of idolatry flowed, so the deductions
of the most learned historians, on mere historical grounds, have led
to the same conclusion.* From Zonarast we find that the con
current testimony of the ancient authors he had consulted was to
this effect; for, speaking of arithmetic and astronomy, he says: "It
is said that these came from the Chaldees to the Egyptians, and thence
to the Greeks." If the Egyptians and Greeks derived their arithmetic
and astronomy from Chaldea, seeing these in Chaldea were sacred
sciences, and monopolised by the priests, that is sufficient evidence
that they must have derived their religion from the same quarter.
Both Bunsen and Layard in their researches have come to substanti
ally the same result. The statement of Bunsen is to the effect that the
religious system of Egypt was derived from Asia, and "the primitive
empire in Babel." J Layard, again, though taking a somewhat more
favourable view of the system of the Chaldean MAGI, than, I am
persuaded, the facts of history warrant, nevertheless thus speaks of
that system : Of the great antiquity of this primitive worship
"
principle which places in the East the centre of science and civilisa
tion."!
^thus we have evidence that Egypt and Greece derived
their religion from Babylon, we have equal evidence that the
religious system of the Phenicians came from the same source.
Macrobius shows that the distinguishing feature of the Phenician
idolatry must have been imported from Assyria, which, in classic
writers, included Babylonia. The worship of the Architic Venus,"
"
says he,
does now among the Phenicians."
omnipotent Deity, who created all things, seems to have been the
universal belief ; and tradition taught men the same notions on this
subject, which, in later times, have been adopted by all civilised
nations."! "The Gothic religion," says Mallet, "taught the being
of a supreme God, Master of the Universe, to whom all things were
submissive and obedient." (Tacit, de Morib. Germ.) The ancient
Icelandic mythology calls him "the Author of every thing that
existeth, the eternal, the living, and awful Being the searcher into ;
whence all proceeded ; that by which they live when born, and that
to which all must return In the Institutes of Menu,"
"
"
(Yeda).
he is characterised as He whom the mind alone can perceive ;
"
whose essence eludes the external organs, who has no visible parts,
who exists from eternity .... the soul of all beings, whom no
being can comprehend." In these passages, there is a trace of
||
Nay, not merely had the ancient Hindoos exalted ideas of the
natural perfections of God, but there is evidence that they were well
aware of the gracious character of God, as revealed in His dealings
with a lost and guilty world. This is manifest from the very name
*
JAMBLICHUS, sect. viii. chap. ii. MACBOBIUS, Saturnalia, p. 65.
t WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 176.
$ MALLET S Northern Antiquities, vol. i.
pp. 78, 79.
MOOR S Pantheon, p. 4.
|| Col. VANS KENNEDY S Hindoo Mythology, p. 270.
TRINITY IN UNITY. 15
the procreation of all nature. The great Brahm is the WOMB of all
the various forms which are conceived in every natural womb."
How could such language ever have been applied to The supreme "
Brahm, the most holy, the most high God, the Divine being, before all
other gods ; without birth, the mighty Lord, God of gods, the uni
versal Lord," but from the connection between Rahm "the womb"
||
and Rahm "the merciful one" Here, then, we find that Brahm is
1
and Gracious One (Exod. xxxiv. 6), was known at the same time
"
by the Word of His power." After what has now been said, any one
"
who consults the "Asiatic Researches," vol. vii. p. 293, may see
that it is in a great measure from a wicked perversion of this Divine
title of the One Living and True God, a title that ought to have been
so dear to sinful men, that all those moral abominations have come
that make the symbols of the pagan temples of India so offensive to
the eye of purity. f
So utterly idolatrous was the Babylonian recognition of the Divine
unity, that Jehovah, the Living God, severely condemned His own
people for giving any countenance to it They that sanctify them
"
selves, and purify themselves in the gardens, after the rites of the
ONLY ONE,J eating swine s flesh, and the abomination, and the
mouse, shall be consumed together" (Isaiah Ixvi. 17). In the unity
of that one Only God of the Babylonians, there were three persons,
and to symbolise that doctrine of the Trinity, they employed, as the
discoveries of Layard prove, the equilateral triangle, just as it is
well known the Romish Church does at this day. In both cases
* The word in the
original of Exodus is the very same as rahm, only in a
participial form.
f While such the meaning of Brahin, the meaning of Deva, the generic name
is
for
"
God
in India, is near akin to it.
"
faith, the visible splendour of the deified luminary might be suggested by the name.
But there is reason to believe that "Deva" has a much more honourable origin,
and that it really came originally from the Chaldee, Thav, "good," which is also
legitimately pronounced Thev, and in the emphatic form is Theva or Thevo, The "
I The words in our translation are, "behind one tree," but there is no word in
the original for "tree" and it is admitted by Lowth, and the best orientalists,
;
that the rendering should be, "after the rites of Achad," i.e., "The Only One.
I am aware that some object to making Achad signify, The Only One," on "
" "
the ground that it wants the article. But how little weight is in this, may be
seen from the fact that it is this very term Achad," and that without the article,
"
that is used in Deuteronomy, when the Unity of the Godhead is asserted in the
most emphatic manner, Hear, O Israel, Jehovah our God is one Jehovah," i.e.,
"
only Jehovah." When it is intended to assert the Unity of the Godhead in the
II
strongest possible manner, the Babylonians used the term "Adad." Macrobii
Saturnalia, lib. i. cap. 23, p. 73.
LAYARD S Babylon and Nineveh, p. 605. The Egyptians also used the triangle
as a symbol of their "triform divinity." See MAURICE S Indian Antiquities,
vol. iv. p. 445. London, 1794.
TRINITY IN UNITY. 17
The Papacy has in some of its churches, as, for instance, in the
monastery of the so-called Trinitarians of Madrid, an image of the
Triune God, with three heads on one body.* The Babylonians had
something of the same. Mr. Layard, in his last work, has given a
specimen of such a triune divinity, worshipped in ancient Assyria f
(Fig. 3). The accompanying cut (Fig. 4) of such another divinity,
worshipped among the Pagans of Siberia, is taken from a medal in
the Imperial Cabinet of St. Petersburg, and given in Parson s
"Japhet."J
The three heads are differently arranged in Layard s
specimen, but both alike are evidently intended to symbolise the
same great truth, although all such representations of the Trinity
Fig. 4.
extract from the Dublin Catholic Layman, a very able Protestant paper, describing
a Popish picture of the Trinity, recently published in that city, it will be seen that
something akin to this mode of representing the Godhead is appearing nearer
home : At the top of the picture is a representation of the Holy Trinity.
"
We
beg to speak of it with due reverence. God the Father and God the Son are
represented as a MAN with two heads, one body, and two arms. One of the heads
is like the ordinary pictures of our Saviour. The other is the head of an old man,
surmounted by a triangle. Out of the middle of this figure is proceeding the Holy
Ghost in the form of a dove. We think it must be painful to any Christian
mind, and repugnaot to Christian feeling, to look at this figure." Catholic
Layman, 17th July, 1856.
t Babylon and Nineveh, p. 160. said that the plural form of the
Some have
name of God, in the Hebrew no argument for the doctrine of
of Genesis, affords
plurality of persons in the Godhead, because the same word in the plural is applied
to heathen divinities. But if the supreme divinity in almost all ancient heathen
nations was triune, the futility of this objection must be manifest.
$ Japhet, p. 184.
18 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
But the
hieroglyphic meaning of the circle is evidently different. A circle in
Chaldea was zero; and zero also signified "the seed."
Therefore,
according to the genius of the mystic system of Chaldea, which was
to a large extent founded on double meanings, that which, to the
eyes of men in general, was only zero, a circle," was understood by "
the initiated to signify zero, "the seed." Now, viewed in this light,
the triune emblem of the supreme Assyrian divinity shows clearly
what had been the original patriarchal faith. First, there is the
head of the old man ; next, there is the zero, or circle, for the "
seed;" and lastly, the wings and tail of the bird or dove show ;||
(Jacob) had power with God yea, he had power over the Angel, and prevailed
: ;
he wept and made supplication unto him he found him in Bethel, and there he :
spake with us ; even the Lord God of Hosts The Lord is his memorial." ;
In our own language we have evidence that Zero had signified a circle among
the Chaldeans for what is Zero, the name of the cypher, but just a circle ? And
;
whence can we have derived this term but from the Arabians, as they, without doubt,
had themselves derived it from the Chaldees, the grand original cultivators at once
of arithmetic, geometry, and idolatry ? Zero, in this sense, had evidently come from
the Chaldee, zer, from which, also, no doubt, was derived the
"to
encompass,"
Babylonian name for a great cycle of time, called a saros." (BuNSEN, vol. i. pp.
"
711, 712.) As he, who by the Chaldeans was regarded as the great "Seed," was
looked upon as the sun incarnate (see chap. iii. sect, i.), and as the emblem of the
sun was a circle (BuNSEN, vol. i. p. 335, and p. 537, No. 4), the hieroglyphical
relation between zero, "the circle," and zero, "the seed," was easily established.
From the statement in Gen. i. 2, that "the Spirit of God fluttered on the face
||
of the deep
"
(for that is the expression in the original), it is evident that the dove
had very early been a Divine emblem for the Holy Spirit.
THE MOTHER AND CHILD. 19
Holy Ghost. While this had been the original way in which Pagan
idolatry had represented the Triune God, and though this kind of
representation had survived to Sennacherib s time, yet there is
evidence that, at a very early period, an important change had taken
place in the Babylonian notions in regard to the divinity and that ;
the three persons had come to be, the Eternal Father, the Spirit of
God incarnate in a human mother, and a Divine Son, the fruit of that
incarnation.
While this was the theory, the first person in the Godhead was
Fig. 6.
Fig. 5.
From Babylon.*
From India.f
alone,"|
that is, in point of fact, he was not worshipped by the
multitude at all. The same thing is strikingly illustrated in India
at this day. Though Brahma, according to the sacred books, is
*
From KITTO S Illustrated Commentary, vol. iv. p. 31.
+ Indrani, the wife of the Indian god Indra, from Asiatic Researches, vol. vi.
p. 393.
JAMBLICHUS, On the Mysteries, sect. viii. chap. iii.
20 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
the Great Mother, with the babe at her breast, 1 or as Irene, the !!
** and even in
goddess of Peace, with the boy Plutus in her arms ;
Thibet, in China, and Japan, the Jesuit missionaries were astonished
to find the counterpart of Madonnaff and her child as devoutly
*
WARD S
View of the Hindus, apud KENNEDY S Researches into Ancient and
Modem Mythology, p. 196.
t Osiris, as the child called most frequently Horns. Bunsen, vol. i. p. 438,
compared with pp. 433, 434.
^ KENNEDY S Hindoo Mythology, p. 49. Though Iswara is the husband of Isi,
he is also represented as an infant at her breast. Ibid. p. 338, Note.
DYMOCK S Classical Dictionary, "Cybele"
and "Deoiua."
CICERO S Works, De Divinatione, lib. ii. cap. 41, vol. iii. p. 77.
||
in EUSEBII Prceparatio Evangelii, lib. ix. cap. 41, both titles "Belus and Beltis
"
are conjoined as the titles of the great Babylonian god and goddess. The Greek
Belus, as representing the highest title of the Babylonian god, was undoubtedly
Baal, "The Lord." Beltis, therefore, as the title of the female divinity, was
equivalent to
"
and that the peculiar title of Cybele or Rhea at Rome, was Domina or The "
(OviD, Fasti, lib. iv. v. 340.) Further, there is strong reason to believe,
Lady."
that Athena, the well-known name of Minerva at Athens, had the very same
meaning. The Hebrew Adon, "The Lord," is, with the points, pronounced
Athon. We
have evidence that this name was known to the Asiatic Greeks,
from whom idolatry, in a large measure, came into European Greece, as a name
of God under the form of "A than." Eustathius, in a note on the Periergesis
of
Dionysius (v. 915, apud BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 140), speaking of local names in
the district of Laodicea, says that Athan "
is god."
The feminine of Athan,
"
The
THE CHILD IN ASSYRIA. 21
Mother."
It was from the son, however, that she derived all her glory and
her claims to deification. That son, though represented as a child
in his mother s arms, was a person of great stature and immense
bodily powers, as well as most fascinating manners. In Scripture
he is referred to (Ezek. viii. 14) under the name of Tammuz, but he
is commonly known among classical writers under the name of
sin. This lamented one, exhibited and adored as a little child in his
mother s arms, seems, in point of fact, to have been the husband of
Semiramis, whose name, Ninus, by which he is commonly known in
classical history, literally signified
"
of her husband, under the name of Ninus, or The Son," was "
*
SEBVIUS, in Georg., lib. i. vol. ii. p. 197, and in ^Eneid, lib. vi. vol. i. p. 400.
f From Nin, in Hebrew, A Son."
"
As such Rhea was called by the Greeks, Ammas ; see HESYCHIUS, sub voce
"
Ammas." Ammas is evidently the Greek form of the Chaldee Ama, Mother." "
introd\ices a boy singing the song of Linus, while the vintage is going on (Jlias,
lib. xviii. v. 569-571, pp. 725, 726), and the Scholiast says that this song was sung
in memory of Linus, who was torn in pieces by dogs. The epithet "dogs," applied
to those who tore Linus in pieces, is evidently used in a mystical sense, and it will
afterwards be seen how thoroughly the other name by which he is known
Narcissus identifies him with the Greek Bacchus and Egyptian Osiris. In
some places in Egypt, for the song of Linus or Osiris, a peculiar melody seems to
have been used. Savary says that, in the temple of Abydos, "the priest repeated
the seven vowels in the form of hymns, and that musicians were forbid to enter
it."
Letters, p. 566. Strabo, whom Savary refers to, calls the god of that temple
Memnon, but we learn from Wilkinson, vol. iv. pp. 344, 345, that Osiris was the
great god of Abydos, whence it is evident that Memnon and Osiris were only
different names of the same divinity. Now the name of Linus or Osiris, as the
"husband of his mother," in Egypt, was Kamut (BUNSEN, vol. i. pp. 373, 374).
When Gregory the Great introduced into the Church of Rome what are now
called the Gregorian Chants, he got them from the Chaldean mysteries, which
had long been established in Rome; for the Roman Catholic priest, Eustace,
admits that these chants were largely composed of Lydian and Phrygian
"
chief seats in later times of those mysteries, of which the Egyptian mysteries
were only a, branch. These tunes were sacred the music of the great god, and
THE CHILD IN ASSYRIA. 23
still further casts light on the fact already noticed, that the Indian
God Iswara is represented as a babe at the breast of his own wife
Isi, or Parvati.
Now, this Ninus, or Son," borne in the arms of the Babylonian
"
epitomised by Justin,
of the ancient manners, incited by a new passion, the desire of
conquest. He was the first who carried on ivar against his neighbours,
and he conquered all nations from Assyria to Lybia, as they were
yet unacquainted with the arts of war." f This account points
directly to Nimrod, and can apply to no other. The account of
Diodorus Siculus entirely agrees with it, and adds another trait
that goes still further to determine the identity. That account is as
follows Ninus, the most ancient of the Assyrian kings men
"
in introducing them Gregory introduced the music of Kamut. And thus, to all
appearance, has it come to pass, that the name of Osiris or Kamut, the husband "
of the mother," is in every-day use among ourselves as the name of the musical
scale for what
;
is the melody of Osiris, consisting of the "seven vowels" formed
into a
*
hymn, but the Gamut ?
The name Assyrians," as has already been noticed, has a wide latitude of
"
meaning among the classic authors, taking in the Babylonians as well as the
Assyrians proper.
f JUSTIN S Trogus Pompeius, Hist. Rom. Script., vol. ii.
p. 615.
DIODORDS, Eibliotheca, lib. ii. p. 63. ,
24 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
them
for making him the first of the Assyrian kings.
Theconclusions deduced from these testimonies of ancient history
are greatly strengthened by many additional considerations. In
Gen. x. 11, we find a passage, which, when its meaning is properly
understood, casts a very steady light on the subject. That passage,
as given in the authorised version, runs thus Out of that land :
"
the last degree improbable that Nimrod would have quietly borne so
mighty a rival so near him. To obviate such difficulties as these, it
has been proposed to render the words, out of that land he "
other tribes, and every new victory paved the way for another, he
subdued all the peoples of the East."* Thus, then, Nimrod, or
Ninus, was the builder of Nineveh ; and the origin of the name
of that city, as "the habitation of Ninus," is accounted for,f and
light is thereby, at the same time, cast on the fact, that the name of
the chief part of the ruins of Nineveh is Nimroud at this day. J
Now, assuming that Ninus is Nimrod, the way in which that
assumption explains what is otherwise inexplicable in the statements
of ancient history greatly confirms the truth of that assumption itself.
Ninus is said to have been the son of Belus or Bel, and Bel is said to
have been the founder of Babylon. If Ninus was in reality the first
king of Babylon, how could Belus or Bel, his father, be said to be the
founder ofit 1 Both might very well be, as will appear if we con
who was Bel, and what we can trace of his doings. If Ninus
sider
was Nimrod, who was the historical Bel 1 He must have been Gush ;
firmavit. Cum
accessione virum fortior, ad alios transiret, et proxima quaeque
victoria instrumentum sequentis esset totius Orientis populos subegit."
f Nin-neveh, "The habitation of Ninus."
+ LAYARD S Nineveh and its Remains, vol. i. p. 7, et passim.
See GEEGORIDS TURONENSIS, De rerum Franc., lib. i., apud, BRYANT, vol. ii.
synonymous with Ham, or Khem, "The burnt one." As "Her" also, like Ham,
signified "The hot or burning one," this name formed a foundation for covertly
identifying Ham
with the "Sun," and so deifying the great patriarch, after whose
name the land of Egypt was called, in connection with the sun. Khem, or Ham,
in his own name was openly worshipped in later ages in the land of Ham
(BuNSKN, vol. i. p. 373) ; but this would have been too daring at first. By
means of "Her," the synonym, however, the way was paved for this. "Her" is
the name of Horus, who is identified with the sun (BuNSEN, vol. i. p. 507), which
shows the real etymology of the name to be from the verb to which I have traced
it. Then, secondly, "Mes" is from Mesheh
last radical, which is
(or, without the
omissible, see PARKHURST, sub Mesh, draw forth"
voce, p. In
416), "to
Egyptian, we have Ms in the sense of "to bring forth" (BuNSEN, vol. i., Hierogly-
phical Signs, Append., b. 43, p. 540), which is evidently a different form of the
same word. In the passive sense, also, we find Ms used (BuNSEN, Vocabulary,
Appendix i. p. 470, at bottom, &c., "Ms .... born"). The radical meaning of
Mesheh in Stockii Lexicon, is given in Latin Extraxit," and our English word "
tween the generic meaning of this word and birth. This derivation will be found
to explain the meaning of the names of the Egyptian kings, Harnesses and Thoth-
mes, the former evidently being "The son of Ra," or the Sun for Harnesses is ;
TTCUS (AMMIANUS MARCELLINUS, lib. 17, cap. 4, p. 162) ; the latter, in like
*H\ioi>
manner, being The son of Thoth." For the very same reason Her-mes is the
"
ment of Hyginus shows that he was known as the grand agent in that
movement which produced the division of tongues. His words are
these For many ages men lived under the government of Jove
:
"
[evidently not the Roman Jupiter, but the Jehovah of the Hebrews],
without and without laws, and all speaking one language.
cities
But Mercury interpreted the speeches of men (whence an
after that
interpreter is called Hermeneutes), the same individual distributed
the nations. Then discord began."* Here there is a manifest
enigma. How could Mercury or Hermes have any need to interpret
the speeches of mankind when they all spake one language ? To "
"
ringleader in the scheme for building the great city and tower of
Babel and, as the well-known title of Hermes,
;
the interpreter of "
the gods," would indicate, had encouraged them, in the name of God,
to proceed in their presumptuous enterprise, and so had caused the
language of men to be divided, and themselves to be scattered abroad
on the face of the earth. Now look at the name of Belus or Bel,
given to the father of Ninus, or Nimrod, in connection with this.
While the Greek name Belus represented both the Baal and Bel of
the Chaldees, these were nevertheless two entirely distinct titles.
These titles were both alike often given to the same god, but they
had totally different meanings. Baal, as we have already seen,
signified "The Lord but Bel signified "The Confounder." When,
;"
then, we read that Belus, the father of Ninus, was he that built or
founded Babylon, can there be a doubt, in what sense it was that the
title of Belus was given to him ? It must have been in the sense of
Bel the "Confounder." And to this meaning of the name of the
Babylonian Bel, there is a very distinct allusion in Jeremiah i. 2,
where it is said "Bel is confounded," that is, "The Confounder is
iii. p. 82.
Me Chaos antiqui nam res sum prisca vocabant. Fasti, lib. i. v. 104, vol. iii.
p. 19.
THE CHILD IN ASSYRIA. 27
the name of a club in Chaldee comes from the very word which
"
"
And
significance will be all the more apparent when the
reader turns to
the Hebrew of Gen. xi. 9, and finds that the very word from which a
club derives its name is that which is employed when it is said, that
in consequence of the confusion of tongues, the children of men were
scattered abroad on the face of all the earth.
"
becomes Hephaizt,|| and hence the origin of the well-known but little
*
The name of Gush is also Khus, for sh frequently passes in Chaldee into s ;
and Khus, in pronunciation, legitimately becomes Khawos, or, without the
digamma, Khaos.
f From Sir WM. BETHAM S Etruscan Literature and Antiquities Investigated,
Plate II., vol. ii. p. 120. 1842. The Etruscan name on the reverse of the above
medal Bel-athri, "Lord of spies," is probably given to Janus, in allusion to his
well-known title "Janus Tuens," which may be rendered "Janus the Seer," or
"All-seeing Janus."
In Prov. xxv. 18, a maul or club is "Mephaitz." In Jer. li. 20, the same
word, without the Jod, is evidently used for a club (though, in our version, it is
rendered battle-axe) for the use of it is not to cut asunder, but to "break in
;
Greek, Bostra ; and Mitzraim, Mestraiin. For last, see BDNSEN, vol. i. pp.
606-609.
H Vulcan, in the classical Pantheon, had not commonly so high a place, but in
Egypt Hephaistos, or Vulcan, was called "Father of the gods."
AMMIANUS
MARCELLINUS, lib. xvii.
28 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
may see the real origin of Vulcan s Hammer, which is just another
name for the club of Janus or Chaos, The god of Confusion ; and " "
How
is the hammer of the whole earth cut asunder
and broken as the tower-building was the first act of open
"
!
Now,
rebellion after the flood, and Gush, as Bel, was the ringleader in it,
he was, of course, the first to whom the name Merodach, The great "
Rebel must have been given, and, therefore, according to the usual
,"*
(Jer. i.
2). The judgment comes upon the Babylonian god according
to what he had done. As Bel, he had the whole earth,
"
confounded"
therefore he is "confounded." As Merodach, by the rebellion he had
stirred up, he had "broken" the united world in pieces; therefore
he himself is "broken in pieces."
So much for the historical character of Bel, as identified with
Janus or Chaos, the god of confusion, with his symbolical club.f
Proceeding, then, on these deductions, it is not difficult to see how it
might be said that Bel or Belus, the father of Ninus, founded Babylon,
while, nevertheless, Ninus or Nimrod was properly the builder of it.
Now, though Bel or Gush, as being specially concerned in laying the
first foundations of Babylon, might be looked upon as the first king,
as in some of the copies of Eusebius s Chronicle he is represented, "
"
yet it is evident, from both sacred history and profane, that he could
never have reigned as king of the Babylonian monarchy, properly so
called; and accordingly, in the Armenian version of the "Chronicle
of Eusebius," which bears the undisputed palm for correctness and
authority, his name is entirely omitted in the list of Assyrian kings,
and that of Ninus stands first, in such terms as exactly correspond
with the Scriptural account of Nimrod. Thus, then, looking at the
fact that Ninus is currently made by antiquity the son of Belus, or
*
Merodach eomes from Mered, to rebel and Dakh, the demonstrative pronoun ;
t While the names Bel and Hephaistos had the origin above referred to, they
were not inappropriate names also, though in a different sense, for the war-gods
descending from Gush, from whom Babylon derived its glory among the nations.
The warlike deified kings of the line of Gush gloried in their power to carry con
fusion among their enemies, to scatter their armies, and to break the earth in
"
pieces
primeval Bel, there is allusion in the inspired denunciations of Jeremiah on Baby
lon. The physical sense also of these names was embodied in the club given to
the Grecian Hercules the very club of Janus when, in a character quite differ
ent from that of the original Hercules, he was set up as the great reformer of the
world, by mere physical force. When two-headed Janus with the club is repre
sented, the two-fold representation was probably intended to represent old Gush,
and young Gush or Nimrod, as combined. But the two-fold representation with
other attributes, had reference also to another Father of the gods," afterwards "
Bel, when we have seen that the historical Bel is Gush, the identity
Nimrod is still further confirmed.
of ISTinus and
But when we look at what is said of Semiramis, the wife of Ninus,
the evidence receives an additional development. That evidence goes
Fig. 8.
Diana of Ephesus.*
conclusively to show that the wife of Ninus could be none other than
the wife of Nimrod, and, further, to bring out one of the grand
characters in which Nimrod, when deified, was adored. In Daniel
*
From KITTO S Illustrated Commentary, vol. v. p. 205.
30 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
xi. 38, we
read of a god called Ala Mahozine* i.e., the "god of fortifi
Who this god of fortifications could be, commentators have
cations."
after the flood (from whence the commencement of the world itself
was often dated) that had towers and encompassing walls, was Baby
lon and Ovid himself tells us that it was Semiramis, the first queen
;
of that city, who was believed to have surrounded Babylon with a "
wall of brick. Semiramis, then, the first deified queen of that city
"J
and tower whose top was intended to reach to heaven, must have been
the prototype of the goddess who first made towers in cities." "
ramis, when deified, was worshipped under the name of Rhea,U there
*
In our version, Ala Mahozim
is rendered alternatively "god of forces," or
"gods protectors." To
the latter interpretation, there is this insuperable objec
tion, that Ala is in the singular. Neither can the former be admitted ; for
Mahozim, or Mauzzim, does not signify "forces," or "armies," but "munitions,"
as it is also given in the margin that is "fortifications." Stockius, in his Lexi
con, gives as the definition of Mahoz in the singular, robur, arx, locus munitus, and
in proof of the definition, the following examples Judges vi. 26, And build an
"
altar to the Lord thy God upon the top of this rock (Mahoz, in the margin
"
"
strong place ;
and Dan. xi. 19, Then shall he turn his face to the fort (Mahoz)
")
"
I Ibid. vol. ii., Mctam., lib. iv., Fab. Pyramus and Thisbe.
A
scholiast on the Periergesis of Dionysius, says Layard (Nineveh and its
Remains, vol. ii. p. 480, Note), makes Semiramis the same as the goddess Artemis
or Despoina. Now, Artemis was Diana, and the title of Despoina given to her,
shows that it was in the character of the Ephesian Diana she was identified with
Semiramis for Despoina is the G-reek for Dornina, The Lady," the peculiar title
;
"
of Rhea or Cybele, the tower-bearing goddess, in ancient Rome. OVID, Fasti, lib.
iv. 340.
||
See LAYARD S Nineveh, &c., vol. ii. pp. 451, 457.
IT See ante, p. 21.
THE CHILD IN ASSYRIA. 31
Bel,"
the Confounder, "
who began the city and tower of Babel, had to leave both unfinished,
this could not refer to him. It could refer only to his son Ninus,
who inherited his father s title, and who was the first actual king of
the Babylonian empire, and, consequently Nimrod. The real reason
that Semiramis, the wife of Ninus, gained the glory of finishing the
fortifications of Babylon, was, that she came in the esteem of the
ancient idolaters to hold a preponderating position, and to have
attributed to her all the different characters that belonged, or were
supposed to belong, to her husband. Having ascertained, then, one
of the characters in which the deified wife was worshipped, we may
from that conclude what was the corresponding character of the
deified husband. Layard distinctly indicates his belief that Rhea or
tower-crown goddess, was just the female counterpart
"
Cybele, the
"
and Kronos ; for, 1st, the relationships of the divinities, in most countries, are
peculiarly conflicting Osiris, in Egypt, is represented at different times, not only
as the son and husband of Isis, but also as her father and brother (BuNSEN, vol. i.
p. 438) then, secondly, whatever the deified mortals might be before deification,
;
on being deified they came into new relationships. On the apotheosis of husband
and wife, it was necessary for the dignity of both that both alike should be repre
sented as of the same celestial origin as both superuaturally the children of God.
Before the flood, the great sin that brought ruin on the human race was, that the
"Sons of God" married others than the daughters of God, in other words, those
who were not spiritually their (Gen. vi. 2, 3.) In the new world,
"sisters."
while the influence of Noah prevailed, the opposite practice must have been
son of God to marry any one but a daughter of God,
"
"sister and wife" of her husband. Hence the same relation between Isis and
her husband Osiris, the former of whom is represented as lamenting her brother
"
Osiris." (BuNSEN, vol. i. p. 419.) For the same reason, no doubt, was Rhea,
made the sister of her husband Kronos, to show her divine dignity and equality.
32 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
original, that divinity is proved to have been the first king of Baby
lon. Theophilus of Antioch shows that Kronos in the east was wor
* and from Eusebius we
shipped under the names of Bel and Bal ;
learn that the first of the Assyrian kings, whose name was Belus, was
also by the Assyrians called Kronos. f As the genuine copies of
Eusebius do not admit of any Belus, as an actual king of Assyria,
prior to Ninus, king of the Babylonians, and distinct from him, that
shows that Ninus, the first king of Babylon, was Kronos. But,
further, we find that Kronos was king of the Cyclops, who were his
brethren, and who derived that name from him,j and that the
Cyclops were known as "the inventors of tower-building." The
king of the Cyclops, "the inventors of tower-building," occupied a
position exactly correspondent to that of Khea, who "first erected
(towers) in cities." If, therefore, Rhea, the wife of Kronos, was the
goddess of fortifications, Kronos or Saturn, the husband of Rhea, that
is, Ninus or Nimrod, the first king of Babylon, must have been Ala
mahozin,
"
The name Kronos itself goes not a little to confirm the argument.
Kronos signifies "The Horned one." II As a horn is a well-known
Oriental emblem The Horned
for power or might, Kronos,
"
one,"
was, according to the mystic system, just a synonym for the Scriptural
epithet applied to Nimrod The mighty "
easy ;
the part which he seems to have had in concocting the whole idola
trous system, would have to be deified too, and of course, in his
character as the Father of the Mighty one," and of all the im " "
the course of our inquiry, that Nimrod was the actual Father of the
gods, as being the first of deified mortals ; and that, therefore, it is
*
CLKRIOUS, De Philosophia Oricntali, lib. i. sect. ii. cap. 37.
f EUSEBII, Ckronicon, p. 6.
The scholiast upon EURIPIDES, Orest., v. 963, p. 85, says that "the Cyclops
were so called from Cyclops their king." By this scholiast the Cyclops are
regarded as a Thracian nation, for the Thracians had localised the tradition, and
applied it to themselves but the following statement of the scholiast on the
;
Prometheus of JEschylus, p. 56, shows that they stood in such a relation to Kronos,
as proves that he was their king The Cyclops .... were the brethren of Kronos,
:
"
Laconica, cap. 13), is just a different form of the same word. In the Orphic
iii.,
"The
Mighty Prince," thereby pointing back
to the first of those
"
9). | This, also, in a remarkable way accounts for the origin of one of
the divinities worshipped by our Pagan
Anglo-Saxon ancestors under
the name of Zernebogus. This Zernebogus was the black, malevo- "
The name for a bull or ruler, is in Hebrew without points, Shur, which in
Chaldee becomes Tur. From Tur, in the sense of a bull, comes the Latin Taurus ;
and from the same word, in the sense of a ruler, Turannus, which
originally had
no evil meaning. Thus, in these well-known classical words, we have evidence of
the operation of the very principle which caused the deified
Assyrian kings to be
represented under the form of the man-bull.
t Orphic Hymns : Hymn li., To Trietericus, Greek, p. 117.
J From HYDE S Religio Veterum Persarum, cap. 4, p. 116.
D
34 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
* in other
lent, ill-omend divinity," words, the exact counterpart of
the popular idea of the Devil, as supposed to be black, and equipped
with horns and hoofs. This name, analysed and compared with the
accompanying woodcut (Fig. 10), from Layard,f casts a very singular
light on the source from whence has come the popular superstition
in regard to the grand Adversary. The name Zer-Nebo-Gus is
almost pure Chaldee, and seems to unfold itself as denoting The "
the prophet Cush," was, of course, Nimrod ; for Cush was Nimrod s
father. Turn now to Layard, and see how this land of ours and
Assyria are thus brought into intimate connection. In the woodcut
referred to, first we
Assyrian Hercules," that is
find "theNimrod "
seen that in that figure disentombed from Nineveh, we have both the
prototype of the Anglo-Saxon Zer-Nebo-Gus, the seed of the prophet
"
Cush," and the real original of the black Adversary of mankind, with
Hunter," is
THE CHILD IN ASSYRIA. 35
as the emblem both of his physical might and sovereign power, has
come to be, in popular superstition, the recognised representative of
the Devil.
*
"Saturnum Pherecydes ante omnes refert coronatum." TERTULLIAN, De
Corona Militis, cap. 7, vol. ii. p. So.
36 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
The first regal crown appears to have been only a band, in which
the horns were set. From the idea of power contained in the
"
horn,"
even subordinate rulers seem to have worn a circlet adorned
with a single horn, in token of their derived authority. Bruce,
the Abyssinian traveller, gives examples of Abyssinian chiefs thus
decorated (Fig. 11), in regard to whom he states that the horn
attracted his particular attention, when he perceived that the gover
nors of provinces were distinguished by this head-dress.* In the
case of sovereign powers, the royal head-band was adorned some
times with a double, sometimes with a triple horn. The double
horn had evidently been the original symbol of power or might
on the part of sovereigns ; for, on the Egyptian monuments, the
12.
heads of the deified royal person
Fig.
ages have generally no more than
the two horns to shadow forth
their power. As sovereignty in
Nimrod s case was founded on
it, with a knob on the top of each horn (Fig. 12). All the avatars
*
See KITTO S Illustrated Commentary, vol. iv. pp. 280-282. In Fig. 11, the
two male figures are Abyssinian Chiefs. The two females, whom Kitto has
grouped along with them, are ladies of Mount Lebanon, whose horned head
dresses Walpole regards as relics of the ancient worship of Astarte. (See above,
and WALPOLE S Ansayri, vol. iii. p. 16.)
t EUSEBIUS, Prceparatio Evangelii, lib. i. cap. 10, vol. i. p. 45.
LAYABD S Nineveh, vol. ii. p. 446.
MAURICE, vol. iii. p. 353. London, 1793.
THE CHILD IN ASSYRIA. 37
Satyric dance,"H
in Greece, seems to have been the counterpart of this Red Indian
solemnity ; for the satyrs were horned divinities, and consequently
those who imitated their dance must 13 Fig<
was while
"
Nimrod, as
Head and Captain of those men of war, by whom he surrounded
himself, and who were the instruments of establishing his power,
was Baal-aberin," "Lord of the mighty ones." But
"
Baal-abirin
" "
*
Asiatic Researches, vol. i.
p. 260.
f Ibid. "Agni," Plate 80.
I LAYAKD S Nineveh, &c., vol. ii. p. 451.
the Satyrs will appear in their true light. For a particular mystic reason the
" "
Satyr s horn was commonly a goat s horn, but originally it must have been the
same as Bacchus s.
38 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
(pronounced nearly in the same way) signified The winged one,"* "
For
asmuch as this people
Bull from Nimrud. From VAVX, p. 23
refuseth the waters of
Fi
Shiloah that go softly,
and rejoice in Rezin
and Remaliah s son ;
an archer ;
" "
winged one."
THE CHILD IN ASSYRIA. 39
presented to the reader (Figs. 14 and 15), with their great extent
of expanded wing, as symbolising an Assyrian king, what a vividness
and force does it give to the inspired language of the prophet And !
of them implied the lordship over the might, or the armies of the
empire, easy to see how very naturally any
it is suspicions of
disloyalty affecting the individual in question might take shape in
the manner related, in the dreams of him who might harbour these
suspicions.
Now, the understanding of this equivocal sense of Baal-aberin
"
"
symbolised "the Lords of the mighty ones," and then the meaning
viz., that men first began to be mighty on the earth
"
is clear
"
and then, that the Lords or Leaders of these mighty ones were
" "
"
"
referred to,that speaks of the birds, or the winged ones," being "
produced before the gods, we are informed that he from whom both
"mighty ones" and gods derived their origin, was none other
than
the winged boy Cupid. * Cupid, the son of Venus, occupied, as will
afterwards be proved, in the mystic mythology the very same position
as Nin, or Ninus, "the son," did to Rhea, the mother of the gods.f
As Nimrod was unquestionably the first of the mighty ones after "
"
occupying the very position of Nin or Ninus, "the son," shows that
in this respect also Ninus and Nimrod are identified. While this
is the evident meaning of the poet, this also, in a strictly historical
"the
*
gods by
This evidently points to the meaning of the name Bel,
"
belonged to the father of Nimrod, but, as the son was represented as identified
with the father, we have evidence that the name descended to the son and others
by inheritance.
t See Chap. V. Sect. IV.
J APOLLODORI, Fragm. 68, in MULLEB, vol. i. p. 440.
DIODORUS, lib. ii. p. 69.
See BRYANT, vol. ii. p. 377.
II
^
IT BUNSBN, vol. i. p. 392, and
Vocabulary, p. 488. The Coptic for "to hunt "
is
KWJ/C, c being pronounced as *.
THE CHILD IN EGYPT. 41
Egyptian god with Nimrod ? Now this very name Khons, brought
into contact with the Roman mythology, not only explains the mean
ing of a name in the Pantheon there, that hitherto has stood greatly
in need of explanation, but causes that name, when explained, to
reflect light back again on this Egyptian divinity, and to strengthen
the conclusion already arrived at. The name to which I refer is the
name of the Latin god Census, who was
in one aspect identified with
Neptune,! hut who was also regarded as "the god of hidden coun
sels,"
or the concealer of secrets," who was looked up to as the
"
Who
so likely to get the credit
of producing the horse as the great huntsman of Babel, who no doubt
enlisted it in the toils of the chase, and by this means must have
been signally aided in his conflicts with the wild beasts of the forest 1
In this connection, let the reader call to mind that fabulous creature,
the Centaur, half-man, half-horse, that figures so much in the myth
ology of Greece. That imaginary creation, as is generally admitted,
was intended to commemorate the man who first taught the art of
horsemanship. IF But that creation was not the offspring of Greek
*
The distinguishing decoration of Maut was the vulture head-dress. Now the
name of Rhea, in one of its meanings, signifies a vulture. For the mystic meaning
of this name, see Appendix, Note C.
t How Nimrod came to be regarded as the god of the sea will afterwards
appear. See Chap. IV. Sect. I.
+ Fuss s Roman Antiquities, chap. iv. p. 347.
The meaning which the Romans attached to the name Saturn is evident
from the account they give of the origin of the name of Latium. It was given,
they said, because "Saturn had safely lain hid in its coasts." VIRGIL, jEneid, lib.
viii. See also OVID, Fasti, lib. i.
II PLUTAECH, De hide et Osiride, vol. ii. p. 354.
M In illustration of the principle that led to the making of the image of the
Centaur, the following passage may be given from PRESCOTT S Mexico, vol. i. p.
259, as showing the feelings of the Mexicans on first seeing a man on horseback :
"He
[Cortes] ordered his men [who were cavalry] to direct their lances at the
faces of their opponents, who, terrified at the monstrous apparition for they sup
posed the rider and the horse, which they had never before seen, to be one and the
same were seized with a panic."
42 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
Archer." ||
If the founder of Babylon s glory
was mighty Hunter," whose name,
"The
the horse," and the Centaur of Babylon, to whom was attributed the
*
See Nineveh and Babylon, p. 250, and BRYANT, vol. iii. Plate, p. 245.
and its Remains, vol. ii. p. 440, Note. The name there given
t Nineveh is
that, as Chiron is said to have lived in the time of the Trojan war, this shows
that his father Kronos could not be the father of gods and men, Xenophon
answers by saying "that Kronos was the brother of Jupiter." De Venatione,
p. 973.
||
See coins already referred to, also the figure in the Zodiac. See also Manilius,
i. 270, where he describes Sagittarius as mixtus equo." Hence, says Smith, in
"
mother," was often exhibited, and what we learn of this god, equally
as in the case of Khonso, shows that in his original he was none other
than Xirnrod. It is admitted that the secret system of Eree Masonry
was originally founded on the Mysteries of the Egyptian Isis, the
goddess-mother, or wife of Osiris. But what could have led to the
union of a Masonic body with these Mysteries, had they not had
particular reference to architecture, and had the god who was
worshipped in them not been celebrated for his success in perfecting
the arts of fortification and building ? JSTow, if such were the case,
considering the relation in which, as we have already seen, Egypt
stood to Babylon, who would naturally be looked up to there as the
great patron of the Masonic art ? The strong
presumption is, that Nimrod must have been the
Flg>
"for,"
"
**
1[ Ibid. WILKINSON, vol. vi. Plate 33.
OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
but the dress in which this negro god is arrayed tells a different tale.
That dress directly connects him with Nimrod. This negro-featured
Osiris is clothed from head to foot in a spotted dress, the upper part
being a leopard s skin, the under part also being spotted to corre
spond with it. Now the name Nimrod* signifies the subduer of "
the leopard." This name seems to imply, that as Nimrod had gained
fame by subduing the horse, and so making use of it in the chase, so
his fame as a huntsman rested mainly on this, that he found out the
art of making the leopard aid him in hunting the other wild beasts.
Fig. 18.
A particular kind of tame leopard is used in
India at this day for hunting ; and of Bagajet
I., the Mogul Emperor of India, it is
recorded that in his hunting establishment
he had not only hounds of various breeds,
but leopards also, whose collars were set
"
leopards,"
Kitto has the following remarks :
subdue." "to
tion of Ninus," becomes Nineveh. The name Nimrod is commonly derived from
but a difficulty has always been found in regard to this
"
Mered, to rebel
"
derivation, as that would make the name Nimrod properly passive not "the
rebel," but he who was rebelled against." There is no doubt that Nimrod was
"
a rebel, and that his rebellion was celebrated in ancient myths ; but his name in
that character was not Nimrod, but Merodach, or, as among the Romans, Mars,
or among the Oscans of Italy, Mamers (SMITH, sub voce), The causer "
"the rebel
;"
of rebellion." That the Roman Mars was really, in his original, the Babylonian
god, is evident from the name given to the goddess, who was recognised some
times as his sister," and sometimes as his wife i.e., Bellona (see Ibid., sub voce),
"
" "
which, in Chaldee, signifies, "The Lamenter of Bel" (from Bel and onak, to .ament).
The Egyptian Isis, the sister and wife of Osiris, is in like manner represented, as
we have seen, as lamenting her brother Osiris." BUNSEN, vol. i. p. 419, Note.
"
hunting." f
As Tahmurs, who built Babylon, could be none other than Mmrod,
this legend only attributes to his father what, as his name imports,
he got the fame of doing himself. Now, as the classic god bearing
the lion s skin
recognised by that sign as Hercules, the slayer of the
is
Nemean manner, the god clothed in the leopard s skin,
lion, so in like
would naturally be marked out as Nimrod, the Leopard-subduer."
"
"IT
to
Hap,"
"
stitute of Cairo.
"*
When we
find that Osiris, the grand god of
Egypt, under was thus arrayed in a leopard s skin or
different forms,
spotted dress, and that the leopard-skin dress was so indispensable a
part of the sacred robes of his high priest, we may be sure that there
was a deep meaning in such a costume. And what could that mean
ing be, but just to identify Osiris with the Babylonian god, who was
celebrated as the Leopard-tamer," and who was worshipped even as
"
Leopard-tamer/ began to be
clothed in the leopard-skin, as the
trophy of his skill, his spotted dress and appearance must have
impressed the imaginations of those who saw him ; and he came
to be called not only the "Subduer of the Spotted one" (for such
is the precise meaning of Nimr the name of the leopard), but to be
called The spotted one himself. We have distinct evidence to
" "
Fig. 21.
We have evidence that this god, whose emblem was the Nebros,
was known as having the very lineage of Nimrod. From Anacreon,
we find that a title of Bacchus was Aithiopais* i.e., "the son of
JEthiops."
But who was ^thiops ? As the ^Ethiopians were
Cushites, so yEthiops was Gush. "Chus," says Eusebius, "was he
from whom came the ^Ethiopians."! The testimony of Josephus
is to the same effect. As the father of the ^Ethiopians, Gush was
^Ethiops, by way of eminence.
Fig. 2-2
Therefore Epiphanius, referring to
the extraction of Nimrod, thus
Nimrod, the son of Gush,
"
speaks :
he was portrayed as
Son,"
a youth
or child; and that youth or child
was generally depicted with a
cup in his hand. That cup, to
the multitude, exhibited him as
the god of drunken revelry; and
of such revelry in his orgies, no
doubt there was abundance; but
yet, after all, the cup was mainly
a hieroglyphic, and that of the
name of the god. The name of a
cup, in the sacred language, was
khus, and thus the cup in the hand
of the youthful Bacchus, the son of
^Ethiops, showed that he was the
young Chus, or the son of Chiis.
In the accompanying woodcut (Fig. 22), the cup in the right hand
of Bacchus is held up in so significant a way, as naturally to suggest
that it must be a symbol ; and as to the branch in the other hand,
we have express testimony that it is a symbol. But it is worthy of
notice that the branch has no leaves to determine what precise kind
of a branch it is. It must, therefore, be a generic emblem for a
branch, or a symbol of a branch in general; and, consequently, it
needs the cup as its complement, to determine specifically what sort
of a branch it is. The two symbols, then, must be read together ;
*
ANACREON, p. 296. The words of Anacreon are kiovwov Ai0io7rcu5a.
t EUSEBIUS, Chronicon, vol. i. p. 109.
EPIPHANIUS, lib. i. vol. i. p. 7.
From SMITH S Classical Dictionary, p. 208.
THE CHILD IN GREECE. 49
and read thus, they are just equivalent to the "Branch of Chus"
the scion or son of Gush." *
i.e.,
"
that though the name of Gush, in its proper form, was known to the
priests in the Mysteries, yet that the established way in which the
name of his descendants, the Cushites, was ordinarily pronounced in
Greece, was not after the Oriental fashion, but as "Kissaioi," or
Thus, Strabo, speaking of the inhabitants of Susa, who
"
Kissioi."
appears how Kissos, the Greek name of Ivy, became the name of
Bacchus. As the son of Gush, and as identified with him, he was
sometimes called by his father s name Kissos. ff His actual relation,
*
Everyone knows that Homer s odzos Areos, or "Branch of Mars," is the
same as a "
Son
The hieroglyphic above was evidently formed on the
of Mars."
same principle. That the cup alone in the hand of the youthful Bacchus was
intended to designate him "as the young Chus," or "the boy Chus," we may
fairly conclude from a statement of Pausanias, in which he represents the boy "
(PAUSANIAS, lib. ii. Corinthiaca, cap. 13, p. 142.) Kuathos is the Greek for a
;
of its Chaldee forms, becomes Khuth or Khuath. Now, it is well known that
the name of Gush is often found in the form of Cuth, and that name, in certain
dialects, would be Cuath. The boy Kuathos," then, is just the Greek form of
"
the "boy Gush," or "the young Cush." The reader will not fail to notice the
spots on the robe of the figure on opposite page.
[The berries or unopened flower-buds at the end of the twigs (Fig. 22), may
indicate the Ivy plant. This, however, would not invalidate, but rather strengthen
the general argument.]
t SMITH S Classical Dictionary, "Dionysus," p. 227.
EURIPID., in STRABO, lib. x. p. 452.
KITTO S lllust. Com., POTTER, vol.vol. iv. p. 144. i.
p. 75. Edin. 1808.
II PAUSANIAS, Attica, cap. 31, p. 78.
IF STRABO, lib. xv. p. 691. In Hesychius, the name Kissaioi, p. 531.
is The
epithet applied to the land of Cush
in ^Eschylus is Kissinos ^EsCHYL., Pers.
v. 16. The above accounts for one of the unexplained titles of Apollo. Kisseus "
*
HESYCHIUS, p. 179.
ft See ante, for what is said of Janus, Note, p. 28.
E
50 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
however, to his father was specifically brought out by the Ivy branch,
for the branch of Kissos," which to the profane vulgar was only
"
Now, this god, who was recognised as "the scion of Gush," was
worshipped under a name, which, while appropriate to him in his
vulgar character as the god of the vintage, did also describe him as
the great Fortifier. That name was Bassareus, which, in its two-fold
meaning, signified at once "The houser of grapes, or the vintage
gatherer,"
and The Encompasser with a wall,"f in this latter sense
"
identifying the Grecian god with the Egyptian Osiris, the strong "
chief of the buildings," and with the Assyrian Belus, who encom
"
to believe the
name of Gush is derived, for Ivy is characteristically The coverer "
or hider." In
connection with this, it may be stated that the second person of the Phenician
trinity was Chusorus (WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 191), which evidently is Chus-zoro,
"The seed of Gush." We have already seen (p. 13) that the Phenicians derived
their mythology from Assyria.
f Bassareus is evidently from the Chaldee Batzar, to which both Gesenius, pp.
150, 151, and Parkhurst, p. 77, give the two-fold meaning of "gathering in
grapes,"
and fortifying." Batzar is softened into Bazzar in the very same way
"
defence inaccessible," Gesenius adduces Jeremiah li. 53, "Though Babylon should
mount up to heaven, and though she should fortify (tabatzar) the height of her
strength, yet from me shall spoilers come unto her, saith the Lord." Here is
evident reference to the two great elements in Babylon s strength, first her tower ;
secondly, her massive fortifications, or encompassing walls. In making the mean
ing of Batzar to be, to render inaccessible," Gesenius seems to have missed the
"
in,"
lest the land become desolate, and the beast of the field multiply
against thee. By little and little I will drive them out from before
thee, until thou be increased." The exploits of Nimrod, therefore,
in hunting down the wild beasts of the field, and ridding the world
of monsters, must have gained for him the character of a pre-eminent
benefactor of his race. By this means, not less than by the bands he
trained, was his power acquired, when he first began to be mighty
upon the earth ; and in the same way, no doubt, was that power
consolidated. Then, over and above, as the first great city-builder
after the flood, by gathering men together in masses, and surrounding
them with walls, he did still more to enable them to pass their days
in security, free from the alarms to which they had been exposed in
their scattered life, when no one could tell but that at any moment
he might be called to engage in deadly conflict with prowling wild
beasts, in defence of his own life and of those who were dear to him.
"Within the battlements of a fortified
city no such danger from savage
animals was to be dreaded ; and for the security afforded in this way,
men no doubt looked upon themselves as greatly indebted to Nimrod.
No wonder, therefore, that the name of the mighty hunter," who was
"
The
reader may remember a name that has already come under his
notice. That name is the name of Phoroneus. The era of
Phoroneus is exactly the era of Nimrod. He lived about the time
when men had used one speech, when the confusion of tongues
began, and when mankind was scattered abroad.* He is said to
have been the first that gathered mankind into communities,! the
first of mortals that
reigned, f and the first that offered idolatrous
sacrifices. This character can agree with none but that of Nimrod.
Now the name given to him in connection with his gathering men "
*
See ante, p. 25, and Note.
t PAUSANIAS, lib. ii. ;Corinthiaca, cap. 15, p. 145.
HYGINCS, Fab. 143, p. 114.
LUTATIUS PLACIDUS, in Stat. Tkeb., lib. iv. v. 589, a.pud BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 65,
Note. The words are "Primus Junoni sacrificasse dicitur." The meaning of this
probably is, that he first set up the dove (lune) as a material and visible symbol
of the Holy Spirit. See next Section.
52 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
together,"
and offering idolatrous sacrifice, is very significant.
Phoroneus, in and that one of the most
one of its meanings,
natural, signifies the Apostate."* That name had very likely been
"
given him by the uninfected portion of the sons of Noah. But that
name had also another meaning, that is, to set free ; and therefore " "
Apostate
from the primeval faith, though he was the first that abridged the
liberties of mankind, as the grand Emancipator f And hence, "
!
"
in one form or other, this title was handed down to his deified
successors as a title of honour. | All tradition from the earliest
times bears testimony to the apostacy of Nimrod, and to his success
in leading men away from the patriarchal faith, and delivering their
minds from that awe of God and fear of the judgments of heaven
that must have rested on them while yet the memory of the flood
was recent. And according to all the principles of depraved human
nature, this too, no doubt, was one grand element in his fame ; for
men will readily rally around any one who can give the least
appearance of plausibility to any doctrine which will teach that
they can be assured of happiness and heaven at last, though their
hearts and natures are unchanged, and though they live without
God in the world.
How
great was the boon conferred by Nimrod on the human race,
in the estimation of ungodly men, by emancipating them from the
impressions of true religion, and putting the authority of heaven to
a distance from them, we find most vividly described in a Polynesian
tradition, that carries its own evidence with it. John Williams,
the well-known missionary, tells us that, according to one of the
ancient traditions of the islanders of the South Seas, the heavens "
*
From Pharo, also pronounced Pharang, or Pharong, to cast off, to make "
naked, to apostatise, to set free." These meanings are not commonly given in
this order, but as the sense of
"
casting off
warrants the conclusion that to cast off" is the generic sense of the word. Now
"
Terracina (or Anxur) slaves were emancipated in her temple (Servius, in jEneid,
viii. v. 564, vol. i. p. 490), and because the freedmen of Rome are recorded on one
occasion to have collected a sum of money for the purpose of offering it in her
temple. SMITH S Classical Dictionary (the larger one), sub voce
"
Feronia."
The Chaldee meaning of the name "Feronia," strikingly confirms this conclu
sion. Her contemplar divinity, who was worshipped along with her in a grove,
was, like Ninus, a youthful divinity. He was regarded as a youthful Jupiter."
"
+ Thus we read of Zeus Aphesio" (PAUSANIAS, lib. i. Attica, cap. 44), that is
"
to have had the same origin, from nthes to loosen," and so to set free (the n
"
p. 36) .was allowed the privilege of being a Sanctuary for slaves, and all
. . .
"
those of mean condition that fled from the persecution of men in power, in
memory that Theseus, while he lived, was an assister and protector of the
distressed."
THE CHILD IN GREECE. 53
were originally so close to the earth that men could not walk, but
were compelled to crawl" under them. "This was found a very
serious evil ; but at length an individual conceived the sublime idea
of elevating the heavens to a more convenient height. For this pur
pose he put forth his utmost energy, and by the first effort raised
them to the top of a tender plant called teve, about four feet high.
There he deposited them until he was refreshed, when, by a second
effort, he lifted them to the height of a tree called Kauariki,
which
is as large as the sycamore. By the third attempt he carried them
to the summits of the mountains ; and after a long interval of repose,
and by a most prodigious effort, he elevated them to their present
situation." For this, as a mighty benefactor of mankind, "this in
dividual was deified ; and up to the moment that Christianity was
embraced, the deluded inhabitants worshipped him as the Elevator
*
from us, for we desire not the knowledge of Thy ways." So long as
the influence of the great father of the new world was in the ascen
dant, while his maxims were regarded, and a holy atmosphere sur
rounded the world, no wonder that those who were alienated from
God and godliness, felt heaven and its influence and authority to be
intolerably near, and that in such circumstances they "could not
walk," but only "crawl," that is, that they had no freedom to
walk after the sight of their own eyes and the imaginations of
"
heavens," feel
and act as if heaven were afar off from earth, and as if either the
God heaven could not see through the dark cloud," or did not
of
"
regard with displeasure the breakers of His laws. Then all such
would feel that they could breathe freely, and that now they could
walk at liberty. For this, such men could not but regard Nimrod
as a high benefactor.
Now, who could have imagined that a tradition from Tahiti would
have illuminated the story of Atlas 1 But yet, when Atlas, bearing
the heavens on his shoulders, is brought into juxtaposition with the
deified hero of the South Seas, who blessed the world by heaving up
the superincumbent heavens that pressed so heavily upon it, who does
not see that the one story bears a relation to the other 1 * Thus,
*
In the Polynesian story the heavens and earth are said to have been "bound
together with cords," and the "severing" of these cords is said to have been
dragon-flies," which, with their "wings," bore an import
effected by myriads of "
ant share in the great work. ( WILLIAMS, p. 142. ) Is there not here a reference to
Nimrod s mighties or winged ones ? The deified mighty ones were often
" "
" "
" "
represented as winged serpents. See WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 232, where the god
Agathodsemon is represented as a Among a rude people the
"
winged asp."
memory of such a representation might very naturally be kept up in connection
with the dragon-fly ; and as all the mighty or winged ones of Nimrod s age,
" "
the real golden age of paganism, when "dead, became daemons (HESIOD, Works
"
and Days, v. 120, 121), they would of course all alike be symbolised in the same
way. If any be stumbled at the thought of such a connection between the myth
ology of Tahiti and of Babel, let it not be overlooked that the name of the
Tahitian god of war was Oro (WILLIAMS, Ibid.), while Horus (or Orus)," as "
Wilkinson calls the son of Osiris, in Egypt, which unquestionably borrowed its
system from Babylon, appeared in that very character. ( WILKINSON, vol. iv. p.
402.) Then what could the severing of the cords that bound heaven and earth " "
together be, but just the breaking of the bands of the covenant by which God
bound the earth to Himself, when on smelling a sweet savour in Noah s sacrifice,
He renewed His covenant with him as head of the human race. This covenant did
not merely respect the promise to the earth securing it against another universal
deluge, but contained in its bosom a promise of all spiritual blessings to those
who adhere to it. The smelling of the sweet savour in Noah s sacrifice had
respect to \\isfaith in Christ. When, therefore, in consequence of smelling that
sweet savour, "God blessed Noah and his sons" (Gen. ix. 1), that had reference
not merely to temporal but to spiritual and eternal blessings. Every one, there
fore, of the sons of Noah, who had Noah s faith, and who walked as Noah walked,
was divinely assured of an interest in "the everlasting covenant, ordered in all
tilings and sure." Blessed were those bands by which God bound the believing
children of men to Himself by which heaven and earth were so closely joined
together. Those, on the other hand, who joined in the apostacy of Nimrod broke
the covenant, and in casting off the authority of God, did in effect say, "Let us
break His bands asunder, and cast His cords from us." To this very act of severing
the covenant connection between earth and heaven there is very distinct allusion,
though veiled, in the Babylonian history of Berosus. There Belus, that is Nimrod,
after having dispelled the primeval darkness, is said to have separated heaven and
earth from one another, and to have orderly arranged the world. (BEROSUS, in
BUNSEN, vol. i. p. 709.) These words were intended to represent Belus as the
Former of the world." But then it is & new world that he forms ; for there are
"
creatures in existence before his Demiurgic power is exerted. The new world
that Belus or Nimrod formed, was just the new order of things which he intro
duced when, setting at nought all Divine appointments, he rebelled against Heaven.
The rebellion of the Giants is represented as peculiarly a rebellion against Heaven.
To this ancient quarrel between the Babylonian potentates and Heaven, there is
THE DEATH OF THE CHILD. 55
theD, it appears that Atlas, with the heavens resting on his broad
do rule."
*
SMITH S Lesser Dictionary, "
IVAN and KALLERY, in their account of Japan, show that a similar story to
that of Atlas was known there, for they say that once a-day the Emperor sits "
on his throne upholding the world and the empire." Now something like this
came to be added to the story of Atlas, for PAUSANIAS shows (lib. v. cap. 18,
p. 423) that Atlas also was represented as upholding both earth and heaven.
BRYANT, vol. iv. pp. 61, 62.
HYGINUS, Fab. 184, p. 138.
||
if Ibid. Fab. 132, p. 109. Lycurgus, who is commonly made the enemy of
Bacchus, was, by the Thracians and Phrygians, identified with Bacchus, who it is
well known, was torn in pieces. See STRABO, lib. x. p. 453.
**
APOLLODORUS, Bibliotlieca, lib. i. cap. 3 and 7, p. 17.
56 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
spotted fawn,"
was torn in pieces, expressly, as we learn from Photius, as a com
memoration of what happened to Bacchus, whom that fawn repre
sented. The tearing in pieces of Nebros, the spotted one," goes to "
confirm the conclusion, that the death of Bacchus, even as the death
of Osiris, represented the death of Nebrod, whom, under the very
name of The Spotted one," the Babylonians worshipped. Though
"
*
LUDOVICUS VIVES, Commentary on Augustine, lib. vi. chap. ix. Note, p. 239.
Ninus as referred to by Vives is called King of India." The word India in
"
"
classical writers, though not always, yet commonly means ^Ethiopia, or the land
of Gush. Thus the Choaspes in the land of the eastern Cushites is called an
Indian river" (DiONYSius AFER. Periergesis, v. 1073-4, p. 32) and the Nile is
"
said by Virgil to come from the "coloured Indians" (Georg., lib. iv. v., 293, p.
230) i.e., from the Cushites, or ^Ethiopians of Africa. Osiris also is by Diodorus
Siculus (Bibliotheca, lib. i. p. 16), called an Indian by extraction." There can be
"
Ninus.
t See WILKINSON S Egyptians, vol. v. p. 3. The statement of Plato amounts
to this, that the famous Thoth was a counsellor of Thamus, king of Egypt. Now
Thoth is universally known as the counsellor" of Osiris. (WILKINSON, vol. v.
"
c. xiii. p. 10.) Hence it may be concluded that Thamus and Osiris are the same.
it KITTO S Illustrated Commentary, vol. iv. p. 141.
Photius, under the head Nebridz on quotes Demosthenes as saying that "
"
spotted fawns (or nebroi) were torn in pieces for a certain mystic or mysterious
"
It is
*
See OVID S Fasti, lib. v. lines 540-544. Ovid represents Orion as so puffed up
with pride on account of his great strength, as vain-gloriously to boast that no
creature on earth could cope with him, whereupon a scorpion appeared, "and,"
says the poet, "he was added to the stars." The name of a scorpion in Chaldee
is Akrab ; but Ak-rab, thus divided, signifies "THE GREAT OPPRESSOR, and this
is the hidden meaning of the Scorpion as represented in the Zodiac. That sign
typifies him who cut off the Babylonian god, and suppressed the system he set up.
It was while the sun was in Scorpio that Osiris in Egypt
"
"
disappeared
(WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 331), and great lamentations were made for his disappear
ance. Another subject was mixed up with the death of the Egyptian god ; but it
is specially to be noticed that, as it was in consequence of a conflict with a
scorpion that Orion was "added to the stars," so it was when the scorpion was in
the ascendant that Osiris disappeared."
"
Volar from her infernal abode. All the gods trembled at the know
ledge of this event. Then Frigga [the wife of Odin] called on every
object, animate and inanimate, to take an oath not to destroy or
furnish arms against Balder. Fire, water, rocks, and vegetables were
bound by this solemn obligation. One plant only, the misletoe, was
overlooked. Loki discovered the omission, and made that con
temptible shrub the fatal weapon. Among the warlike pastimes of
Valhalla [the assembly of the gods] one was to throw darts at the
invulnerable deity, who felt a pleasure in presenting his charmed
breast to their weapons. At a tournament of this kind, the evil
genius putting a sprig of the misletoe into the hands of the blind
Hoder, and directing his aim, the dreaded prediction was accomplished
by an unintentional fratricide.* The spectators were struck with
speechless wonder; and their misfortune was the greater, that no
one, out of respect to the sacredness of the place, dared to avenge it.
With tears of lamentation they carried the lifeless body to the shore,
and laid it upon a ship, as a funeral pile, with that of Nanna his
lovely bride, who had died of a broken heart. His horse and arms
were burnt at the same time, as was customary at the obsequies of
the ancient heroes of the north." Then Frigga, his mother, was
overwhelmed with distress. "Inconsolable for the loss of her
beautiful son," says Dr. Crichton, "she despatched Hermod (the
swift) to the abode of Hela [the goddess of Hell, or the infernal
regions], to offer a ransom for his release. The gloomy goddess pro
mised that he should be restored, provided everything on earth were
found to weep for him. Then were messengers sent over the whole
world, to see that the order was obeyed, and the effect of the general
sorrow was as when there is a universal thaw. There are con
"f
siderable variations from the original story in these two legends ; but
at bottom the essence of the stories is the same, indicating that they
must have flowed from one fountain.
*
In THEOCRITUS, also, the boar that killed Adonis is represented as baring
done so accidentally. See next section,
f Scandinavia, vol. i. pp. 93, 94.
THE DEIFICATION OF THE CHILD. 59
the well-known name of the head of the fire-worshippers. Zoroaster s name is also
found as Zeroastes (JOHANNES CLERICUS, torn, ii., De Chaldceis, sect. i. cap. 2, p.
194). The reader who consults the able and very learned work of Dr. Wilson of
Bombay, on the Parsi Religion, will find that there was a Zoroaster long before
that Zoroaster who lived in the reign of Darius Hystaspes. (See note to
WILSON S Parsi Religion, p. 398.) In general history, the Zoroaster of Bactria
is most frequently referred to ; but the voice of antiquity is clear and distinct to
the effect that the first and great Zoroaster was an Assyrian or Chaldean (SuiDAS,
torn. i. p. 1133), and that he was the founder of the idolatrous system of Babylon,
and therefore Nimrod. It is equally clear also in stating that he perished by a
violent death, even as was the case with Nimrod, Tammuz, or Bacchus. The
identity of Bacchus and Zoroaster is still further proved by the epithet Pyrisporus,
bestowed on Bacchus in the Orphic flymns (Hymn xliv. 1). When the primeval
promise of Eden began to be forgotten, the meaning of the name Zero-ash ta was
lost to all who knew
only the exoteric doctrine of Paganism ; and as "ashta"
signified in Chaldee, as well as "the woman," and the rites of Bacchus
"fire"
torn. ii. De Chaldceis, sect. i. cap. 2, p. 191.) In WILSON S Parsi Religion the name
is given either Zoroadus, or Zarades (p. 400). The ancient Pagans, while they
recognised supremely one only God, knew also that there was one only seed,
on whom the hopes of the world were founded. In almost all nations, not only
was a great god known under the name of Zero or Zer, the seed," and a great
goddess under the name of Ashta or Isha, "the woman ; but the great god Zero
"
is frequently characterised by some epithet which implies that he is The only "
One." Now what can account for such names or epithets ? Genesis iii. 15 can
accoxmt for them ; nothing else can. The name Zar-ades, or Zoro-adus, also
strikingly illustrates the saying of Paul He saith not, And to seeds, as of
:
"
It is worthy of notice, that the modern system of Parseeism, which dates from
the reform of the old fire-worship in the time of Darius Hystaspes, having rejected
the worship of the goddess-mother, cast out also from the name of their Zoroaster
the name of the woman and therefore in the Zend, the sacred language of
"
"
the Parsees, the name of their great reformer is Zarathustra (see WILSON, p. 201,
and passim) i.e., "The Delivering Seed," the last member of the name coming
from Thusht (the root being Chaldee nthsh, which drops the initial n), "to
loosen or set loose," and so to free. Thusht is the infinitive, and ra appended to
it is, in Sanscrit, with which the Zend has much affinity, the well-known sign of
the doer of an action, just as er is in English. The Zend Zarathushtra, then,
seems just the equivalent of Phoroneus, "The Emancipator."
60 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
of the "
Fig. 23.
"
; Engonasis
lonians, it must be interpreted, not in a Greek, but in a Chaldee
sense, and so interpreted,
as the action of the figure itself implies,
the of the mysterious sufferer is just "The Serpent-crusher."!
title
nerable in all points except the heel, but there a wound was deadly.
At that his adversary took aim, and death was the result.
Now, if there be such evidence still, that even Pagans knew that
it was by dying that the promised Messiah was to destroy death and
him that has the power of death, that is the Devil, how much more
vivid must have been the impression of mankind in general in regard
to this vital truth in the early days of Semiramis, when they were
so much nearer the fountain-head of all Divine tradition. When,
therefore, the name Zoroastes, the seed of the woman," was given"
*
LANDSEER S Sabean Researches, pp. 132-134.
t From E, nko,
"the," and nahash,
to crush," ar
"
The Crusher."
COLEMAN S Indian Mythology, Plate xii. p. 34. See ante, p. 60.
POCOCKE S India in Greece, p. 300.
62 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
ing his followers that, if they cherished due regard for his memory,
the empire w ould never depart from the Babylonians.*
T
What
Berosus, the Babylonian historian, says of the cutting off of the head
of the great god Belus, is plainly to the same effect. Belus, says
Berosus, commanded one of the gods to cut off his head, that from
the blood thus shed by his own command and with his own consent,
when mingled with the earth, new creatures might be formed, the
first creation being represented as a sort of a failure, f Thus the
death of Belus, who was Nimrod, like that attributed to Zoroaster,
was represented as entirely voluntary, and as submitted to for the
benefit of the world.
It seems to have been now only when the dead hero was to be
deified, that the secretMysteries were set up. The previous form
of apostacy during the life of Nimrod appears to have been open and
public. Now, it was evidently felt that publicity was out of the
question. The death of the great ringleader of the apostacy was not
the death of a warrior slain in battle, but an act of judicial rigour,
solemnly inflicted. This is well established by the accounts of the
deaths of both Tammuz and Osiris. The following is the account of
Tammuz, given by the celebrated Maimonides, deeply read in all
the learning of the Chaldeans When the false prophet named
:
"
(i.e.,
and overcome the Giants. Now, no doubt, the title and character
of Hercules were afterwards given by the Pagans to him whom they
worshipped as the grand deliverer or Messiah, just as the adversaries
of the Pagan divinities came to be stigmatised as the Giants who " "
rebelled against Heaven. But let the reader only reflect who were
the real Giants that rebelled against Heaven. They were Nimrod
and his party; for the "Giants" were just the "Mighty ones," of
whom Nimrod was the leader. Who, then, was most likely to head
the opposition to the apostacy from the primitive worship 1 If Shem
was at that time alive, as beyond question he was, who so likely as
he ? In exact accordance with this deduction, we find that one of
the names of the primitive Hercules in Egypt was Sem."f
"
If "
God," or the influence of the Holy Spirit, that entirely agrees with
his character ; and more than that, it remarkably agrees with the
Egyptian account of the death of Osiris. The Egyptians say, that
the grand enemy of their god overcame him, not by open violence,
but that, having entered into a conspiracy with seventy-two of the
leading men of Egypt, he got him into his power, put him to death,
and then cut his dead body into pieces, and sent the different parts
to so many different cities throughout the country. J The real mean
ing of this statement will appear, if we glance at the judicial institu
tions of Egypt. Seventy-two was just the number of the judges,
both civil and sacred, who, according to Egyptian law, were required
to determine what was to be the punishment of one
guilty of so high
an offence as that of Osiris, supposing this to have become a matter
of judicial inquiry. In determining such a case, there were neces
sarily two tribunals concerned. Eirst, there were the ordinary
judges, who had power of life and death, and who amounted to
thirty, then there was, over and above, a tribunal consisting of
forty-two judges, who, if Osiris was condemned to die, had to deter
mine whether his body should be buried or no, for, before burial,
*
The name of the true God (Elohim) is plural. Therefore,
"
every one after death had to pass the ordeal of this tribunal.* As
burial was refused him, both tribunals would necessarily be con
cerned ; and thus there would be exactly seventy-two persons, under
Typho the president, to condemn Osiris to die and to be cut in pieces.
What, then, does the statement amount to, in regard to the con
spiracy, but just to this, that the great opponent of the idolatrous
system which Osiris introduced, had so convinced these judges of the
enormity of the offence which he had committed, that they gave up
the offender to an awful death, and to ignominy after it, as a terror
to any who might afterwards tread in his steps. The cutting of the
dead body in pieces, and sending the dismembered parts among the
different cities, is paralleled, and its object explained, by what we read
in the Bible of the cutting of the dead body of the Levite s concubine
in pieces (Judges xix. 29), and sending one of the parts to each of
the twelve tribes of Israel ; and the similar step taken by Saul, when
he hewed the two yoke of oxen asunder, and sent them throughout
all the coasts of his kingdom (1 Sam. xi. 7). It is admitted by com
mentators that both the Levite and Saul acted on a patriarchal
custom, according to which summary vengeance would be dealt to
those who failed to come to the gathering that in this solemn way
was summoned. This was declared in so many words by Saul, when
the parts of the slaughtered oxen were sent among the tribes :
Whosoever cometh not forth after Saul and after Samuel, so shall
"
spirators
equivalent to a solemn declaration in their name, that whosoever "
*
lib. i. p. 58. The words of Diodorus, as printed in the ordinary edi
DIODORUS,
tions,make the number of the judges simply "more than forty, without specifying
how many more. In the Codex Coislianus, the number is stated to be "two more
than forty." The earthly judges, who tried the question of burial, are admitted
both by WILKINSON (vol. v. p. 75) and BUNSEN (vol. i.
p. 27), to have corre
sponded in number to the judges of the infernal regions. Now, these judges,
over and above their president, are proved from the monuments to have been just
forty-two. The earthly judges at funerals, therefore, must equally have been
forty-two. In reference to this number as applying equally to the judges of this
world and the world of spirits, Bunsen, speaking of the judgment on a deceased
person in the world unseen, uses these words in the passage above referred to :
Forty-two gods (the number composing the earthly tribunal of the dead) occupy
"
was the number he had present to his mind ; for he says, that the whole of the
"
fable of the shades below," as brought by Orpheus from Egypt, was copied from
"
the ceremonies of the Egyptian funerals," which he had witnessed at the judgment
before the burial of the dead. (DIODORUS, lib. i. p. 58.) If, therefore, there
were just forty-two judges in the shades below," that even, on the showing of
"
Diodorus, whatever reading of his words be preferred, proves that the number of
the judges in the earthly judgment must have been the same.
THE DEIFICATION OF THE CHILD. 65
the power of persuasion; the very power with which "Sem," the
primitive Hercules, was so signally endowed. Even from the ancient
traditions of the Gael, we get an item of evidence that at once illus
trates this idea of power in the mouth, and connects it with that
great son of Noah, on whom the blessing of the Highest, as recorded
in Scripture, did specially rest. The Celtic Hercules was called
* Wilkinson admits that different individuals at different times bore this hated
name in Egypt. One of the most noted names by which Typho, or the Evil One,
was called, was Seth (EPIPHANIUS, Adv. ffceres., lib. iii.). Now Seth and Shem
are synonymous, both alike signifying "The appointed one." As Shem was a
younger son of Noah, being "the brother of Japhet the elder (Gen. x. 21), and
as the pre-eminence was divinely destined to him, the name Shem, the appointed "
f In India, a demon with a boar s face is said to have gained such power
"
"
devotees
who had to hide themselves. (MooR s Pantheon, p. 19.) Even in Japan there
seems to be a similar myth. For Japanese boar, see Illustrated News, 15th Dec.,
1860.
J Ezek. xxvii. 15 : They brought thee for a present horns of ivory."
"
Paxisanias admits that some in his day regarded tusks as teeth ; but he argues
strongly, and, I think, conclusively, for their being considered as horns." See "
PAUSANIAS, lib. v., Eliaca, cap. 12, p. 404 ; also, VARRO, De Lingua Latina, lib. vi.
sub voce Krn."
"
apud PARKHURST,
F
66 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
TIONS of his descendants. He lived 502 years after the flood, and as
the lives of men were rapidly shortened after that event, no less than
SEVEN generations of his lineal descendants died before him (Gen.
xi. 10-32). How
appropriate a name Ogmius, "The Lamenter or
Mourner," one who had such a history
for Now, how is this !
idea the might of that persuasive power that enabled Shem for a
time to withstand the tide of evil that came rapidly rushing in upon
the world.
Now when Shem had
so powerfully wrought upon the minds of
men as to induce make a terrible example of the great
them to
Apostate, and when that Apostate s dismembered limbs were sent to
the chief cities, where no doubt his system had been established, it
will be readily perceived that, in these circumstances, if idolatry was
to continue if, above all, it was to take a step in advance, it was
*
The
Celtic scholars derive the name Ogmius from the Celtic word Ogum,
which said to denote "the secret of writing ; but Ogum is much more likely
"
is
to be derived from the name of the god, than the name of the god to be derived
from it.
t Sir W. BETHAM S Gael and Cymbri, pp. 90-93. In connection with this
Ogmius, one of the names of Sem," the great Egyptian Hercules who overcame
"
Egyptian dialect Hercules is called Chon." Compare this with WILKINSON, vol.
v. p. 17, where Chon is called "Sem." Now Khon signifies "to lament" in
Chaldee, and as Shem was Khon i.e., "Priest" of the Most High God, his
character and peculiar circumstances as Khon the lamenter would form an
"
"
great part of his power ; and, in like manner, the tears of Khon, the lamenting "
centre, has spread over the world. In these Mysteries, under the
seal of secrecy and the sanction of an oath, and by means of all the
fertile resources of magic, men were gradually led back to all the
idolatry that had been publicly suppressed, while new features were
added to that idolatry that made it still more blasphemous than
before. That magic and idolatry were twin sisters, and came into
the world together, we have abundant evidence. He (Zoroaster),
"
"
says Justin the historian, "was said to be the first that invented
magic arts, and that most diligently studied the motions of the
heavenly bodies."* The Zoroaster spoken
of by Justin is the
Bactrian Zoroaster ;
but this
generally admitted to be a mistake.
is
resplendent with light and radiant fire, and then again covered with
black darkness, sometimes thunder and lightning, sometimes
frightful
noises and bellowings, sometimes terrible
apparitions astonished the
trembling spectators." Then, at last, the great god, the central
object of their worship, Osiris, Tammuz, Nimrod or Adonis, was
revealed to them in the way most fitted to soothe their
feelings and
engage their blind affections. An account of such a manifestation is
thus given by an ancient Pagan, cautiously indeed, but
yet in such
a way as shows the nature of the
magic secret by which such an
*
JUSTINUS, ffistoria, lib. i. cap. 1, vol. ii. p. 615.
t STANLEY, p. 1031, col. 1.
I EPIPHANIUS, Adv. ffceres., lib. i. torn, i., vol. i. p. 7 c.
WILKINSON S Manners and Customs of Egyptians, vol. v. p. 326.
68 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
must not reveal .... there is seen on a wall of the temple a mass
of light, which appears at a very great distance.
first at It is trans
formed, while unfolding into a visage evidently divine and
itself,
employed in the most ancient times, when the same effects were
produced. Now, in the hands of crafty, designing men, this was
a powerful means of imposing upon those who were willing to be
imposed upon, who were averse to the holy spiritual religion of the
living God, and who still hankered after the system that was put
down. It was easy for those who controlled the Mysteries, having
discovered secrets that were then unknown to the mass of mankind,
and which they carefully preserved in their own exclusive keeping,
to give them what might seem ocular demonstration, that Tammuz,
who had been slain, and for whom such lamentations had been made,
was still alive, and encompassed with divine and heavenly glory.
From the lips of one so gloriously revealed, or what was practically
*
DAMASCIUS, apud PHOTIUM, Bibliotheca, cod. 242, p. 343.
t One of the statements to which I refer is contained in the following words of
Moses of Chorene in his Armenian History, referring to the answer made by Semi
ramis to the friends of Araeus, who had been slain in battle by her Diis inquit
:
"
commands, says Semiramis, to my gods to lick the wounds of Arseus, and to raise
him from the dead. The gods, says she, have licked Araeus, and recalled him to
(MosES CHORONEN, lib. i. cap. 14, p. 42.) If Semiramis had really done
life."
what she said she had done, it would have been a miracle. The effects of magic
were sham miracles ; and Justin and Epiphanius show that sham miracles came
in at the very birth of idolatry. Now, unless the sham miracle of raising the
dead by magical arts had already been known to be practised in the days of
Semiramis, it is not likely that she would have given such an answer to those
whom she wished to propitiate ; for, on the one hand, how could she ever have
thought of sueh an answer, and on the other, how could she expect that it would
have the intended effect, if there was no current belief in the practices of necro
mancy ? We find that in Egypt, about the same age, such magic arts must have
been practised, if Manetho is to be believed. "Manetho says," according to
Josephus, that he [the elder Horus, evidently spoken of as a human and mortal
"
king] was admitted to the sight of the gods, and that Amenophis desired the same
Oewp yeveaQai 6ta.Tyv utnrep Op; so it stood in the old copies.
privilege."
(JOSEPHUS, contra APION, lib. i. p. 932.) This pretended admission to the sight
of the gods evidently implies the use of the magic art referred to in the
text.
THE DEIFICATION OF THE CHILD. 69
the same, from the lips of some unseen priest, speaking in his name
from behind the scenes, what could be too wonderful or incredible
to be believed 1 Thus the whole system of the secret Mysteries of
Babylon was intended to glorify a dead man ; and when once the
worship of one dead established, the worship of many more
man was
was sure to This casts light upon the language of the
follow.
106th Psalm, where the Lord, upbraiding Israel for their apostacy,
They joined themselves to Baalpeor, and ate the sacrifices
"
says :
of the dead." Thus, too, the way was paved for bringing in all the
abominations and crimes of which the Mysteries became the scenes ;
for, to those who liked not to retain God in their knowledge, who
preferred some visible object of worship, suited to the sensuous
feelings of their carnal minds, nothing could seem a more cogent
reason for faith or practice than to hear with their own ears a com
mand given forth amid so glorious a manifestation apparently by the
very divinity they adored.
The scheme, thus skilfully formed, took effect. Semiramis gained
glory from her dead and deified husband ; and in course of time
both of them, under the names of Rhea and Nin, or Goddess- "
sacred writings teach that this mysterious offering before all creation
is the foundation of all the sacrifices that have ever been offered
excellence
"
"
most precious gift that love Divine could give to a guilty world,
" "
and which, while the blood of the only genuine Victim-Man," is at "
the same time, in deed and in truth, "The blood of God" (Acts
xx. 28). Even in Greece itself, though the doctrine was utterly
perverted, it was not entirely lost. It was mingled with falsehood
and fable, it was hid from the multitude ; but yet, in the secret
mystic system it necessarily occupied an important place. As
Servius tells us that the grand purpose of the Bacchic orgies was "
and in India as the Victim-Man," among the Buddhists of the East, "
and it was taught that, in the world of spirits, all must appear before
his dread tribunal, to have their destiny assigned them.** As the
*
The expression used in Exodus xxviii. 38, for "bearing iniquity or sin in a
"
vicarious manner is nsha eon (the first letter eon being ayn).
" "
for A synonym
eon, aon (the first letter being
"iniquity,"
is
aleph). (See PARKHDRST sub voce
An, No. IV.) In Chaldee the first letter a becomes i, and therefore aon,
"iniquity,"
is ion. Then nsha to bear," in "
As the Greeks had no sh, that became nusa. De, or Da, is the demonstrative
pronoun signifying "That" or "The great." And thus ion-nusa" is
"
D exactly
The great sin-bearer." That the classic Pagans had the very idea
"
of the
imputation of sin, and of vicarious suffering, is proved by what Ovid says in
regard to Olenos. Olenos is said to have taken upon him and willingly to have
borne the blame of guilt of which he was innocent :
"
(OviD, Metam., vol. ii. p. 486.) Under the load of this imputed guilt, voluntarily
taken upon himself, Olenos is represented as having suffered such horror as to
have perished, being petrified or turned into stone. As the stone into which
Olenos was changed was erected on the holy mountain of Ida, that shows that
Olenos must have been regarded as a sacred person. The real character of Olenos,
as the "sin-bearer," can be very fully established. See
Appendix, Note F.
t MAHAWANSO, xxxi. apud POCOCKE S India in Greece, p. 185.
ATHEN/EUS, lib. xv. p. 675.
WILKINSON S Egyptians, vol. iv. p. 189.
||Ibid. p. 310.
IT RUSSELL S Egypt, p. 79.
**
WILKINSON, vol. iv. pp. 310, 314.
THE DEIFICATION OF THE CHILD. 73
Man whose
Branch of
name was the branch," he was celebrated not only as the "
Branch of
graciously given to the earth for God,"
healing all the ills that flesh is heir to.* He was worshipped in
Babylon under the name of El-Bar, or God the Son." Under this
"
it. Under the same name he has been found by Sir H. Rawlinson,
the names and the Shining Bar being in immediate jux
" "
worshipped under the name of the Eternal Boy. Thus daringly "
"IF
*
Thisthe esoteric meaning of Virgil s Golden Branch," and of the Misle-
is
"
by another reading of the same name as given in Greek (in p. 712 of BifNSEN,
Note). There the name is Alasparos. Now Pyrisporus, as applied to Bacchus,
means Ignigena, or the Seed of Fire ; and Ala-sporos, the
"
just a similar expression formed in the same way, the name being Grecised. It
is well known that the Greek
cnreipd) comes from the Hebrew Zero, both signifying
as verbs to sow. The formation of <nreipu comes thus The active participle of :
Zero is Zuro, which, used as a verb, becomes Zwero, Zvero, and Zpero. Ala "
of the god Bar, yet by making him Typhon he implies his degradation. See
EPIPHANIUS, Adv. Jfcereses, lib. iii. torn, ii., vol. i. p. 1093.
H To understand the true meaning of the above expression, reference must be
had to a remarkable form of oath among the Romans. In Rome the most sacred
form of an oath was (as we learn from AULUS GELLIUS, i. 21, p. 192), Per Jovem "
LAPIDEM,"
"
Now while the mother derived her glory in the first instance from
the divine character attributed to the child in her arms, the mother
in the long-run practically eclipsed the son. At first, in all likeli
hood, there would be no thought whatever of ascribing divinity to
the mother. There was an express promise that necessarily led
mankind to expect that, at some time or other, the Son of God, in
amazing condescension, should appear in this world as the Son of
man. But there was no promise whatever, or the least shadow of a
promise, to lead any one to anticipate that a woman should ever be
invested with attributes that should raise her to a level with
Divinity. It is in the last degree improbable, therefore, that when
the mother was first exhibited with the child in her arms, it should
be intended to give divine honours to her. She was doubtless used
chiefly as a pedestal for the upholding of the divine Son, and holding
him forth to the adoration of mankind \ and glory enough it would
be counted for her, alone of all the daughters of Eve, to have given
birth to the promised seed, the world s only hope. But while this,
no doubt, was the design, it is a plain principle in all"idolatries that
that which most appeals to the senses must make the most powerful
impression. Now the Son, even in his new incarnation, when
Nimrod was believed to have reappeared in a fairer form, was
exhibited merely as a child, without any very particular attraction ;
while the mother in whose arms he was, was set off with all the art
of painting and sculpture, as invested with much of that extraordinary
Babylon, representing her in the guise in which she had fascinated ,<*
late lap idem back into the sacred tongue, or Chaldee, and the oath stands, By
"
Jove, the Son," or "By the son of Jove." Ben, which in Hebrew is Son* in
Chaldee becomes Eben, which also signifies a stone, as may be seen in Eben- "
been,
oath had been taken in the form above referred to ; and, it shows, also, what was
really meant when Bacchus, "the son of Jovis," was called "The Eternal Boy."
OVID, Metam., iv. 17, 18.
*
VALERIUS MAXIMUS, lib. ix., cap. 3, leaf 193, p. 2. Valerius Maximus does not
mention anything about the representation of Semiramis with the child in her
arms but as Semiramis was deified as Rhea, whose distinguishing character was
;
THE MOTHER OF THE CHILD. 75
i.e., Semi-
"
ramis. The Roman Venus, as is well known, was the Cyprian Venus,
and the Venus of Cyprus is historically proved to have been derived
from Babylon. (See Chap. IV. Sect. III.) Now, what in these
circumstances might have been expected actually took place. If the
child was to be adored, much more the mother. The mother, in
point of fact, became the favourite object of worship. J To justify
this worship, the mother was raised to divinity as well as her son,
and she was looked upon as destined to complete that bruising of the
serpent s head, which it was easy, if such a thing was needed, to find
abundant and plausible reasons for alleging that Ninus or Nimrod,
the great Son, in his mortal life had only begun.
The Roman Church maintains that it was not so much the seed of
the woman, as the woman herself, that was to bruise the head of the
serpent. In defiance of all grammar, she renders the Divine de
nunciation against the serpent thus "She shall bruise thy head, and
:
thou shalt bruise her heel." The same was held by the ancient Baby
lonians, and symbolically represented in their temples. In the upper
most storey of the tower of Babel, or temple of Belus, Diodorus
Siculus tells us there stood three images of the great divinities of
that of goddess Mother, and as we have evidence that the name, Seed of the
"
Woman," or Zoroastes, goes back to the earliest times viz., her own day (CLERI-
CUS, De Chaldceis, lib. i. sect, i., cap. 3, torn. ii. p. 199), this implies that if there
was any image-worship in these times, that Seed of the Woman must have
"
"
occupied a prominent place in it. As over all the world the Mother and the child
appear in some shape or other, and are found on the early Egyptian monuments,
that shows that this worship must have had its roots in the primeval ages of the
world. If, therefore, the mother was represented in so fascinating a form when
singly represented, we may be sure that the same beauty for which she was cele
brated would be given to her when exhibited with the child in her arms.
*
SANCHUNIATHON, p. 25.
t From Asht-trt.See Appendix, On the meaning of the name Astarte."
"
How
extraordinary, yea, frantic, was the devotion in the minds of the Baby
lonians to this goddess queen, is sufficiently proved by the statement of Hero
dotus, lib. i. cap. 199, as to the way in which she required to be propitiated.
That a whole people should ever have consented to such a custom as is there de
scribed, shows the amazing hold her worship must have gained over them. Non-
nus, speaking of the same goddess, calls her "The hope of the whole world,"
EXTi-is oXou KoafjLOLo. (DIONUSIACA, lib. xli., in BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 226.) It was
the same goddess, as we have seen (pp. 29, 30), who was worshipped at Ephesus,
whom Demetrius the silversmith characterised as the goddess whom all Asia and
"
the world worshipped" (Acts xix. 27). So great was the devotion to this goddess
queen, not of the Babylonians only, but of the ancient world in general, that the
fame of the exploits of Semiramis has, in history, cast the exploits of her husband
Ninus or Nimrod, entirely into the shade.
In regard to the identification of Rhea or Cybele and Venus, see Appendix,
Note G.
76 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
Babylon ;
and one of these was of a woman grasping a serpent s head*
Among the Greeks the same thing was symbolised ; for Diana, whose
real character was originally the same as that of the great Babylonian
*
DIODORUS, Bibliotheca, lib. ii. p. 70. See Fig. 23, p. 60, ante, where an
Egyptian goddess, in imitation of Horus, pierces a serpent s head.
t See ante, pp. 29, 30.
t See SMITH S Classical Dictionary, p. 320.
The term Alma is the precise term used by Isaiah in the Hebrew of the Old
Testament, when announcing, 700 years before the event, that Christ should b
born of a Virgin. If the question should be asked, how this Hebrew term Alma
(not in a Roman, but a Hebrew sense) could find its way to Rome, the answer is,
Through Etruria, which had an intimate connection with Assyria (see LAYAED,
Nineveh and Babylon, p. 190). The word "mater" itself, from which comes our
own "mother," is originally Hebrew. It comes from Heb. Msh, draw forth,"
"to
in Egyptian Ms, to bring forth" (BuNSEN, vol. i. p. 540), which in the Chaldee
"
goddess of impurity and licentiousness (Aug., De Civitate Dei, lib. ii. cap. 26).
Augustine elsewhere says that Vesta, the virgin goddess, "was by some called
Venus" (Ibid. lib. iv. cap. 10).
Even in the mythology of our own Scandinavian ancestors, we have a remark
able evidence that Alma Mater, or the Virgin Mother, had been originally known
to them. One of their gods called Heirndal, who is described in the most exalted
terms, as having such quick perceptions as that he could hear the grass growing
on the ground, or the wool on the sheep s back, and whose trumpet, when it blew,
could be heard through all the worlds, is called by the paradoxical name, the son "
That son was everywhere known as the "saviour seed." Zera-hosha (in Zend,
"
centuries, some say for thousands of years before that event, the
Buddhist priests had a tradition that a Virgin was to bring forth a
child to bless the world.* That this tradition came from no Popish
or Christian source,is evident from the surprise felt and expressed
Virgo Deipara,"
"
trace of either the name or history of our Lord Jesus Christ having
ever been known. J The primeval promise that the "seed of the
woman should bruise the serpent s head," naturally suggested the
idea of a miraculous birth. Priestcraft and human presumption set
themselves wickedly to anticipate the fulfilment of that promise ;
and the Babylonian queen seems to have been the first to whom that
honour was given. The highest titles were accordingly bestowed
upon her. She was called the queen of heaven." "
(Jeremiah xliv.
17, 18, 19, 25.) In Egypt she was styled Athor i.e., "the Habita
tion of God,"|| to signify that in her dwelt all the fulness of the
"
No
mortal has removed my veil. The fruit which I have brought forth
is the Sun. In Greece she had the name of Hestia, and amongst
"II
*
Asiatic Researches, vol. x. p. 27.
f See Sir J. F. DAVIS S China, vol. ii. p. 56, and LAFITAN, who says that the
accounts sent home by the Popish missionaries bore that the sacred books of the
Chinese spoke not merely of a Holy Mother, but of a Virgin Mother (vol. i. p.
235, Note). See also SALVERTE, De Sciences Occultes, Appendix, Note A, Sect. 12,
p. 490. The reader may
find additional testimonies to the very same effect in
PRESCOTT S Conquest of Mexico, vol. i. pp. 53, 54, Note. For further evidence on
this fmbject, see Appendix, Note H.
PARSON S Japhet, pp. 205, 206.
When "the woman," came to be called the
Ashta, or queen of heaven," the
"
accounts for what we find so common among the ancient nations of the East, that
queens and the most exalted personages were addressed by the name of woman."
"
our word "Queen is derived from Cwino, which in the ancient Gothic just
"
signified a woman.
BUNSEN, vol. i. p. 401.
||
in regard to Hestia, show that the name is derived from Hes or Hese, to cover,
"
to shelter," which is the very idea of a house, which covers or shelters from
" "
" "
78 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
**
Daughter of Saturn, venerable dame,
Who dwell st amid great fire s eternal flame,
In thee the gods have fix d their DWELLING-PLACE,
*
Strong stable basis of the mortal race."
Even when Vesta is identified with fire, this same character of Vesta
as "The Thus Philolaus,
Dwelling-Place" still
distinctly appears.
speaking of a fire in the middle of the centre of the world, calls it
The Vesta of the universe, The HOUSE of Jupiter, The mother of
"
the gods."f
In Babylon, the title of the goddess-mother as the
Dwelling-place of God was Sacca, or in the emphatic form, Sacta, :[
that is, "The Tabernacle." Hence, at this day, the great goddesses
in India, as wielding all the power of the god whom they represent,
are called "Sacti," or the Tabernacle." Now in her, as the Taber
"
nacle or Temple of God, not only all power, but all grace and good
ness were believed to dwell. Every quality of gentleness and mercy
was regarded as centred in her ; and when death had closed her
career, while she was fabled to have been deified and changed into a
pigeon, to express the celestial benignity of her nature, she was
1 1
Hes
to protect," to
" "
"show
mercy,"
and from this evidently comes the character of Hestia as "the
(See SMITH.) Taking Hestia as derived from Hes,
"
protectress of suppliants." to
cover," or "shelter," the following statement of Smith is easily accounted for:
Hestia was the goddess of domestic life, and the giver of all domestic happiness ;
"
as such she was believed to dwell in the inner part of every house, and to have in
be supposed to be the original idea of
"
Hestia, how could "fire ever have been supposed to be the builder of houses ?
" "
"
;
while Ashta "
Woman "
"
"
also signified The fire ; and thus Hestia or Vesta, as the Babylonian system was
" "
For the reason that suggested the idea of the Goddess-mother being a Habitation,
see Appendix, Note I.
*
TAYLOR S Orphic Hymns : Hymn to Vesta, p. 175. Though Vesta is here called
the daughter of Saturn, she is also identified in all the Pantheons with Cybele or
Rhea, the wife of Saturn.
t Note to TAYLOR S Orphic Hymns, p. 156,
+ For the worship of Sacca, in the character of Anaitis i.e., Venus, see
CHESNEY S Euphrates Expedition, vol. i. p. 381.
KENNEDY and MOOR,
passim. synonym for Sacca, tabernacle," is A "a
the word, the name of the wife of the god Buddha seems to be derived, which, in
KENNEDY, is Ahalya (pp. 246, 256), and in MOOR S Pantheon, Ahilya (p. 264).
From the second form, in like manner, seems to be derived the name of the wife
of the Patriarch of the Peruvians, "Mama Oe (PRESCOTT S Peru, vol. i. pp. llo."
7, 8.) Mama was by the Peruvians used in the Oriental sense Oe llo, in all like ;
will remember the title of one of the fables in OVID S Metamorphoses. Semiramis "
herself, is evidently the same name as the above. Dione, as meaning Venus, is
clearly applied by Ovid to the Babylonian goddess. Fasti, lib. ii. 461-464, vol.
iii.
p. 113.
THE MOTHER OF THE CHILD. 79
article,
"
was much more in the symbol than a mere memorial of that great
event. "
A
branch," as has been already proved, was
the symbol of
the deified son, and when the deified mother was represented as a
Dove, what could the meaning of this representation be but just to
identify her with the Spirit of all grace, that brooded, dove-like, over
the deep at the creation ; for in the sculptures at Nineveh, as we
have seen, the wings and tail of the dove represented the third
member of the idolatrous Assyrian trinity. In confirmation of this
Fig. 25.
*
LAYARD S Nineveh and Babylon, p. 250.
t From Ze, "the"
"that," emir, "branch," and amit, "bearer," in the
or
feminine. HESYCHIUS, sub voce, says that Semiramis is a name for a "wild
pigeon." The above explanation of the original meaning of the name Semiramis,
as referring to Noah s wild pigeon (for it was evidently a wild one, as the tame
one would not have suited the experiment), may account for its application by the
Greeks to any wild pigeon.
J BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 84. The branch in the hand of Cybele in the above cut
is only a conventional branch but in the figure given by Layard it is distinctly
;
an olive branch.
FIRMICUS, De Errore, cap. 4, p. 9.
80 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
Whence could the soul the spirit of man be supposed to have its
origin, but from the Spirit of God. In accordance with this char
acter of Juno as the incarnation of the Divine Spirit, the source of
life, and also as the goddess of the air, thus is she invoked in the
"Orphic Hymns":
was that was supposed to dwell in her even the Spirit of God.
When such transcendent dignity was bestowed on her, when such
winning characters were attributed to her, and when, over and above
all,her images presented her to the eyes of men as Venus Urania,
the heavenly Venus," the queen of beauty, who assured her wor
"
the kings of Europe and Asia, with the most profound religious
*
PROCLUS, lib. vi. cap. 22, vol. ii. p. 76.
f TAYLOR S Orphic Hymns, p. 50. Every classical reader must be aware of the
identification of Juno with the air. The following, however, as still further illus
trative of the subject from Proclus, may not be out of place The series of our :
"
sovereign mistress Juno, beginning from on high, pervades the last of things, and
her allotment in the sublunary region is the air for air is a symbol of soul, accord ;
ing to which also soul is called a spirit, irveviMa" PROCLUS, Ibid. p. 197.
BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 145.
From Ze, the great," and Maaon," or Ma ion, a habitation," "
or
"that,"
" "
which, in the Ionic dialect, in which Lucian, the describer of the goddess, wrote,
would naturally become Meion.
THE MOTHER OF THE CHILD. 81
heaven was the greatest and most worshipped of all the divini
" "
the prophet, all the men which knew that their wives had burnt
"
incense unto other gods, and all the women that stood by, a great
multitude, even all the people that dwelt in the land of Egypt, in
Pathros, answered Jeremiah, saying, As for the word that thou hast
spoken unto us in the name of the Lord, we will not hearken unto
thee ; but we will certainly do whatsoever thing goeth forth out of
our own mouth, to burn incense unto the queen of heaven, and to
pour out drink-offerings unto her, as we have done, we, and our
fathers, our kings, and our princes, in the cities of Judah, and in the
streets of Jerusalem for then had we plenty of victuals, and were
:
well, and saw no evil" (Jer. xliv. 15-17). Thus did the Jews, God s
* Dt
JOANNES CLERICUS, Philos. Orient., lib. ii., Persis, cap. 9, vol. ii. p. 340.
j- TACITUS, Oermania, ix. torn. ii. p. 386.
J CJSSAR, De Bello Gallico, lib. vi. cap. 13, p. 121. The name Druid has been
thought to be derived from the Greek Drus, an oak tree, or the Celtic Deru, which
has the same meaning but this is obviously a mistake. In Ireland, the name for
;
a Druid is Droi, and in Wales Dryw and it will be found that the connection of ;
the Druids with the oak was more from the mere similarity of their name to that
of the oak, than because they derived their name from it. The Druidic system in
all its parts was evidently the Babylonian system. Dionysius informs us, that the
rites of Bacchus were duly celebrated in the British Islands (PERIERGESIS, v. 56.5,
p. 29) and Strabo cites Artemidorus to show that, in an island close to Britain,
Ceres and Proserpine were venerated with rites similar to the orgies of Samoth-
race. (Lib. iv. p. 190.) It will be seen from the account of the Druidic Ceridwen
and her child, afterwards to be noticed (see Chap. IV. Sect. III.) that there
was a great analogy between her character and that of the great goddess-mother
of Babylon. Such was the system and the name Dryw, or Droi, applied to the ;
priests, is in exact accordance with that system. The name Zero, given in Hebrew
or the early Chaldee, to the son of the great goddess queen, in later Chaldee be
came Dero." The priest of Dero, the seed," was called, as is the case in almost
" "
all religions, by the name of his god ; and hence the familiar name Druid is "
"
thus proved to signify the priest of Dero the woman s promised seed." The " " "
*
classical Hamadryads were evidently in like manner priestesses of "Hamed-dero,
"
Nimrod,"
"
*
a Woman clothed with the sun, and the moon under her feet, and
upon her head a crown of twelve stars. "The votaries of Mary,"
"!
adds he, "do not exceed the true faith, unless the blasphemers of her
Son came up to it. The Church of Rome is not idolatrous, unless
Arianism is orthodoxy."} This is the very poetry of blasphemy.
*
Nimrod, iii. p. 329, quoted in Quarterly Journal of Prophecy, July, 1852,
p. 244.
t NEWMAN S Development, pp. 405, 406. The intelligent reader will see at a
glance the absurdity of applying this vision of the woman of the Apocalypse " "
"symbol" (semeion).
If the woman here is a literal woman, the woman that sits
on the seven hills must be the same. The woman in both cases is a symbol.
"
"
"
"
you *?
a truth that enhances every comfort when enjoyed, and takes the
sting out of every trouble when it comes, that every genuine Christian
has less or more experience of what is contained in these words of
the same apostle (2 Cor. vi. 16), "Ye are the temple of the living
God ; as God hath said, I will dwell in them and walk in them, and
I will be their God, and they shall be my people." It must also be
admitted, and gladly admitted, that this implies the indwelling of all
the Persons of the glorious Godhead ; for the Lord Jesus hath said
(John xiv. 23), If a man love me, he will keep my words ; and my
"
Father will love him, and WE will come unto him, and make our
abode with him." But while admitting all this, on examination it
will be found that the Popish and the Scriptural ideas conveyed
*
Journal of Professor GIBSON, in Scottish Protestant, vol. i. p. 464.
f The Golden Manual, in Scottish Protestant, vol. ii. p. 271. The word here
used for in the Latin of this work is a pure Chaldee word
"
Dwelling-place
Zabulo," and is from the same verb as Zebulun (Gen. xxx. 20), the name which
"
was given by Leah to her son, when she said Now will my husband dwell "
with me."
t Pancarpium Maries, p. 1 41. Garden of the Soul, p. 488.
Golden Manual,, in Scottish Protestant,
|| vol. ii.
p. 272.
84 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
exact Pagan meaning of the term viz., that the union between her
and the Godhead is a union akin to the hypostatical union between
the divine and human nature of Christ. The human nature of Christ
is the "
the habitation, the city of God is with men, and in men and for men,
for their salvation, and exaltation, and eternal glorification Is
it most clear that this is true of the holy church ? and in like manner
also equally true of the most holy sacrament of the Lord s body 1 Is
it (true) [of every one of us in as far as we are truly Christians ?
Undoubtedly ; but we have to contemplate this mystery (as existing)
in a peculiar manner in the most holy Mother of our Lord."* Then
the author, after endeavouring to show that Mary is rightly con
"
show in what sense she is regarded as the temple of the Holy Ghost :
R. Et EFFUDIT
"
*
Pancarpium Maria;, or Marianum, pp. 141, 142.
t Ibid. p. 142.
THE MOTHER OF THE CHILD. 85
identified with the Holy Ghost, when it speaks of her "being poured
out on all the works of God ; and that, as we have seen, was
" " "
Tabernacle "
have been accounted of any weight in this argument if she had stood
alone, for it might have been supposed in that case that the epithet
yellow-haired was borrowed from the corn that was supposed to be
"
"
under her guardian care. But many other goddesses have the very
same epithet applied to them. Europa, whom Jupiter carried away
in the form of a bull, is called "The yellow-haired Europa. "f
"the
yellow-haired the huntress Diana, who is commonly identi
;"
daughter of Jupiter,"|| a title which the pale face of the silver moon
could surely never have suggested. Dione, the mother of Venus, is
described by Theocritus as yellow-haired. Venus herself is "
"5T
*
Golden Manual, p. 649. This work has the imprimatur of "
Nicholas, Bishop
of Melipotamus,"now Cardinal Wiseman.
t OVID, Fasti, lib. v. 1. 609, torn. iii. p. 330.
I Iliad, lib. v. v. 420, torn. i. p. 205.
OVID, Tristium, lib. i. ; Elegia, p. 44 ;
and Fasti, lib. vi. v. 652, torn. iii.
p. 387.
i
ANACREON, Od. lx. p. 204.
vii. v.
** HOMER S Iliad, lib. v. v. 427.
*[ Idyll 116, p. 157.
86 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
"
"
The mermaid that figured so much in the romantic tales of the north,
which was evidently borrowed from the story of Atergatis, the fish
goddess of Syria, who was called the mother of Semiramis, and was
sometimes identified with Semiramis herself, was described with ||
Danish fair,"
"
Tales "
"1T
on the surface of the waters, and combing her long golden hair with
a golden comb."** Even when Athor, the Venus of Egypt, was re
presented as a cow, doubtless to indicate the complexion of the
goddess that cow represented, the cow s head and neck were gilded.^ f
When, therefore, it is known that the most famed pictures of the
Virgin Mother in Italy represented her as of a fair complexion and
with golden hair, and when over all Ireland the Virgin is almost
invariably represented at this day in the very same manner, who can
resist the conclusion that she must have been thus
represented, only
because she had been copied from the same prototype as the Pagan
divinities.
NOT agreement in complexion only, but also in features.
is this
Jewish are everywhere marked, and have a character
features
peculiarly their own. But the original Madonnas have nothing at all
of Jewish form or feature; but are declared by those who have
personally compared both,|f entirely to agree in this respect, as well
as in complexion, with the Babylonian Madonnas found by Sir
Robert Ker Porter among the ruins of Babylon.
*
Asiatic Researches, vol. xi. p. 134. f HESIOD, Theogonia, v. 947, p. 74.
$ Heathen Mythology Illustrated, p. 58. Ibid. p. 90.
IILucian de Dea Syria, vol. iii. pp. 460, 461. The name mentioned by Ltician
is Derketo, but it is well known that Derketo and Atergatis are the same.
Danish Tales, p. 36. ** Ibid.
p. 37.
1i
ft HERODOTUS, lib. ii. p. 158, and WILKINSON, vol. i., Note to p. 128.
JJ H. J. JONES, in Quarterly Journal of Prophecy, October, 1852, p. 331.
THE MOTHER OF THE CHILD. 87
representation of Circe,
"
her head surrounded with a circle, in the very same way as the head
of the Roman Madonna is at this day surrounded. Let any one
compare the nimbus around the head of Circe, with that around the
head of the Popish Virgin, and he will see how exactly they
correspond.*
Now, could any one possibly believe that all this coincidence could
be accidental. Of course, if the Madonna had ever so exactly
*
The explanation of the next woodcut is thus given in Pompeii, vol. ii. pp. 91,
92 : One of them [the paintings] is taken from the Odyssey, and represents
"
Ulysses and Circe, at the moment when the hero, having drunk the charmed cup
with impunity, by virtue of the antidote given him by Mercury [it is well known
that Circe had a golden cup/ even as the Venus of Babylon had], draws his
sword, and advances to avenge his companions," who, having drunk of her cup,
had been changed into swine. The goddess, terrified, makes her submission at
once, as described by Homer Ulysses himself being the narrator
; :
"
origin of that ugly and unmeaning glory by which the heads of saints are often
surrounded This glory was called nimbus, or aureola, and is defined by
Servius to be the luminous fluid which encircles the heads of the gods. (On
^NEIB, lib. ii. v. 616, vol. i. p. 165.) It belongs with peculiar propriety to Circe,
as the daughter of the Sun. The emperors, with their usual modesty, assumed it
as the mark of their divinity and under this respectable patronage it passed, like
;
many other Pagan superstitions and customs, into the use of the Church." The
emperors here get rather more than a fair share of the blame due to them. It was
not the emperors that brought "Pagan superstition" into the Church, so much
as the Bishop of Rome. See Chap. VII. Sect. II.
88 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
resembled the Virgin Mary, that would never have excused idolatry.
But when it is evident that the goddess enshrined in the Papal
Church for the supreme worship of its votaries, is that very Baby
lonian queen who set up Nimrod, or Ninus the Son," as the rival of
"
Christ, and who in her own person was the incarnation of every kind
of licentiousness, how dark a character does that stamp on the Roman
idolatry. What will it avail to migitate the heinous character of
that idolatry, to say that the child she holds forth to adoration is
called by the name of Jesus ? When she was worshipped with her
child in Babylon of old, that child was called by a name as peculiar
to Christ, as distinctive of His glorious character, as the name of
Jesus. He was called Zoro-ashta," the seed of the woman."
" "
But that did not hinder the hot anger of God from being directed
against those in the days of old who worshipped that "image of
jealousy, provoking to jealousy."* Neither can the giving of the
Fig. 26.
*
Ezek. There have been many speculations about what this "image
viii. 3.
could be. But when it is known that the grand feature of ancient
"
of jealousy
idolatry was just the worship of the Mother and the child, and that child as the
Son of God incarnate, all is plain. Compare verses 3 and 5 with verse 14, and it
will be seen that the women weeping for Tammuz were weeping close beside
"
"
fears God, and who reads these lines, who would not admit that
Paganism alone could ever have inspired such a doctrine as that
avowed by the Melchites at the Nicene Council, that the Holy
Trinity consisted of the Father, the Virgin Mary, and the Messiah "
their Son ? * Is there one who would not shrink with horror from
"
such a thought ? What, then, would the reader say of a Church that
teaches its children to adore such a Trinity as that contained in the
following lines ?
"
*
Quarterly Journal of Prophecy, July, 1852, p. 244.
t What every Christian must Know and Do. By the Rev. J. FURNI&S. Pub
lished by James Duffy, Dublin. The edition of this Manual of Popery quoted
above, besides the blasphemy it contains, contains most immoral principles,
teaching distinctly the harmlessness of fraud, if only kept within due bounds.
On this account, a great outcry having been raised against it, I believe this edition
has been withdrawn from general circulation. The genuineness of the passage
above given is, however, beyond all dispute. I received myself from a friend in
Liverpool a copy of the edition containing these words, which is now in my pos
session, having previously seen them in a copy in the possession of the Rev.
Richard Smyth of Armagh. It is not in Ireland, however, only, that such a
trinity is exhibited for the worship of Romanists. In a Card, or Fly-leaf, issued
by the Popish priests of Sunderland, now lying before me, with the heading
Paschal Duty, St. Mary s Church, Bishopwearmouth, 1859," the following is the
"
"
4. And
never forget the acts of a good Christian, recommended to you so often during the
renewal of the Mission.
Blessed be Jesus, Mary, and Joseph.
Jesus, Mary, and Joseph, I give you my heart, my life, and my soul.
Jesus, Mary, and Joseph, assist me always and in my last agony,
;
To induce the adherents of Rome to perform this act of a good Christian," a "
In the morning, :
"
before you get up, make the sign of the cross, and say, Jesus, Mary, and Joseph,
I give you my heart and my soul. (Each time you say this prayer, you get an
indulgence of 100 days, which you can give to the souls in Purgatory) I must !
add that the title of Furniss s book, as given above, is the title of Mr. Smyth s
copy. The title of the copy in my possession is What every Christian must "
Know." London Richardson & Son, 147 Strand. Both copies alike have the
:
blasphemous words given in the text, and both have the "Imprimatur" of
"
Paulus Cullen."
90 OBJECTS OF WORSHIP.
of Dublin. Will any one after this say that the Roman Catholic
Church must still be called Christian, because it holds the doctrine
of the Trinity ? So did the Pagan Babylonians, o did the Egyptians,
so do the Hindoos at this hour, in the very same sense in which
Rome does. They all admitted A trinity, but did they worship THE
Triune Jehovah, the King Eternal, Immortal, and Invisible ? And
will any one say with such evidence before him, that Rome does so ?
Away then, with the deadly delusion that Rome is Christian!
There might once have been some palliation for entertaining such a
supposition ; but every day the Grand Mystery is revealing itself
" "
more and more in its true character. There is not, and there cannot
any safety for the souls of men in Come out of
" "
be, Babylon."
FESTIVALS.
sorts of cattle with the Jews .... there are the cattle of the house that lie
in the city the cattle of the wilderness are they that lie in the pasttirea.
;
On which one of the commentators (MAIMONIDKS, in Misn. Betza, cap. 5, sect. 7),
*
observes, These lie in the pastures, which are in the villages, all the days
of the cold and heat, and do not go into the cities until the rains descend. The
first rain falls in the month Marches van, which answers to the latter part of our
91
92 FESTIVALS.
that the birth of Christ could have taken place at the end of
December. There is great unanimity among commentators on this
point. Besides Barnes, Doddridge, Lightfoot, Joseph Scaliger, and
Jennings, in his Jewish Antiquities," who are all of opinion that
"
December 25th could not be the right time of our Lord s nativity,
the celebrated Joseph Mede pronounces a very decisive opinion to
the same effect. After a long and careful disquisition on the subject,
among other arguments he adduces the following At the birth :
"
Christ s nativity when they disagreed about the month and the day when Christ
was born." See also Rev. J. RYLE, in his Commentary on Luke, chap, ii., Note to
verse 8, who admits that the time of Christ s birth is uncertain, although he
opposes the idea that the flocks could not have been in the open fields in
December, by an appeal to Jacob s complaint to Laban, By day the drought
"
consumed me, and the frost by night." Now the whole force of Jacob s
complaint against his churlish kinsman lay in this, that Laban made him do
what no other man would have done, and, therefore, if he refers to the cold nights
of winter (which, however, is not the common understanding of the expression), it
proves just the opposite of what it is brought by Mr. Ryle to prove viz., that it
was not the custom for shepherds to tend their flocks in the fields by night in winter.
J GIESELER, vol. i. p. 54, and Note. CHRYSOSTOM (Monitum in Horn, de Natal.
Christi), writing in Antioch about A.D. 380, says : is not yet ten years since
"It
this day was made known to us" (Vol. ii., p. 352). "What follows," adds
recent date could assume the character of apostolic institutions." Thus proceeds
Among those inhabiting the west, it was known before from
"
Chrysostom :
ancient and primitive times, and to the dwellers from Thrace to Gadeira [Cadiz]
CHRISTMAS AND LADY-DAY. 93
era itself, a festival was celebrated among the heathen, at that precise
time of the year, in honour of the birth of the son of the Babylonian
queen of heaven ; and it may fairly be presumed that, in order to
conciliate the heathen, and to swell the number of the nominal
adherents of Christianity, the same festival was adopted by the
Roman Church, giving it only the name of Christ. This tendency
on the part of Christians to meet Paganism half-way was very early
developed ; and we find Tertullian, even in his day, about the year
230, bitterly lamenting the inconsistency of the disciples of Christ in
this respect, and contrasting it with the strict fidelity of the Pagans
to their own superstition.
"
||
itwas previously familiar and well-known," that is, the birth-day of our Lord,
which was unknown at Antioch in the east, on the very borders of the Holy
Land, where He was born, was perfectly well known in all the European region of
the west, from Thrace even to Spain !
*
He is speaking of Jewish Sabbaths.
t TERTULLIAN, De Idololatria, c. 14, vol. i.
p. 682. For the excesses connected
with the Pagan practice of the first foot on New Year s day, see GIESELER, vol. i.
infant."
Gideon. In Scotland, at least in the Lowlands, the Yule- cakes are also called
Nur-cakes (the u being pronounced as the French u). Now in Chaldee Nour
94 FESTIVALS.
Mother-night,"
the sun-god, and that Meni in like manner designates the moon-
divinity.lF Meni, or Manai, signifies
"
goddesses, called
evidently derived their name from the cognate Chaldee word Nor," a child.
"
*
SHARON TURNER S Anglo-Saxons, vol. i. p. 219.
t SALVERTJJ;, Des Sciences Occultes, p. 491.
STANLEY, p. 1066, col. 1.
SHARON TURNER, vol. i.
p. 213. Turner cites an Arabic poem which proves
that a female sun and a masculine moon were recognised in Arabia as well as by
the Anglo-Saxons. (Ibid.)
In the authorised version Gad is rendered
||
that troop," and Meni, that " "
number but the most learned admit that this is incorrect, and that the words
;"
character was that of the sun-god, for he was the first grand warrior ; and, under
CHRISTMAS AND LADY-DAY. 95
the changes of the moon that the months are numbered Psalm civ. :
19, He appointed the moon for seasons the sun knoweth the time
"
of its going down." The name of the Man of the Moon," or the "
god who presided over that luminary among the Saxons, was Mane,
as given in the Edda,"* and Mani, in the
"
the birth of the "Lord Moon" that was celebrated among our
ancestors at Christmas, we have remarkable evidence in the name
that is still given in the lowlands of Scotland to the feast on the last
day of the year, which seems to be a remnant of the old birth festival
for the cakes then made are called Nur-Cakes, or JBirth-csikQS. That
name Hogmanay. J Now, Hog-Manai in Chaldee signifies The
" "
"
is
feast of theNumberer in other words, The festival of Deus Lunus,
"
other hand, seems just a synonym for the name of Gush or Chus, which, while it
signifies "to cover" or "hide," signifies also "to count or number." The true
proper meaning of the name Gush is, I have no doubt, The numberer or "
"
Arithmetician ; for while Nimrod his son, as the mighty one, was the grand
" "
" "
sacrifice
intimately combined, to enable him to do so with effect, it was indispensable that
he should be pre-eminently skilled in the science of numbers. Now, Hermes (that
is Gush) is said to have "first discovered numbers, and the art of reckoning,
geometry, and astronomy, the games of chess and hazard" (Ibid. p. 3) and it is ;
in all probability from reference to the meaning of the name of Gush, that some
called NUMBER the father of gods and men" (Ibid. vol. iv. p. 196). The
"
name Meni is just the Chaldee form of the Hebrew Mene"," the numberer for " " "
in Chaldee i often takes the place of the final e. As we have seen reason to con
clude with Gesenius, that Nebo, the great prophetic god of Babylon, was just the
same god as Hermes (see ante, p. 25), this shows the peculiar emphasis of the first
words in the Divine sentence that sealed the doom of Belshazzar, as representing
the primeval god MENE, MENE, Tekel, Upharsin," which is as much as covertly
"
Gush (see ante, p. 49). hence the pouring out of the drink-offering to him as the
god of the cup ; and as he was the great Diviner, hence the divinations as to the
future year, which Jerome connects with the divinity referred to by Isaiah. Now
Hermes, in Egypt as the "numberer," was identified with the moon that numbers
the months. He was called Lord of the moon" (BuNSEN, vol. i. p. 394) and
"
emblematic of a year" (Ibid. p. 2). Thus, then, if Gad was the sun-divinity,"
"
*
MALLET, vol. ii. p. 24. Edin. 1809.
t Supplement to IDA PFEIFFEK S Iceland, pp. 322, 323.
See JAMIESON S Scottish Dictionary, sub voce. Jamieson gives a good many
speculations from different authors in regard to the meaning of the term
"
"
Hog
manay ; but the following extract is all that it seems necessary to quote :
Hogmanay, the name appropriated by the vulgar to the last day in the year.
"
Sibb thinks that the term may be .... allied to the Scandinavian Hoeg-tid, a
term applied to Christmas, and various other festivals of the Church." As the
Scandinavian "tid" means time," and
"
hoeg-tid" is applied
to festivals of the "
;"
but that shows that "hoeg" has just the meaning which I have attached to Hog
the Chaldee meaning.
96 FESTIVALS.
*
HIERONYM, vol. ii. p. 217.
f PLUTARCH, De Isidc, vol. ii. sect. 52, p. 372 ; I). MACROB. Saturn., lib. i.
cap.
21, P 71..
tenance the idea of the birth, of the "Sun-god." The Pracrit name is still nearer
the Scriptural name of the promised "seed." It is Suro." It has been seen, in
"
a previous Chapter (p. 77), that in Egypt also the Sun was represented as born
of a goddess.
Subsequently the number of the days of the Saturnalia was increased to
y
seven. See JUSTUS LIPSIUS, Opera, torn, ii., Saturnal, lib. i. cap. 4.
CHRISTMAS AND LADY-DAY. 97
of the Yule Log into the fire on Christmas-eve, and the appearance
of the Christmas-tree the next morning. As Zero-ashta, The seed "
of the woman," which name also signified Ignigena, or born of the "
fire,"
born the next day out of it, as the Branch of God," or the Tree that "
brings all divine gifts to men. But why, it may be asked, does he
enter the fire under the symbol of a Log? To understand this, it
I In ATHEN^EUS, xiv. C.
p. 639,
From Tzohkh,"
"
may only be a
"anes" termination signifying "
must be remembered that the divine child born at the winter solstice
was born as a new incarnation of the great god (after that god had
been cut in on purpose to revenge his death upon his
pieces),
murderers.* Now
the great god, cut off in the midst of his power
and glory, was symbolised as a huge tree, stripped of all its branches,
and cut down almost to the ground, f But the great serpent, the
symbol of the life restoring J ^Esculapius, twists itself around the
dead stock (see Fig. 27), and lo, at its side up sprouts a young tree
a tree of an entirely different kind, that is destined never to be cut
down by hostile power even the palm-tree, the well-known symbol
of victory. The Christmas-tree, as has been stated, was generally at
Rome a different tree, even the fir ; but the very same idea as was
implied in the palm-tree was implied in the Christmas-fir ; for that
covertly symbolised the new-born God as Baal-berith, Lord of the "
||
II,"
"
some marvellous power was attributed to the misletoe branch ; for it was able to
do what nothing else in the compass of creation could accomplish ; it slew the
divinity on whom the Anglo-Saxons regarded
"
of their "heaven"
as "depending." Now, all that is necessary to unravel this apparent
inconsistency,
is just to understand the branch that had such power, as a symbolical expres
" "
sion for the true Messiah. The Bacchus of the Greeks came evidently to be
recognised as the
"
by his mother in consequence of intercourse with Jupiter, when that god had
appeared in the form of a serpent. (See DYMOCK S Classical Dictionary, sub voce
If the character of Balder was the same, the story of his death
"
Deois.") just
amounted to this, that the "seed of the serpent" had been slain by the "seed of
the woman." This story, of course, must have originated with his enemies. But
the idolaters took up what they could not altogether
deny, evidently with the
view of explaining it away.
f For the mystic meaning of the story of the boar, see ante, p. 65.
100 FESTIVALS.
*
PAUSANIAS, lib. vii., Achaica, cap. 7.
f See ante, pp. 29, 30.
THEOCRITUS, Idyll xxx. v. 21, 45.
SMITH S Class. Diet., p. 112.
||
From KITTO S Illustrated Commentary, vol. iv. p. 137.
II Times Berlin Correspondent, December 23, 1853.
**
The reader will remember the Sun was a goddess. Mallet says, "They
offered the largest hog they could get to Frigga i.e., the mother of Balder
"
the
lamented one. (Vol. i. p. 132.) In Egypt swine were offered once a-year, at the
feast of the Moon, to the Moon, and Bacchus or Osiris ; and to them only it was
lawful to make such an offering. ^ELIAN, x. 16, p. 562.
CHRISTMAS AND LADY-DAY. 101
"
Fig. 29.
The Egyptian God Seb, with his symbol the goose and the ;
Fig. 30.
at all in regard to the time. But it mattered not. Before our Lord
was either conceived or born, that very day now set down in the
Popish calendar for the "Annunciation of the Virgin was observed
"
says (i. 53, p. 276), "It was chosen to denote a son, from its love to its young,
being always ready to give itself up to the chasseur, in order that they might be pre
served ; for which reason the Egyptians thought it right to revere this animal."
WILKINSON S Egyptians, vol. v. p. 227. Here, then, the true meaning of the
symbol is a son, who voluntarily gives himself up as a sacrifice for those whom he
loves viz., the Pagan Messiah.
AMMIANUS MARCELLINUS, lib. xxiii. cap. 3, p. 355, and MACROB., Sat., lib. i.
cap. 3, p. 47, G, H. The fact stated in the paragraph above casta light on a
festival held in Egypt, of which no satisfactory account has yet been given. That
festival was held in commemoration of the entrance of Osiris into the moon."
"
Now, Osiris, like Surya in India, was just the Sun. (PLUTARCH, De hide et
EASTER. 103
the groves." Some have imagined that the Druidical worship was
first introduced by the Phenicians, who, centuries before the Christian
us, which prove how exactly the worship of Bel or Moloch (for both
titles belonged to the same god) had been observed even in the
northern parts of this island. "The late
Lady Baird, of Fern Tower,
in Perthshire," says a writer in "Notes and Queries," thoroughly
Osiride, sect. 52, vol. ii. p. 372, D.) The moon, on the other hand, though most
frequently the symbol of the god Hermes or Thoth, was also the symbol of the
goddess IsitJ, the queen of heaven. The learned Bunsen seems to dispute this ;
but his own admissions show that he does so without reason. (Vol. i. pp. 414,
416.) And Jeremiah xliv. 17 seems decisive on the subject. The entrance of
Osiris into the moon, then, was just the sun s being conceived by Isis, the queen
of heaven, that, like the Indian Surya, he might in due time be born as the
grand deliverer. (See note, p. 96.) Hence the very name Osiris for, as Isis ;
is the Greek form of H isha, the woman," so Osiris, as read at this day on the
"
already (p. 22), Osiris is at once the son and husband of his mother. Now, this
festival took place in Egypt generally in March, just as Lady-day, or the tirst
great festival of Cybele, was held in the same month in Pagan Rome. We have
seen that the common title of Cybele at Rome was Domina, or "the Lady"
(OviD, Fasti, lib. iv. 340), as in Babylon it was Beltis (EusEB. Prcep. Evang.,
lib. ix. cap. 41, vol. ii. p. 58), and from this, no doubt, comes the name "Lady-
*
LAYARU S Nineveh and Babylon, p. 629.
f See OLIVER & BOYD S Edinburgh Almanac, 1860.
104 FESTIVALS.
down may seem a sufficient treatise to prove that the celebration of the feast of
Kaster began everywhere more of custom than by any commandment either of
Christ or any Apostle." (Hist. Ecclesiast., lib. v. cap. 22.) Every one knows
that the name Easter," used in our translation of Acts xii. 4, refers not to any
Christian festival, but to the Jewish Passover. This is one of the few places in
our version where the translators show an undue bias.
GIESELER, vol. i. p. 55, Note. In GIESELER the time is printed 25th of "
March," but the Latin quotation accompanying it shows that this is a typo
23rd."
||
Ibid. vol. ii. Note.
p. 42,
II LAYARD S -Nineveh and Babylon, p. 93.
EASTER. 105
Three days after the vernal equinox .... began a solemn fast of
"
forty days in honour of the sun." Such a Lent of forty days was
observed in Egypt, as may be seen on consulting Wilkinson s
Egyptians.^ This Egyptian Lent of forty days, we are informed
by Landseer, in his Sabean Researches, was held expressly in
commemoration of Adonis or Osiris, the great mediatorial god.| At
the same time, the rape of Proserpine seems to have been commemo
rated, and in a similar manner ; for Julius Eirmicus informs us that,
for "forty nights" the "wailing for Proserpine" continued and ;
from Arnobius we learn that the fast which the Pagans observed,
called "Castus" or the "sacred" fast, was, by the Christians in his
time, believed to have been primarily in imitation of the long fast
of Ceres, when for many days she determinedly refused to eat on
account of her "excess of sorrow" (violentia mceroris),\\ that is, on
account of the loss of her daughter Proserpine, when carried away
by Pluto, the god of hell. As the stories of Bacchus, or Adonis and
Proserpine, though originally distinct, were made to join on and fit
in to one another, so that Bacchus was called Liber, and his wife
Ariadne, Liberal (which was one of the names of Proserpine),** it
is highly probable that the
forty days fast of Lent was made in later
times to have reference to both. Among the Pagans this Lent seems
to have been an indispensable preliminary to the great annual festival
in commemoration of the death and resurrection of Tammuz, which
was celebrated by alternate weeping and rejoicing, and which, in
many countries, was considerably later than the Christian festival,
being observed in Palestine and Assyria in June, therefore called the
"month of Tammuz;" in
Egypt, about the middle of May, and in
Britain, some time in April. To conciliate the Pagans to nominal
Christianity, Rome, pursuing its usual policy, took measures to get
the Christian and Pagan festivals amalgamated, and, by a compli
cated but skilful adjustment of the calendar, it was found no difficult
matter, in general, to get Paganism and Christianity now far sunk
in idolatry in this as in so many other things, to shake hands.
The instrument in accomplishing this amalgamation was the abbot
Dionysius the Little, ff to whom also we owe it, as modern chrono-
logers have demonstrated, that the date of the Christian era, or of
the birth of Christ Himself, was moved FOUR YEARS from the true
time. Whether this was done through ignorance or design may be
*
HUMBOLDT S Mexican Researches, v. i.
p. 404.
f WILKINSON SEgyptian Antiquities, vol. i.
p. 278.
J LANDSEER S Sabean Researches, p. 112.
De Err ore, p. 70.
ARNOBIUS, Adversus (Rentes, lib.
|! v. p. 403. See also what precedes in the
same book in regard to Proserpine.
II OVID, Fasti,
lib. iii. 1. 512, vol. iii. p. 184.
*
SMITHS Classical Dictionary, "
to
stir up the languid devotion of the degenerate Church, and who
could find no more it, than
"
by borrowing
from so polluted a source the absurdities and abominations con
;
nected with which the early Christian writers had held up to scorn.
That Christians should ever think of introducing the Pagan abstin
ence of Lent was a sign of evil ; it showed how low they had sunk,
and it was also a cause of evil; it inevitably led to deeper degra
dation. Originally, even in Rome, Lent, with the preceding revelries
of the Carnival, was entirely unknown and even when fasting be ;
"Those who
inhabit the princely city of Rome fast together before
Easter three weeks, excepting the Saturday and Lord s-day." But
at last, when the worship of Astarte was rising into the ascendant,
steps were taken to get the whole Chaldean Lent of six weeks, or
*
GIESELEE, vol. i. p. 54. Gieseler adduces as authorities for the statement in
the text, G. A. HAMBERGER, De Epochce ( hristiante ortu et auctore (in MARTINI
Thesaur. Disscrtat., T. iii., P. i. p. 241) ; Jo. G. JANI, Historia JErce Uionysiance,
Viteb., 1715, 4, and IDKLER S Chronologic, ii. 366 ff. This is the statement also
commonly made in all the standard English chronologies.
t CLESfENS ALEXANDRINUS, Prolrepticos, p. 13.
GIESBLER, speaking of the Eastern Church in the second century, in regard to
Paschal observances, says In it [the Paschal festival in commemoration of the
:
"
death of Christ] they [the Eastern Christians] eat unleavened bread, probably like
the Jews, eight days throughout There is no trace of a yearly festival of a
resurrection among them, for thia was kept every Sunday" (Catholic Church,
sect. 53, p. 178, Note 35). In regard to the Western Church, at a somewhat
later period the age of Constantine fifteen days seem to have been observed in
religious exercises in connection with the Christian Paschal feast, as appears from
the following extracts from Bingham, kindly furnished to me by a friend, although
the period of fasting is not stated. Bingham (Origin. Eccles., vol. ix. p. 94) says :
The solemnities of Pasch [are] the week before and the week after Easter Sun
"
day one week of the Cross, the other of the resurrection. The ancients speak of
the Passion and Resurrection Pasch as a fifteen days solemnity. Fifteen days
was enforced by law by the Empire, and commanded to the universal Church
Scaliger mentions a law of Constantine, ordering two weeks for Easter, and a
vacation of all legal processes" (BINGHAM, ix. p. 95).
SOCRATES, Hist. Eccles., lib. v. cap. 22, p. 234.
EASTER. 107
forty days, made imperative on all within the Roman empire of the
West. The way was prepared for this by a Council held at Aurelia
in the time of Hormisdas, Bishop of Rome, about the year 519,
which decreed that Lent should be solemnly kept before Easter.*
Itwas with the view, no doubt, of carrying out this decree that the
calendar was, a few years after, readjusted by Dionysius. This
decree could not be carried out all at once. About the end of the
sixth century, the first decisive attempt was made to enforce the
observance of the new calendar. It was in Britain that the first
attempt was made in this way;f and here the attempt met with
vigorous resistance. The difference, in point of time, betwixt the
Christian Pasch, as observed in Britain by the native Christians, and
the Pagan Easter enforced by Rome, at the time of its enforcement,
was a whole month ;| and it was only by violence and bloodshed, at
last, that the Festival of the Anglo-Saxon or Chaldean goddess came
to supersede that which had been held in honour of Christ.
Such is the history of Easter. The popular observances that still
attend the period of its celebration amply confirm the testimony of
history as to its Babylonian character. The hot cross buns of Good
Friday, and the dyed eggs of Pasch or Easter Sunday, figured in the
*
Dr. MEREDITH HANMEB S Chronogmpkia, subjoined to his translation of
EOSEBIUS, p. 592. London, 1636.
f GlESELER, vol. i. p. 54.
CUMMIANUS, quoted by Archbishop USSHER, Sylloge, p. 34. Those who have
been brought up in the observance of Christmas and Easter, and who yet abhor
from their hearts all Papal and Pagan idolatry alike, may perhaps feel as if there
were something untoward in the revelations given above in regard to the origin
"
"
of these festivals. But a moment s reflection will suffice entirely to banish such a
feeling. They will see, that if the account I have given be true, it is of no use to
ignore it. A few of the facts stated in these pages are already known to Infidel
and Socinian writers of no mean mark, both in this country and on the Continent,
and these are using them in such a way as to undermine the faith of the young
and uninformed in regard to the very vitals of the Christian faith. Surely, then,
it must be of the last consequence, that the truth should be set forth in its own
native light, even though it may somewhat run counter to preconceived opinions,
especially when that truth, justly considered, tends so much at once to strengthen
the rising youth against the seductions of Popery, and to confirm them in the
faith once delivered to the Saints. If a heathen could say, Socrates I love, and
"
Plato I love, but I love truth more," surely a truly Christian miud will not dis
play less magnanimity. Is there not much, even in the aspect of the times, that
ought to prompt the earnest inquiry, if the occasion has not arisen, when efforts,
and strenuous efforts, should be made to purge out of the National Establishment
in the south those observances, and everything else that has flowed in upon it
from Babylon s golden cup ? There are men of noble minds in the Church of
Cranmer, Latimer, and Ridley, who love our Lord Jesus Christ in sincerity, who
have felt the power of His blood, and known the comfort of His Spirit. Let them,
in their closets, and on their knees, ask the question, at their God and at their
own consciences, if they ought not to bestir themselves in right earnest, and labour
with all their might till such a consummation be effected. Then, indeed, would
England s Church be the grand bulwark of the Reformation then would her sous
speak with her enemies in the gate then would she appear in the face of all
Christendom, clear as the sun, fair as the moon, and terrible as an army with
"
banners." If, however, nothing effectual shall be done to stay the plague that is
spreading in her, the result must be disastrous, not only to herself, but to the
whole empire.
108 FESTIVALS.
sacred cakes called Boun, which was made of fine flour and honey."t
The prophet Jeremiah takes notice of this kind of offering when he
says, The children gather wood, the fathers kindle the fire, and the
"
L
Sacred Egg of Heliopolis and Typhon s Egg.
;
From BRYANT S
Biblical Cyclopaedia, vol. i. p. 237). The first shows how Khvan, pronounced as
one syllable, would pass into the Latin panis, "bread, "and the second how, in
like manner, Khvon would become Bon or Bun. It is not to be overlooked that
our common English word Loa has passed through a similar process of formation.
In Anglo-Saxon it was Hlaf.
DAVIES S Druids, p. 208. II
Ibid. p. 207.
Col.
**
COLEMAN, p. 340.
If KENNEDY, p. 223.
EASTER. 109
heaven into the river Euphrates. The fishes rolled it to the bank,
where the doves having settled upon it, and hatched it, out came
Venus, who afterwards was called the Syrian Goddess that is, "J
Fig. 32.
*
My authority for the above statement is the Rev. James Johnston, of Glas
gow, formerly missionary at Amoy, in China.
t WILKINSON, vol. iii. p. 20, and PAUSANIAS, lib. iii., Laconica, cap. lu .
name for an egg is Baitz, or in the feminine (for there are both
genders), Baitza. This, in Chaldee and Phenician, becomes Baith or
Baitha,* which in these languages is also the usual way in which the
name of a house is pronounced, f The egg floating on the waters
that contained the world, was the house floating on the waters of the
deluge, with the elements of the new world in its bosom. The
coming of the egg from heaven evidently refers to the preparation
of the ark by express appointment of God ; and the same thing
seems clearly implied in the Egyptian story of the mundane egg
which was said to have come out of the mouth of the great god.J
The doves resting on the egg need no explanation. This, then,
was the meaning of the mystic egg in one aspect. As, however,
everything that was good or beneficial to mankind was represented
in the Chaldean mysteries, as in some way connected with the
Babylonian goddess, so the greatest blessing to the human race,
which the ark contained in its bosom, was held to be Astarte, who
was the great civiliser and benefactor of the world. Though the
deified queen, whom Astarte represented, had no actual existence
till some centuries after the flood,
yet through the doctrine of
metempsychosis, which was firmly established in Babylon, it
was easy for her worshippers to be made to believe that, in
a previous incarnation, she had lived in the Antediluvian world,
and passed in safety through the waters of the flood. Now
the Romish Church adopted this mystic egg of Astarte, and
consecrated it as a symbol of Christ s resurrection. form of A
prayer was even appointed to be used in connection with it, Pope
Paul V. teaching his superstitious votaries thus to pray at Easter :
Bless,
may become a wholesome sustenance unto thy servants, eating it in
remembrance of our Lord Jesus Christ, &c." Besides the mystic egg,
there was also another emblem of Easter, the goddess queen of
Babylon, and that was the Rimmon or "pomegranate." With the
Rimmon or "pomegranate" in her hand, she is frequently repre
sented in ancient medals, and the house of Rimmon, in which the
King of Damascus, the Master of Naaman, the Syrian, worshipped,
was in all likelihood a temple of Astarte, where that goddess with
the Rimmon was publicly adored. The pomegranate is a fruit that
*
In the later Chaldee, the name of an egg is commonly Baiaa, or Baietha in
the emphatic form ; but Baith is also formed exactly according to rule from Baitz,
just as Kaitz, summer," in Chaldee, becomes Kaith, and many other words.
"
f The common word "Beth," "house," in the Bible without the points, is
"Baith,"
as may be seen in the name of Bethel, as given in Genesis xxxv. 1, of
the Greek Septuagint, where it is "
Baith-el."
is fullof seeds ; and on that account it has been supposed that it was
employed as an emblem of that vessel in which the germs of the new
creation were preserved, wherewith the world was to be sown anew
with man and with beast, when the desolation of the deluge had passed
away. But upon more searching inquiry, it turns out that the
Rimmon or pomegranate had reference to an entirely different
" "
thing. Astarte, or Cybele, was called also Idaia Mater,* and the
sacred mount in Phrygia, most famed for the celebration of her
mysteries, was named Mount Ida that is, in Chaldee, the sacred
language of these mysteries, the Mount of Fig. 33. J
Knowledge. Idaia Mater," then, signifies
"
in other
words, our Mother Eve, who first coveted
the knowledge of good and evil," and
"
very
Tree, whose mortal taste
"
*
DYMOCK S Classical Dictionary, sub vocc.
f For proof on this subject, see Appendix, Note J.
J From BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 276. Bryant gives the title of the above figure as
"Juno, Columba, and Rhoia but from Pausanias we learn that the bird on the
"
sceptre of Hera, or Juno, when she was represented with the pomegranate, was
not the Columba or Dove, but the Cuckoo (PAUSAN.,lib. ii., Corinthiaca, cap. 17) ;
from which it appears, that when Hera or Juno was thus represented, it was not
as the incarnation of the Spirit of God, but as the mother of mankind, that she
was represented. But into the story of the cuckoo I cannot enter here.
112 FESTIVALS.
The gardens of the Hesperides in the West, are admitted by all who
have studied the subject, just to have been the counterpart of the
paradise of Eden in the East. The description of the sacred gardens,
as situated in the Isles of the Atlantic, over against the coast of
Africa, shows that their legendary site exactly agrees with the Cape
Verd or Canary Isles, or some of that group ; and, of course, that
the "golden fruit" on the sacred tree, so jealously guarded, was
none other than the orange. Now, let the reader mark well :
state, slew or subdued the serpent, the envious being that grudged
mankind the use of that which was so necessary to make them at
once perfectly happy and wise, and bestowed upon them what other
wise would have been hopelessly beyond their reach. Here, then,
God and the devil are exactly made to change places. Jehovah, who
prohibited man from eating of the tree of knowledge, is symbolised
by the serpent, and held up as an ungenerous and malignant being,
while he who emancipated man from Jehovah s yoke, and gave him
of the fruit of the forbidden tree in other words, Satan under the
name of Hercules is celebrated as the good and gracious Deliverer
of the human race. What a mystery of iniquity is here Now all !
*
BEROSUS, apud BUNSEN S Egypt, vol. i. p. 707. To identify Nimrod with
Cannes, mentioned by Berosus as appearing out of the sea, it will be remembered
that Nimrod has been proved to be Bacchus. Then, for proof that Nimrod or
Bacchus, on being overcome by his enemies, was fabled to have taken refuge in
the sea (see Chap. IV. Sect. I.), When, therefore, he was represented as reappear
ing, it was natural that he should reappear in the very character of Cannes as a
Fish-god. Now, Jerome calls Dagon, the well-known Fish-god, Piscem mo&roris
(BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 179), the fish of sorrow," which goes far to identify that
"
Fish-god with Bacchus, the Lamented one ; and the identification is complete
" "
when Hesychius tells us that some called Bacchus Ichthys, or The fish (sub "
"
"
embers ; while a wooden frame of some eight feet long, with a horse s
head fixed to one end, and a large white sheet thrown over it, con
cealing the wood and the man on whose head it was carried, made
its appearance. This was greeted with loud shouts as the white
horse ; and having been safely carried, by the skill of its bearer,
several times through the fire with a bold leap, it pursued the people,
who ran screaming in every direction. I asked what the horse was
meant for, and was told it represented all cattle. Here," adds the
authoress, was the old Pagan worship of Baal, if not of Moloch too,
"
founded, for I did not then know that Popery is only a crafty adapta
tion of Pagan idolatries to its own scheme. "*
the place, or his son, or some other person of distinction, to take the
entrails of the sacrificed animals in his hands, and, walking barefoot
over the coals thrice after the flames had ceased, to carry them straight
to the Druid, who waited in a whole skin at the altar. If the noble
man escaped harmless, it was reckoned a good omen, welcomed with
loud acclamations ; but if he received any hurt, it was deemed
unlucky both to the community and himself." "Thus, I have seen,"
adds Toland, the people running and leaping through the St. John s
"
*
Personal Recollections, pp. 112-115. t TOLAND S Druids, p. 107. J Ibid. p. 112.
THE NATIVITY OF ST. JOHN. 117
has been handed down from antiquity in regard to these two divini
ties ; and, at the same time, the origin of these fires is elucidated.
Phoroneus is described in such a way as shows that he was known
as having been connected with the origin of fire-worship. Thus does
Pausanias refer to him Near this image [the image of Biton] :
"
they [the Argives] enkindle a fire, for they do not admit that fire
was given by Prometheus, to men, but ascribe the invention of it to
Phoroneus."* There must have been something tragic about the
death of this fire-inventing Phoroneus, who "first gathered mankind
into communities ; f for, after describing the position of his sepulchre,
"
Jupiter,"
even as Apollo was often
called the " "
young Apollo :
Thus the St. John s fires, over whose cinders old and young are made
to pass, are traced up to "the first of mortals that reigned."
It is remarkable, that a festival attended with all the essential rites
of the fire-worship of Baal, is found among Pagan nations, in regions
most remote from one another, about the very period of the month of
Tammuz, when the Babylonian god was anciently celebrated. Among
the Turks, the fast of Ramazan, which, says Hurd, begins on the 12th
of June, is attended by an illumination of burning lamps.H In China,
*
PAUSAN., lib. ii., Corinthiaca, cap. 19. f Ibid. cap. 15.
J Ibid. cap. 20. BRYANT, vol. i. p. 237.
||
DBTDEN Book xi. 11. 1153-1158. "The young Apollo," when
S Virgil, ^fineid,
born to introduce law and order among the Greeks," was said to have made his
"
and no sooner did his first yellow rays strike the turrets and loftiest
buildings of the capital, than a shout of gratulation broke forth from
the assembled multitude, accompanied by songs of triumph, and the
wild melody of barbaric instruments, that swelled louder and louder
as his bright orb, rising above the mountain range towards the east,
shone in full splendour on his votaries."! Could this alternate
mourning and rejoicing, at the very time when the Babylonians
mourned and rejoiced over Tammuz, be accidental? As Tammuz
was the Sun-divinity incarnate, it is easy to see how such mourning
and rejoicing should be connected with the worship of the sun. In
Egypt, the festival of the burning lamps, in which many have already
been constrained to see the counterpart of the festival of St. John,
was avowedly connected with the mourning and rejoicing for Osiris.
Sais," says Herodotus, J "they show the sepulchre of him whom
"At
temple of Minerva, and close to the wall of this temple, whose whole
length it occupies. They also meet at Sais, to offer sacrifice during
a certain night, when every one lights, in the open air, a number of
lamps around his house. The lamps consist of small cups filled with
salt and oil, having a wick
floating in it which burns all night. This
festival is called the festival of
burning lamps. The Egyptians who
are unable to attend also observe the sacrifice, and burn lamps at
home, so that not only at Sai s, but throughout Egypt, the same
illumination takes place. They assign a sacred reason for the festival
celebrated on this night, and for the respect they have for it."||
Wilkinson,^ in quoting this passage of Herodotus, expressly identifies
original festival of Tammuz ; for a friend who has lived for three years in
Constantinople informs me that, in consequence of the disagreement between the
Turkish and the solar year, the fast of Rauaazan ranges in succession through all
the different months in the year. The fact of a yearly illumination in connection
with religious observances, however, is undoubted.
*
See ante, p. 57. t PRESCOTT S Conquest of Peru, vol. i. p. 69.
Historia, lib. ii. p. 176. Ibid.
U HERODOTUS, lib. ii.c. 62, p. 127. ii WILKINSON, vol. v. p. 308.
THE NATIVITY OF ST. JOHN. 119
this festival with the lamentation for Osiris, and assures us that
"
it
was considered of the greatest consequence to do honour to the deity
by the proper performance of this rite."
yard and scattered over the buildings on the sides of the valley, and
even on isolated rocks, and in the hollow trunks of trees. Innumer
able stars appeared to glitter on the black sides of the mountain and
in the dark recesses of the forest. As the priests made their way
through the crowd to perform their task, men and women passed
their right hands through the flame and after rubbing the right
;
eyebrow with the part which had been purified by the sacred element,
they devoutly carried it to their lips. Some who bore children in
their arms anointed them in like manner, whilst others held out
their hands to be touched by those who, less fortunate than them
selves, could not reach the flame As night advanced, those
who had assembled they must now have amounted to nearly five
thousand persons lighted torches, which they carried with them as
they wandered through the forest. The effect was magical: the
varied groups could be faintly distinguished through the darkness
men hurrying to and fro women with their children seated on the
house-tops and crowds gathering round the pedlars, who exposed
their wares for sale in the court-yard. Thousands of lights were
reflected in the fountains and streams, glimmered amongst the foliage
of the trees, and danced in the distance. As I was gazing on this
extraordinary scene, the hum of human voices was suddenly hushed,
and a strain, solemn and melancholy, arose from the valley. It
resembled some majestic chant which years before I had listened to
in the cathedral of a distant land. Music so pathetic and so sweet
I never before heard in the East. The voices of men and women
were blended in harmony with the soft notes of many flutes. At
measured intervals the song was broken by the loud clash of cymbals
and tambourines ; and those who were within the precincts of the
tomb then joined in the melody The tambourines, which were
struck simultaneously, only interrupted at intervals the song of the
priests. As the time quickened they broke in more frequently. The
chant gradually gave way to a lively melody, which, increasing in
measure, was finally lost in a confusion of sounds. The tambourines
were beaten with extraordinary energy the flutes poured forth a
rapid flood of notes the voices were raised to the highest pitch the
120 FESTIVALS.
men outside joined in the cry whilst the women made the rocks
resound with the shrill tahlehl.
ments into the air, and strained their limbs into every contortion,
until they fell exhausted to the ground. I never heard a more
frightful yell than that which rose in the valley. It was midnight.
I gazed with wonder upon the extraordinary scene around me.
Thus were probably celebrated ages ago the mysterious rites of the
Corybantes, when they met in some consecrated grove."* Layard
does not state at what period of the year this festival occurred ; but
his language leaves little doubt that he regarded it as a festival of
Bacchus; in other words, of the Babylonian Messiah, whose tragic
death, and subsequent restoration to life and glory, formed the
corner-stone of ancient Paganism. The festival was avowedly held
in honour at once of Sheikh Shems, or the Sun, and of the Sheik
Adi, or "Prince of Eternity," around whose tomb nevertheless the
solemnity took place, just as the lamp festival in Egypt, in honour
of the sun-god Osiris, was celebrated in the precincts of the tomb of
that god at Sais.
Now, the reader cannot fail to have observed that in this Yezidi
festival,
contact with the sacred element In the rites of Zoroaster,
"
of fire.
"
the great Chaldean god, fire occupied precisely the same place.
It was laid down as an essential principle in his system, that he "
made to pass through the fire to Moloch" (Jer. xxxii. 35), to purge
them from original sin, and through this purgation many a helpless
babe became a victim to the bloody divinity. Among the Pagan
Romans, this purifying by passing through the fire was equally
observed ; says Ovid, enforcing the practice,
"
for,"
Fire purifies "
both the shepherd and the sheep." Among the Hindoos, from time
immemorial, fire has been worshipped for its purifying efficacy.
Thus a worshipper is represented by Colebrooke, according to the
sacred books, as addressing the fire Salutation to thee [0 fire ], "
: !
who dost seize oblations, to thee who dost shine, to thee who dost
scintillate, may thy auspicious flame burn our foes ; mayest thou, the
PURIFIER, be auspicious unto There are some who maintain a
us."||
"
cluding the sacraments of the gods," thus every day present their
Fire, thou dost expiate a sin against the gods ;
"
supplications to it :
thou dost expiate a sin against my own soul; thou dost expiate
repeated sins ; thou dost expiate every sin which I have committed,
whether wilfully or unintentionally; may this oblation be effica
cious."*
Among the Druids, also, fire was celebrated as the purifier.
Thus, in a Druidic song, we read, They celebrated the praise of the
"
holy ones in the presence of the purifying fire, which was made to
ascend on high."f If, indeed, a blessing was expected in Druidical
times from lighting the carn-fires, and making either young or old,
either human beings or cattle, pass through the fire, it was simply in
consequence of the purgation from sin that attached to human beings
and all things connected with them, that was believed to be derived
from this passing through the fire. It is evident that this very same
belief about the "purifying" efficacy of fire is held by the Eoman
Catholics of Ireland, when they are so zealous to pass both them
selves and their children through the fires of St. John.:}: Toland
testifies that it is as a lustration" that these fires are kindled
"
;
and
all who have carefully examined the subject must come to the same
conclusion.
Now, if Tammuz was, as we have seen, the same as Zoroaster, the
god of the ancient "fire-worshippers,"
and if his festival in Babylon
so exactly synchronised with the feast of the Nativity of St. John,
what wonder that that feast is still celebrated by the blazing Baal- "
*
COLEBROOKE S "Religious Ceremonies of Hindus" in Asiatic Researches,
vol. vii. p. 273.
t DAVIKS S Druids, Song to the Sun," pp. 369, 370.
"
Pagan adversary of the Son of God, UNDER HIS OWN PROPER NAME,
a place in her calendar. The reader has only to turn to the Roman
calendar, and he will find that this is a literal fact ; he will find that
October the 7th is set apart to be observed in honour of St.
"
Martyr occur.
As the Chaldean god has been admitted into the Roman calendar
under the name of Bacchus, so also is he canonised under his other
name of Dionysus, f The Pagans were in the habit of worshipping
the same god under different names ; and, accordingly, not content
with the festival to Bacchus, under the name by which he was most
commonly known at Rome, the Romans, no doubt to please the
Greeks, celebrated a rustic festival to him, two days afterwards,
under the name of Dionysus Eleuthereus, the name by which he was
worshipped in Greece. J That "rustic" festival was briefly called
by the name of Dionysia ; or, expressing its object more fully, the
name became Festum Dionysi Eleutherei rusticurn" i.e., the
"
"
Dionysus Eleuthereus into two, has made two several saints out of
the double name of one Pagan divinity ; and more than that, has
made the innocent epithet Rusticum," which, even among the
"
*
See extracts from Legend of St. Peters Chair, by ANTHONY RICH, Esq., in
Dr. BEGG S admirable Handbook of Popery, pp. 114, 115. See also SALVEBTE,
Essai sur Noms, torn. ii. p. 54.
t Dionysus, as is well known, is the Latin form of the Greek Dioniisos.
PAUSANTAS, Attica, p. 46, and TOOKE S Pantheon, p. 58.
BEGG S Handbook of Popery, p. 115.
Though Dionysus was the proper classic name of the
[| god, yet in Post-
classical, or Low Latin, his name is found Dionysius, just as in the case of the
Romish saint.
IT See Calendar in Missale Romanvm, Oct. 9th :
"Dionysii, Rustici et Eleutherii
Mart." and Oct. 7th,
"
the history of the Popish saint and the Pagan god will cast no little
light on the subject. St. Denys, on being beheaded and cast into
the Seine, so runs the legend, after floating a space on its waters, to
the amazement of the spectators, took up his head in his hand, and
so marched away with it to the place of burial. In commemoration
of so stupendous a miracle, a hymn was duly chanted for many a
century in the Cathedral of St. Denys, at Paris, containing the
following verse :
"
The world has for some time past been progressing back again to
the dark ages. The Romish Breviary, which had been given up
in France, has, within the last six years, been reimposed by Papal
authority on the Gallican Church, with all its lying legends, and
this among the rest of them ; the Cathedral of St. Denys is again
being rebuilt, and the old worship bids fair to be restored in all
its grossness.f Now, how could it ever enter the minds of men to
invent so monstrous a fable 1 The origin of it is not far to seek.
The Church of Rome represented her canonised saints, who were
said to have suffered martyrdom by the sword, as headless images
or statues with the severed head borne in the hand. have "I
Salverte,
St. Mithra, at Aries, in Switzerland, all the soldiers of the Theban
goat-horned fish ;
is
*
corpse immediately arose ; the trunk bore away the dissevered head,
"The
Note, p. 48). In Salverte, the first word of the third line of the above Latin
verse is "Quo," but as this does not make sense, and is evidently an error,
I have corrected it into "Quern."
f The statement in the last clause of the above sentence referred to the
position of matters five years ago. Probably by this time the rebuilding of the
Cathedral of St. Denys is finished.
J SALVERT^, Des Sciences Occultes, pp. 47, 48.
124 FESTIVALS.
that was in this very form that he had the name of Cannes. In
it
this form in India, under the name Souro," that is evidently the " "
seed,"
he is said to have done many marvellous things.* Now,
in the Persian Sphere he was not only represented mystically as
Capricorn, but also in the human shape and then exactly as ;
to mix," as well as
" " "
therefore, in exact accordance with the mystic system, we find the symbol of
Orpheus among the Greeks to have been a willow-tree. Thus, Pausanias, after
referring to a representation of Actaeon, says, If again you look to the lower
"
parts of the picture, you will see after Patroclus, Orpheus sitting on a hill, with
a harp in his left hand, and in his right hand the leaves of a willow-tree
"
(PAUSANIAS, lib. x., Phocica, cap. 30) ; and again, a little further on, he says :
"He is
represented leaning on the trunk of this tree." The willow-leaves in
the right hand of Orpheus, and the willow-tree on which he leans, sufficiently
show the meaning of his name.
Georgics, Book iv. vol. i. 11. 759-766, and in original, 11. 523-527. The edition
of Dryden, which I commonly quote, has in the first line, Then with ; but as "
"
this does not agree with the construction of the sentence, I have given the
passage as it stands in Baxter s London edition of 1807, which is evidently the
correct reading.
THE FEAST OF THE ASSUMPTION. 125
what has been already said shows the carnal policy of Rome
If
at the expense of truth, the circumstances attending the festival
of the Assumption show the daring wickedness and blasphemy
of that Church still more ; considering that the doctrine in regard
to this festival, so far as the Papacy is concerned, was not established
in the dark ages, but three centuries after the Reformation, amid
all the boasted light of the nineteenth century. The doctrine on
which the festival of the Assumption is founded, is this that the :
Virgin Mary saw no corruption, that in body and in soul she was
carried up to heaven, and now is invested with all power in heaven
and in earth. This doctrine has been unblushingly avowed in the
face of the British public, in a recent pastoral of the Popish Arch
bishop of Dublin. This doctrine has now received the stamp of
Papal Infallibility, having been embodied in the late blasphemous
decree that proclaims the "Immaculate Conception." Now, it is
impossible for the priests of Rome to find one shred of countenance
for such a doctrine in Scripture. But, in the Babylonian system,
the fable was ready made to their hand. There it was taught
that Bacchus went down to hell, rescued his mother from the
infernal powers, and carried her with him in triumph to heaven."*"
This fable spread wherever the Babylonian system spread; and,
accordingly, at this day, the Chinese celebrate, as they have done
from time immemorial, a festival in honour of a Mother, who
*
APOLLODORUS, lib. iii. cap. 5, p. 266. We
have seen that the great goddess,
who was worshipped in Babylon as
"
The
was in reality the wife of
Mother,"
Ninus, the great god, the prototype of Bacchus. In conformity with this, we
find a somewhat similar story told of Ariadne, the wife of Bacchus, as is fabled
of Semele his mother. "The
garment of Thetis," says Bryant (vol. ii. p. 99),
contained a description of some notable achievements in the first ages ; and
"
Miiller,
blest, as the wife of Rhadamanthus." (Ibid. p. 443.)
126 FESTIVALS.
by her son was rescued from the power of death and the grave.
The festival of the Assumption in the Romish Church is held
on the 15th of August. The Chinese festival, founded on a similar
legend, and celebrated with lanterns and chandeliers, as shown
by Sir J. F. Davis in his able and graphic account of China,
is equally celebrated in the month of August.* Now, when the
mother of the Pagan Messiah came to be celebrated as having
been thus Assumed" then it was that, under the name of the
"
"Dove,"t
she was worshipped as the Incarnation of the Spirit
of God, with whom she was identified. As such she was regarded
as the source of all holiness, and the grand PURIFIER," and,
"
Orphic
"
Hymns," as
Associate of the seasons, essence bright,
"
Whoever wrote these hymns, the more they are examined the more
does it become evident, when they are compared with the most
ancient doctrine of Classic Greece, that their authors understood and
thoroughly adhered to the genuine theology of Paganism. To the
fact that Proserpine was currently worshipped in Pagan Greece,
though well-known to be the wife of Pluto, the god of hell, under the
name of The Holy Virgin," we find Pausanias, while describing the
"
merely in freedom from actual sin, but she was especially distin
guished for her "immaculate conception;" for Proclus says, "She
is called Core, through the purity of her essence, and her UNDEFILED
IMMACULATE."
*
China, vol. i.
pp. 354, 355.
t See ante, p. 79.
J PROCLUS, in TAYLOR S Note upon Jamblichus, p. 136.
Orphic Hymns, 28th, p. 109. These hymns are thought by some to have been
composed by Neo-Platonists after the Christian era, who are said to have
corrupted the true doctrine of their predecessors. I doubt this. At anyrate,
I allege nothing from them that is not amply borne out by authority of the
highest kind.
|| PAUSAN., lib. iv., Messenica, cap. 33, p. 362.
IT PROCLUS, in additional note to TAYLOR S Orphic Hymns, p. 198.
THE FEAST OF THE ASSUMPTION. 127
Thou shalt not make unto thee any graven image, or any likeness
"
down thyself to them, nor serve them for I the Lord thy God am a:
jealous God, visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children unto
the third and fourth generation of them that hate me." These words
were spoken by God s own lips, they were written by God s own
finger on the tables of stone not for the instruction of the seed
:
do not ourselves bow down to stocks and stones ? Yet if we, making
a profession the very opposite, encourage, and foster, and maintain
that very idolatry which God has so fearfully threatened with His
wrath, our guilt, instead of being the less, is only so much the
greater, for it is a sin against the light. Now, the facts are manifest
*
It is to be lamented that Christians in general seem to have so little sense
either of the gravity of the present crisis of the Church and the world, or of the
duty lying upon them as Christ s witnesses, to testify, and that practically, against
the public sins of the nation. If they would wish to be stimulated to a more
vigorous discharge of duty in this respect, let them read an excellent and well-
timed little work recently issued from the press, entitled An Original Interpreta
tion of the Apocalypse, where the Apocalyptic statements in regard to the character,
life, death, and resurrection of the Two Witnesses, are briefly but forcibly
handled.
128 FESTIVALS.
Apocalypse
1
*
The above paragraph first appeared in the spring of 1855, when the empire
had for months been looking on in amazement at the "horrible and heart
rending disasters in the Crimea, caused simply by the fact, that official men in
"
that distant region "could not find their hands," and when at last a day of
humiliation had been appointed. The reader can judge whether or not the events
that have since occurred have made the above reasoning out of date. The few
years of impunity that have elapsed since the Indian mutiny, with all its horrors,
was suppressed, show the long-suffering of God. But if that long-suffering is
despised (which it manifestly is, while the guilt is daily increasing), the ultimate
issue must just be so much the more terrible.
CHAPTER IV.
*
Bishop HAY S Sincere Christian, vol. i. p. 363. There are two exceptions to
this statement the case of an infidel converted in a heathen land, where it is
;
impossible to get baptism, and the case of a martyr baptised," as it is called, "in
"
his own blood but in all other cases, whether of young or old, the necessity is
;
"
"absolute."
129 K
130 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
children to come unto Me, and forbid them not ; for of such is the
kingdom of heaven." John the Baptist, while yet in his mother s
womb was so filled with joy at the advent of the Saviour, that, as
soon as Mary s salutation sounded in the ears of his own mother, the
unborn babe leaped in the womb for joy." Had that child died at
"
the birth, what could have excluded it from "the inheritance of the
saints in light
"
If a young child were put to death for the sake of Christ, this would
be to it the baptism of blood, and carry it to heaven ; but except in
this case, as such infants are incapable ofhaving the desire of baptism,
with the other necessary dispositions, if they are not actually baptised
with water, THEY CANNOT GO TO HEAVEN. As this doctrine never "J
"
"
and that even where only one of the parents is a believer The :
"
holiness "
of the term, yet it does not in all cases necessarily secure their spirit
ual regeneration. God may, or may not, as He sees fit, give the new
heart, before, or at, or after baptism ; but manifest it is, that
thousands who have been duly baptised are still unregenerate, are
who on earth have been unjustly condemned to die. Hope is held out for these,
but no hope is held out for the babes.
132 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
stillin precisely the same position as Simon Magus, who, after being
canonically baptised by Philip, was declared to be "in the gall of
bitterness and the bond of iniquity" (Acts viii. 23). The doctrine of
Rome, however, is, that all who are canonically baptised, however
ignorant, however immoral, if they only give implicit faith to the
Church, and surrender their consciences to the priests, are as much
regenerated as ever they can be, and that children coming from the
waters of baptism are entirely purged from the stain of original sin.
Hence we find the Jesuit missionaries in India boasting of making
converts by thousands, by the mere fact of baptising them, without
the least previous instruction, in the most complete ignorance of the
truths of Christianity, on their mere profession of submission to Rome.
This doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration also is essentially Baby
lonian. Some may perhaps stumble at the idea of regeneration at
allhaving been known in the Pagan world but if they only go to ;
India, they will find at this day, the bigoted Hindoos, who have never
opened their ears to Christian instruction, as familiar with the term
and the idea as ourselves. The Brahmins make it their distinguish
ing boast that they are twice-born men, and that, as such, they
"
"*
initiation these
divinities he referred. This baptism was by immersion, and seems
to have been rather a rough and formidable process ; for we find
that he who passed through the purifying waters, and other necessary
penances, he survived, was then admitted to the knowledge of
"if
REGENERA
TION, and the pardon of all their perjuries. Our "
own Pagan
ancestors, the worshippers of Odin, are known to have practised
baptismal rites,which, taken in connection with their avowed object
in practising them, show that, originally, at least, they must have
believed that the natural guilt and corruption of their new-born
children could be washed away by sprinkling them with water,
or by plunging them, as soon as born, into lakes or rivers. || Yea,
*
See Asiatic Researches, vol. vii. p. 271.
+ TERTULL., De Baptismo, vol. i. p. 1204.
Eliae Comment, in S. GREG. NAZ., Orat. iv. ; GREGORII NAZIANZENI Opera,
p. 245.
TERTULL., De Baptismo, vol. i. p. 1205.
|| See MALLET on Anglo-Saxon Baptism, Antiquities, vol. i.
p. 335.
BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 133
hurtful to this child, leave him and depart from him, for he now
liveth anew, and is BORN ANEW ; now he is purified and cleansed
afresh, and our mother Chalchivitlycue [the goddess of water]
bringeth him into the world. Having thus prayed, the midwife
took the child in both hands, and, lifting him towards heaven, said,
Lord, thou seest here thy creature, whom thou hast sent into
the world, this place of sorrow, suffering, and penitence. Grant
him, O Lord, thy gifts and inspiration, for thou art the Great
God, and with thee is the great goddess. Here is the opus "|
Depart from
him thou unclean spirit, and give place to the Holy Ghost the Comforter." (Sincere
Christian, vol. i. p. 365.) In the New Testament there is not the slightest bint
of any such exorcism accompanying Christian baptism. It is purely Pagan.
134 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
tion of this rash project was interrupted each family received from ;
that time a different language and the great spirit Teotl ordered
;
twice-born,"
as a god with two heads looking in opposite directions, the one old,
and the other young (Fig. 34). || Though we have seen that the two-
*
For proof, see Appendix, Note L.
t HUMBOLDT S Researches, vol. i. p. 320.
Ibid. vol. i.p. 319.
BRYANT, VOL. iii. p. 21.
Ibid. p. 84.
BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 135
headed Janus in one aspect had reference to Gush and his son,
Nimrod, viewed as one god, in a two-fold capacity, as the Supreme,
7
and Father of all the deified "mighty ones/ yet, in order to gain for
him the very authority and respect essential to constitute him
properly the head of the great system of idolatry that the apostates
inaugurated, it was necessary to represent him as in some way or
other identified with the great patriarch, who was the Father of all,
and who had so miraculous a history. Therefore in the legends of
Janus, we find mixed up with other things derived from an entirely
different source, statements not only in regard to his being the
Father of the world," but also his being the inventor of ships,"*
" "
which plainly have been borrowed from the history of Noah ; and
therefore, the remarkable way in is represented in the which he
figure here presented to the reader confidently be concluded to may
have been primarily suggested by the history of the great Diluvian
patriarch, whose integrity in his two-fold life is so particularly
referred to in the Scripture, where it is said (Gen. vi. 9), "Noah
was a just man, and perfect in his generations" that is, in his life
before the flood, and in his life after it. The whole mythology of
Greece and Rome, as well as Asia, is full of the history and deeds of
Noah, which it is impossible to misunderstand. In India, the god
Yishnu, the Preserver," who is celebrated as having miraculously
"
preserved one righteous family at the time when the world was
drowned, not only has the story of Noah wrought up with his
legend, but is called by his very name. Yishnu is just the Sanscrit
form of the Chaldee Ish-nuh," the man Noah," or the Man of
" " "
rest."j In the case of Indra, the "king of the gods," and god of
rain, which is evidently only another form of the same god, the
name is found in the precise form of Ishnu. Now, the very legend
of Yishnu, that pretends to make him no mere creature, but the
supreme and eternal god," shows that this interpretation of the
"
incorporeal, were absorbed into his Divine essence and the universe ;
to approach
him but those who were with the mystery of him in the ark, and "
"regenerate."
The "twice-born" Brahmins, who are all so many
gods upon earth, by the very title they take to themselves, show
that the god whom they represent, and to whose prerogatives they
lay claim, had been known as the "twice-born" god. The connec
with the history of Noah, comes out with
"
tion of "
regeneration
special evidence in the accounts handed down to us of the Mysteries
as celebrated in Egypt. The most learned explorers of Egyptian
antiquities, including Sir Gardiner Wilkinson, admit that the story
of Noah was mixed up with the story of Osiris. f The ship of Isis,
and the coffin of Osiris, floating on the waters, point distinctly to
that remarkable event. There were different periods, in different
places in Egypt, when the fate of Osiris was lamented ; and at one
time there was more special reference to the personal history of the "
Noah himself who was then supposed to have been lost. The time
when Osiris was shut up in his coffin," and when that coffin was
"
day of the month Athyr, when the overflowing of the Nile had
ceased, when the nights were growing long and the days decreas
ing."!
The month Athyr was the second month after the autumnal
equinox, at which time the civil year of the Jews and the patriarchs
According to this statement, then, Osiris was shut up in "
began.
his on the 17th day of the second month of the patriarchal
coffin"
*
BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 75.
t WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 340.
$ PLUTARCH, DC Iside et Osiride, vol. ii.
p. 336, D.
BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 137
the ark." The period, too, that Osiris (otherwise Adonis) was
believed to have been shut up in his coffin, was precisely the same as
Noah was confined in the ark, a whole year.* Now, the statements
of Plutarch demonstrate that, as Osiris at this festival was looked
upon as dead and buried when put into his ark or coffin, and
committed to the deep, so, when at length he came out of it again,
that new state was regarded as a state of "new or REGENERA life,"
"
TION."! There seems every reason to believe that by the ark and
the flood God actually gave to the patriarchal saints, and especially
to righteous Noah, a vivid typical representation of the power of the
blood and of Christ, at once in saving from wrath, and
Spirit
cleansing from all sin a representation which was a most cheering
"
before"
the flood, that carried him safely through the avenging
waters of that dread catastrophe, and ushered him, as it were, from
the womb of the ark, by a new birth, into a new world, when on the
ark resting on Mount Ararat, he was released from his long confine
ment. They led their votaries to believe that, if they only passed
through the baptismal waters, and the penances therewith connected,
that of itself would make them like the second father of mankind,
"
Diphueis,"
"
twice-born," or
"
regenerate,"
would entitle them to
birth"
(paling enesia)! which their consciences told them they so
much needed. The Papacy acts on precisely the same principle ;
and from this very source has its doctrine of baptismal regeneration
been derived, about which so much has been written and so many
controversies been waged. Let men contend as they may, this, and
this only, will be found to be the real origin of the anti-Scriptural
dogma.
The reader has seen already how faithfully Rome has copied the
Pagan exorcism in connection with baptism. All the other peeuli-
*
APOLLODORUS, lib. iii. c. xiv., vol. i.
pp. 356, 357. THEOCRITUS, Idyll xv.,
11. 103, 104, pp. 190, 191, Poetae Graeci Minores. Theocritus is speaking of
Adonis as delivered by Venus from Acheron, or the infernal regions, after being
there for a year but as the scene is laid in Egypt, it is evident that it is Osiris
;
"Shinar," then, according to this view, is just the land of the "Regenerator."
138 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
not hesitate to say, "We are not satisfied with that which the
apostles or the Gospel do declare, but we say that, as well before as
after, there are divers matters of importance and weight accepted
and received out of a doctrine which is nowhere set forth in writing.
For we do blesse the water wherewith we baptize, and the oyle
wherewith we annoynt ; yea, and besides that, him that is christened.
And (I pray you) out of what Scripture have we learned the same]
Have we it not of a secret and unwritten ordinance 1 And further,
what Scripture hath taught us to grease with oyle 1 Yea, I pray
you, whence cometh it, that we do dype the childe three times in the
water 1 it Doth
not come out of this hidden and undisclosed
doctrine, which our forefathers have received closely without any
curiosity, and do observe it still."* This learned divine of Lou
vaine, of course, maintains that the hidden and undisclosed "
doctrine "
darkness 1 what concord between Christ and Belial ? Let the history
of the Church bear testimony to the vanity, yea, impiety of such a
hope. Let the progress of our inquiries shed light upon the same.
At the present stage, there is only one of the concomitant rites of
baptism to which I will refer viz., the use of "spittle" in that
ordinance ; and an examination of the very words of the Roman
ritual, in applying it, will prove that its use in baptism must have
come from the Mysteries. The following is the account of its
application, as given by Bishop Hay J The priest recites another :
"
exorcism, and at the end of it touches the ear and nostrils of the
person to be baptised with a little spittle, saying, Ephpheta, that is,
*
Review of Epistle of Dr. GENTIANUS HARVET, p. 19 B, and 20 A.
t NEWMAN S Development, pp. 359, 360.
Sincere Christian^ vol. i. p. 368.
BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 139
Now, surely
the reader will at once ask, what possible, what conceivable con
"
Bacchus was represented with the mystic fan," that was to declare"
him to be the mighty One with whom was the residue of the Spirit." "
Hence came the idea of purifying the soul by means of the wind,
according to the description of Virgil, who represents the stain and
pollution of sin as being removed in this very way :
the doom of Babylon, as pronounced by Jeremiah li. 1, 2 Thus saith the Lord, :
"
Behold, I will raise up against Babylon, and against them that dwell in the
midst of them that rise up against me, a destroying ivind ; and will send unto
Babylon fanners, that shall fan her, and shall empty her land."
DRYDEN S Viryil, sEneid, Book vi. vs. 1002, 1003 in Original, ;
11. 739-741.
From "Flo," "I breathe."
HO DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
Spirit"
was But "Rekh" also signified spittle"; f so
"Rekh."*
"
that to anoint the nose and ears of the initiated with "spittle,"
spittle
actually copied from some Chaldean ritual in which was "
"
spittle
the appointed emblem of the is plain from the account
"Spirit,"
which she gives in her own recognised formularies of the reason for
anointing the ears with it. The reason for anointing the ears with
"spittle," says Bishop Hay,
is because "by the grace of baptism, the
ears of our soul are opened to hear the Word of God, and the inspira
tions of His Holy Spirit." J But what, it may be asked, has the
to do with the odour of sweetness ? I answer, The
" " "
"
spittle
very word Rekh," which signified the Holy Spirit," and was
" "
Fig. 35.
spittle is
daubed on his nose and ears, which otherwise would have no niean-
*
BUNSEN, vol. i. pp. 475, 476, and 516.
t PARKHURST S Lexicon, p. 703.
% Sincere Christian, vol. i. p. 368.
From Pompeii, vol. ii. p. 150. The reader will remember that Jupiter, as
Jupiter the boy," was worshipped in the arms of the goddess
"
Jupiter puer," or
"
Fortuna, just as Ninus was worshipped in the arms of the Babylonian goddess, or
Horus in the arms of Isis (see ante, p. 20). Moreover, Cupid, who, as being the
son of Jupiter, is Vejovis that is, as we learn from Ovid (vol. iii. p. 179, in a
Note to Fasti, lib. iii. v. 408), "Young Jupiter" is represented, as in the above
cut, not only with the wine-cup of Bacchus, but with the Ivy garland, the dis
tinctive mark of the same divinity, around him.
BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 141
ing at all
While was the primitive truth concealed under the "spittle,"
this
yet the whole spirit of Paganism was so opposed to the spirituality
of the patriarchal religion, and indeed intended to make it void, and
to draw men utterly away from it, while pretending to do homage
"
it, spittle
became the symbol of the grossest superstition. Theocritus shows
with what debasing rites it was mixed up in Sicily and Greece ; *
and Persius thus holds up to scorn the people of Rome in his day for
their reliance on it to avert the influence of the "
evil eye
"
"
May the Father, who creates man, curse him May the Son, who
"
suffered for us, curse him May the Holy Ghost who suffered for us !
| !
and utterly opposed such a curse as this is to the whole spirit of the
Gospel. But what I call the reader s attention to is the astounding
statement that the Holy Ghost suffered for us in baptism."
"
Where
in the whole compass of Scripture could warrant be found for such
an assertion as this, or anything that could even suggest it 1 But let
the reader revert to the Babylonian account of the personality of the
Holy Ghost, and the amount of blasphemy contained in this language
will be apparent. According to the Chaldean doctrine, Semiramis,
the wife of Ninus or Nimrod, when exalted to divinity under the
name of the Queen of Heaven, came, as we have seen, to be worshipped
as Juno, the Dove "
Now, when her husband, for his blasphemous rebellion against the
majesty of heaven, was cut off, for a season it was a time of tribula
tion also for her. The fragments of ancient history that have come
down to us give an account of her trepidation and flight, to save her
self from her adversaries. In the fables of the mythology, this flight
was mystically represented in accordance with what was attributed
*
THEOCRITUS, Idyll ii. 61, pp. 126, 127.
t PEKSIUS, Satires, ii. v. 30-34, in Original.
The above is from the curse fulminated against Mr. Hogan of Philadelphia for
leaving the Church of Rome, and assigning his reasons for doing so. See BEGG S
Handbook, p. 152. See also BLAKENEY S Popery in its Social Aspect, p. 126, and
Note to p. 127.
142 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
"
second, the god on the fish, from the same vol., p. 338. The former is just another
symbol of that which is represented by the mighty tree cut asunder (see ante,
p. 97). That tree represented Nimrod as the mighty one" cut in pieces in the"
midst of his power and glory. The divided man-bull symbolises him as The "
prince who was cut asunder in like manner ; for the name for a prince and a
"
bull is the same. The fish over the bull shows the transformation he was supposed
to undergo when put to death by his enemies for the story of Melikerta, who ;
with his mother Ino was cast into the sea, and became a sea-god (SMITH S Class.
Athamas," p. 100), is just another version of the story of Bacchus, for Ino
"
Diet.,
was the foster-mother of Bacchus (SMITH, sub vocc Dionysus," p. 226). Now, on "
f HOMER, Iliad, vi. v. 133. See BRYANT S Mythology, vol. iv. p. 57.
BAPTISMAL REGENERATION. 143
When Venus
Urania, or Dione,f the Heavenly Dove," plunged in deep distress
"
Every person," says the former, who came to the solemn sacrifices
* "
[of the Greeks] was purified by water. To which end, at the entrance
of the temples there was commonly placed a vessel full of holy
water."J How did this water get its holiness? This water "was
consecrated," says Athenseus, "by putting into it a BURNING TORCH
taken from the The burning torch was the express symbol
altar.
"
for consecrating the holy water," we may easily see whence came
"
one great part of the purifying virtue of "the water of the loud
resounding sea," which was held to be so efficacious in purging away
the guilt and stain of sin,|| even from the sun-god having taken
refuge in its waters. Now this very same method is used in the
Romish Church for consecrating the water for baptism. The unsus
picious testimony of Bishop Hay leaves no doubt on this point
" "
It :
[the water kept in the baptismal font], says he, is blessed on the
"
of love, which is
Divine communicated to the soul by baptism, and
the light of good example, which all who are baptised ought to give."**
This is the fair face put on the matter but the fact still remains ;
*
MANILIUS, Astronom., lib. iv. v. 579-582, p. 146.
t OVID, Fasti, lib. ii. 461.
POTTER S Antiquities, vol. i.
p. 195. ATHEN/EUS, lib. ix. p. 409.
All human ills," says Euripides, in a well-known passage,
II
"
"
of the great objects of the Mysteries was the presenting to fallen man
the means of his return to God. These means were the cathartic
virtues (i.e.,
the virtues by which sin is removed), by the exercise
of which a corporeal life was to be vanquished. Accordingly the
Mysteries were termed Teletse, perfections, because they were sup
posed to induce a perfectness of life. Those who were purified by
them were styled Teloumenoi and Tetelesmenoi, that is, brought
.... to perfection/ which depended on the exertions of the indi
vidual."! In the Metamorphosis of Apuleius, who was himself
initiated in the mysteries of Isis, we find this same doctrine of human
merits distinctly set forth. Thus the goddess is herself represented
*
See ante, p. 133. t OUVAKOFF, pp. 183, 184.
JUSTIFICATION BY WORKS. 145
: !
the intestines and put them into a vessel, over which (after some
other rites had been performed for the dead) one of the embalmers
pronounced an invocation to the sun in behalf of the deceased." The
formula, according to Euphantus, who translated it from the original
into Greek, was as follows thou Sun, our sovereign lord and
:
"
all ye Deities who have given life to man, receive me, and grant me
an abode with the eternal gods. During the whole course of my
life I have scrupulously worshipped the gods my father taught me
to adore ; I have ever honoured my parents, who begat this body ;
I have killed no one ; I have not defrauded any, nor have I done any
injury to any man."J Thus the merits, the obedience, or the inno
cence of man was the grand plea. The doctrine of Rome in
regard to the vital article of a sinner s justification is the very same.
Of course this of itself would prove little in regard to the affiliation
of the two systems, the Babylonian and the Roman for, from the ;
way. In the Papal legends it is taught that St. Michael the Arch
angel has committed to him the balance of God s justice, and that in
the two opposite scales of that balance the merits and the demerits
of the departed are put that they may be fairly weighed, the one
over against the other, and that as the scale turns to the favour
able or unfavourable side they may be justified or condemned
as the case may be. Now, the Chaldean doctrine of justifica
tion, as we get light on it from the monuments of Egypt, is
symbolised in precisely the same way, except that in the land of
Ham the scales of justice were committed to the charge of the god
Anubis instead of St. Michael the Archangel, and that the good
deeds and the bad seem to have been weighed separately, and a
distinct record made of each, so that when both were summed up and
*
Metam., cap. 11. f Ibid.
+ WILKINSON, vol. v. pp. 463, 464.
Review of Epistle of Dr. GENTIANUS HAEVET, Book II. chap. xiv.
L
H6 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
justice are erected ; and Anubis, the director of the weight, having
placed a vase representing the good actions of the deceased in one
scale, and the figure or emblem of truth in the other, proceeds to
ascertain his claims for admission. If, on being weighed, he is found
wanting, he is rejected, and Osiris, the judge of the dead, inclining
his sceptre in token of condemnation, pronounces judgment upon
him, and condemns his soul to return to earth under the form of a
pig or some unclean animal But if, when the SUM of his deeds
are recorded by Thoth [who stands by to mark the results of the
different weighings of Anubis], his virtues so far PREDOMINATE as to
entitle him to admission to the mansions of the blessed, Horus, taking
in his hand the tablet of Thoth, introduces him to the presence of
Osiris, who, in his palace, attended by Isis and Nepthys, sits on his
throne in the midst of the waters, from which rises the lotus, bearing
upon its expanded flowers the four Genii of Amenti."* The same
mode of symbolising the justification by works had evidently been in
use in Babylon itself and, therefore, there was great force in the
;
Tekel"
wanting."
In the Parsee system, which has largely borrowed from
Chaldea, the principle of weighing the good deeds over against the bad
deeds is fully developed. "For three days after dissolution," says
Vaux, in his Nineveh and Persepolis, giving an account of Parsee
doctrines in regard to the dead, "the soul is supposed to flit round
its tenement of clay, in hopes of reunion ; on the fourth, the Angel
Seroch appears, and conducts it to the bridge of Chinevad. On this
structure, which they assert connects heaven and earth, sits the
Angel of Justice, to weigh the actions of mortals ; when the good
deeds prevail, the soul is met on the bridge by a dazzling figure,
which says, I am thy good angel I was pure originally, but thy
:
good deeds have rendered me purer ; and passing his hand over the
neck of the blessed soul, leads it to Paradise. If iniquities prepond
erate, the soul is met by a hideous spectre, which howls out, I arn
thy evil genius ; I was impure from the first, but thy misdeeds have
made me fouler ; through thee we shall remain miserable until the
resurrection ; the sinning soul is then dragged away to hell, where
Ahriman sits to taunt it with its crimes."! Such is the doctrine of
Parseeism. The same is the case in China, where Bishop Hurd,
giving an account of the Chinese descriptions of the infernal regions,
and of the figures that refer to them, says, One of them always "
*
WILKINSON S Egyptians, vol. v. p. 447.
t VADX, p. 113.
JUSTIFICATION BY WORKS. H7
represents a sinner in a pair of scales, with his iniquities in the one,
and his good works in another." "We meet with several such
he adds,
representations," the Grecian mythology."*
"in Thus does
Sir J. F.Davis describe the operation of the principle in China In :
"
righteous
ness of Christ, that is unto all and upon all them that believe," that
delivers at once and for ever "from all condemnation," those who
accept of the offered Saviour, and by faith are vitally united to Him.
It is not the will of our Father in heaven, that His children in this
world should be ever in doubt and darkness as to the vital point of
their eternal salvation. Even a genuine saint, no doubt, may for a
season, if need be, be in heaviness through manifold temptations, but
such is not the natural, the normal state of a healthful Christian, of
one who knows the fulness and the freeness of the blessings of the
Gospel of peace. God has laid the most solid foundation for all His
people to say, with John, "We have KNOWN and believed the love
which God hath to (1 John iv. 16); or with Paul,
us" am "I
PERSUADED that neither death, nor life, nor angels, nor principalities,
nor powers, nor things present, nor things to come, nor height, nor
depth, nor any other creature, shall be able to separate us from the
love of God, which is in Christ Jesus" (Rom. viii. 38, 39). But
this no man can ever say, who "goes about to establish his own
righteousness" (Rom. x. 3), who seeks, in any shape, to be justified
*
KURD S Ritesand Ceremonies, p. 64, col. i.
f DAVIS
"
declared,
he went up to the Diet of Worms, to confront all the prelates and
potentates there convened to condemn the doctrine which he held.
It was this that in every age made the martyrs go with such sublime
heroism not only to prison but to death. It is this that emancipates
the soul, restores the true dignity of humanity, and cuts up by the
roots all the imposing pretensions of priestcraft. It is this only that
can produce a life of loving, filial, hearty obedience to the law and
commandments of God ; and that, when nature fails, and when the
king of terrors is at hand, can enable poor, guilty sons of men, with
the deepest sense of un worthiness, yet to say, death, where is thy
"
p. 353.
JUSTIFICATION BY WORKS. 149
I have had him at confession, / have shook hell about his ears, and
made him sigh, fear and tremble, before I would give him absolution.
By saw that he had still an inclination to me, and was willing
this I
to be under my government so I set the baseness of the action
;
before him by telling the whole story, and how wicked it was, and
that it could not be forgiven till he had done some good action to
BALANCE that, and expiate the crime. Whereupon he at last asked
me what he must do. I told him that he must root out all heretics
from his kingdom."* This was the "good action" to be cast into
the scale of St. Michael the Archangel, to BALANCE his crime.
" "
The king, wicked as he was sore against his will consented the ;
good action was cast in, the heretics were extirpated and the
" "
" "
king was absolved. But yet the absolution was not such but that,
when he went the way of all the earth, there was still much to be
cast in before the scales could be fairly adjusted. Thus Paganism
*
MACGAVIN S Protestant, p. 841, col. 2.
150 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
punished for his own sins, and that God cannot be satisfied { without
groans and sighs, lacerations of the flesh, tortures of the body, and
penances without number, on the part of the offender, however
broken in heart, however contrite that offender may be. Now,
looking simply at the Scripture, this perverse demand for self-torture
on the part of those for whom Christ has made a complete and
perfect atonement, might seem exceedingly strange ; but, looking at
the real character of the god whom the Papacy has set up for the
worship of its deluded devotees, there is nothing in the least strange
about it. That god is Moloch, the god of barbarity and blood.
Moloch signifies king and Nimrod was the first after the flood
" "
and truth," but by-and-by his worship was made to correspond with
*
WILKINSON S Egyptians, vol. v. pp. 9, 10.
t See what is said about Penance in connection with the Confessional, in Chap-
ter I. pp. 9, 10.
J Bishop HAY S Sincere Christian, vol. p. 270. The words of i.
Bishop Hay
are :
"
cruelty,"
hand in hand with abject superstition, filled not only "the
dark places of the earth," but also regions that boasted of their
enlightenment. Greece, Rome, Egypt, Phenicia, Assyria, and our
own land under the savage Druids, at one period or other in their
history, worshipped the same god and in the same way. Human
victims were his most acceptable offerings ; human groans and
wailings were the sweetest music in his ears ; human tortures were
believed to delight his heart. His image
bore, as the symbol of
"majesty,"
a his worshippers, at some of his
whip^ and with whips
festivals, were required unmercifully to scourge themselves. After "
the "
occasion, to call this identity of Horus and Apollo in question ; but he elsewhere
admits that the story of Apollo s combat with the serpent Py tho is evidently
"
derived from the Egyptian mythology" (vol. iv. p. 395), where the allusion is to
the representation of Horus piercing the snake with a spear. From divers
considerations, it may be shown that this conclusion is correct 1. Horus, or :
Osiris, was the sun-god, so was Apollo. 2. Osiris, whom Horus represented, was
the great Revealer the Pythian Apollo was the god of oracles.
; 3. Osiris, in the
character of Horus, was born when his mother was said to be persecuted by the
malice of her enemies. Latona, the mother of Apollo, was a fugitive for a similar
reason when Apollo was born. 4. Horus, according to one version of the myth,
was said, like Osiris, to have been cut in pieces (PLUTARCH, vol. ii., De hide,
p. 358, E). In the classic story of Greece, this part of the myth of Apollo was
generally kept in the background and he was represented as victor in the conflict
;
with the serpent but even there it was sometimes admitted that he had suffered
;
a violent death, for by Porphyry he is said to have been slain by the serpent, and
152 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
manner, with knives and with lancets, till the blood gushed out
upon them."! In Egypt, the natives in general, though liberal
in the use of the whip, seem to have been sparing of the knife ;
but even there, there were men also who mimicked on their own
persons the dismemberment of Osiris. "The Carians of Egypt,"
says Herodotus, in the place already quoted, "treat themselves
at this solemnity with still more severity, for they cut themselves
in the face with swords. To this practice, there can be no doubt,
"
Pythagoras affirmed that he had seen his tomb at Tripos in Delphi (BRYANT,
vol. ii. p. 187). 5. Horus was the war-god. Apollo was represented in the same
way as the great god represented in Layard, with the bow and arrow, who was
evidently the Babylonian war-god, Apollo s well-known title of
"
Arcitenens,"
"The bearer of the
bow," having evidently been borrowed from that source.
Fuss tells us (pp. 354, 355) that Apollo was regarded as the inventor of the art of
shooting with the bow. which identifies him with Sagittarius, whose origin we
have already seen. 6. Lastly, from Ovid (Metam., lib. i. fab. 8, 1. 442, vol. ii.
p. 39) we learn that, before engaging with Python, Apollo had used his arrows
only on fallow-deers, stags, &c. All which sufficiently proves his substantial
identification with the mighty Hunter of Babel.
*
CALLIMACHUS, in Original, v. 318-321, vol. i. p. 134.
t JULIUS FIRMICUS, p. 18.
1 Kings xviii. 28.
its
at the end of December they PROPITIATE with their blood the sickle-
bearing Son of Heaven."! On this passage, Justus Lipsius, who
quotes it, thus comments Where you will observe two things,
:
"
both, that the gladiators fought on the Saturnalia, and that they
did so for the purpose of appeasing and PROPITIATING Saturn. "J
is not among the celestial but the infernal gods. Plutarch, in his
book of Summaries, says, that * the Romans looked upon Kronos
as a subterranean and infernal God. There can be no doubt that "
this is so far true, for the name of Pluto is only a synonym for
Saturn, "The Hidden One."|| But yet, in the light of the real
history of the historical Saturn, we find a more satisfactory reason
for the barbarous custom that so much disgraced the escutcheon
of Rome in all its glory, when mistress of the world, when such
multitudes of men were
"
easy to see how the idea would arise of offering a welcome sacrifice
to him by setting men to cut one another in pieces on his birthday,
by way of propitiating his favour.
The practice of such penances, then, on the part of those of the
Pagans who cut and slashed themselves, was intended to propitiate
and please their god, and so to lay up a stock of merit that might
tell in their behalf in the scales of Anubis. In the Papacy, the
penances are not only intended to answer the same end, but, to
a large extent, they are identical. I do not know, indeed, that
they use the knife as the priests of Baal did ; but it is certain that
they look upon the shedding of their own blood as a most meritorious
penance, that gains them high favour with God, and wipes away
*
Roman Antiquities, p. 359.
t AUSONIUS, Eclog. i. p. 156.
LIPSIUS, torn. ii. SaturnaL, lib. i.
cap. 5.
definite article prefixed, becomes Lut." The Greek TT\OVTOS, "wealth," "the
"P
hidden thing," is obviously formed in the same way. Hades is just another
synonym of the same name.
154 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
many sins. Let the reader look at the pilgrims at Lough Dergh,
in Ireland, crawling on their bare knees over the sharp rocks, and
leaving the bloody tracks behind them, and say what substantial
difference there is between that and cutting themselves with knives.
In the matter of scourging themselves, however, the adherents
of the Papacy have literally borrowed the lash of Osiris. Everyone
has heard of the Flagellants, who publicly scourge themselves on
the festivals of the Roman Church, and who are regarded as saints
of the first water. In the early ages of Christianity such flagellations
were regarded as purely and entirely Pagan. Athenagoras, one
of the early Christian Apologists, holds up the Pagans to ridicule
for thinking that sin could be atoned for, or God propitiated, by
any such means.* But now, in the high places of the Papal Church,
such practices are regarded as the grand means of gaining the favour
of God. On Good Friday, at Rome and Madrid, and other chief
seats of Roman idolatry, multitudes flock together to witness the
performances of the saintly whippers, who lash themselves till
the blood gushes in streams from every part of their body.f They
pretend to do this in honour of Christ, on the festival set apart
professedly to commemorate His death, just as the worshippers
of Osiris did the same on the festival when they lamented for his
loss.J But can any man of the least Christian enlightenment
believe that the exalted Saviour can look on such rites as doing
honour to Him, which pour contempt on His all-perfect atonement,
and represent His most "precious blood" as needing to have its
virtue supplemented by that of blood drawn from the backs of
wretched and misguided sinners Such offerings were altogether
?
fit for the worship of Moloch ; but they are the very opposite
of being fit for the service of Christ.
It is not in one point only, but in manifold respects, that the
ceremonies of Holy Week at Rome, as it is termed, recall to
"
"
memory the rites of the great Babylonian god. The more we look at
these rites, the more we shall be struck with the wonderful resem
blance that subsists between them and those observed at the
Egyptian festival of burning lamps and the other ceremonies of
the fire-worshippers in different countries. In Egypt the grand
illumination took place beside the sepulchre of Osiris at Sais. In
Rome in Holy Week," a sepulchre of Christ also figures in
"
Crete, where the tomb of Jupiter was exhibited, that tomb was an
object of worship to the Cretans. IF In Rome, if the devotees do
*
ATHENAGORAS, Legatio pro Christ., s. 14, p. 134.
t HDRD S Rites and Ceremonies, p. 175 ; and Rome in the 19th Century, vol. iii.
p. 161.
The priests of Cybele at Rome observed the same practice. Ibid. p. 251,
Note.
WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 328.
U Rome in the 19th Century, vol. iii. pp. 145, 150.
IF "A vanis Cretensibus adhuc mortui Jovis tumulus adoratur." FIRMICUS,
lib. ii.
p. 23.
JUSTIFICATION BY WORKS. 155
*
Rome in the 19th Century, vol. iii.
p. 145.
f Ibid. pp. 148, 149. We shall yet see that the cross is the express symbol of
Tammuz, the sun-god and god of fire. See Sect. VI. of the next Chapter,
t Ibid. pp. 144, 145.
156 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
god, who, though an infernal god, was yet Phoroneus, the great
"Deliverer," it is altogether natural that the god of the Papal
idolatry, though called by Christ s name, should rise from the dead
on his own day the Dies Saturni, or Saturn s day." * On the day "
We have evidence
that goes to show the Babylonian origin of the idea of that unbloody "
*
The above account referred to the ceremonies as witnessed by the authoress
in 1817 and 1818. It would seem that some change has taken place since then,
caused probably by the very attention called by her to the gross anomaly mentioned
above for Count Vlodaiskj^ formerly a Roman Catholic priest, who visited
;
Rome in 1845, has informed me that in that year the resurrection took place, not
at mid-day, but at nine o clock on the evening of Saturday. This may have been
intended to make the inconsistency between Roman practice and Scriptural fact
appear somewhat less glaring. Still the fact remains, that the resurrection of
Christ, as celebrated at Rome, takes place, not on His own day The Lord s "
f A
surname of one of the three Linuses was Narcissus (in Greek, Narkissos).
(CLINTON S Fasti Eellenici, Appendix, vol. i. p. 343.) Now Naar signifies "
"
"child," and "Kissos,"as we have seen (p. 49), is Cueh, so that Nar-kissos is
The child of Cush."
"
to be kept pure from blood. Tacitus shows that the Haruspex of the
temple of the Paphian Venus was brought from Cilicia, for his know
ledge of her rites, that they might be duly performed according to the
supposed will of the goddess, the Cilicians having peculiar knowledge
of her rites. ISTow, Tarsus, the capital of Cilicia, was built by Senna
cherib, the Assyrian king, in express imitation of Babylon.* Its
religion would naturally correspond; and when we find "unbloody
in Cyprus, whose priest came from Cilicia, that, in the
"
sacrifice
sacrifice to it
who was first worshipped by the Assyrians, and after these by the
Paphians in Cyprus, and the Phenicians who inhabited the city of
Ascalon in Palestine. But the Cythereans venerated this goddess
in consequence of learning her sacred rites from the Phenicians. "|
The Assyrian Venus, then that is, the great goddess of Babylon
and the Cyprian Venus were one and the same, and consequently
the bloodless altars of the Paphian goddess show the character of
"
"
the worship peculiar to the Babylonian goddess, from whom she was
derived. In this respect the goddess-queen of Chaldea differed from
her son, who was worshipped in her arms. He was, as we have seen,
represented as delighting in blood. But she, as the mother of grace
and mercy, as the celestial Dove," as the hope of the whole " "
Bible, and sees how expressly it declares that, as there is only one "
(1 Tim. ii.
5), must marvel how it could ever have entered the mind
IF Mylitta is the same as Melitta, the feminine of Melitz, mediator," which "a
in Chaldee becomes Melitt. Melitz is the word used in Job xxxiii. 23, 24 : "If
there be a messenger with him, an interpreter (Heb. Melitz, mediator"), one "a
among a thousand, to show unto man his uprightness, then he is gracious unto
him, and saith, Deliver him from going down to the pit I have found a ransom." ;
soothe the breast of angry Jove, and soften the most rugged spirits
of gods or mortal-men. In Athens she was called Amarusia f that
is, The Mother of gracious acceptance."! In Rome she was called
"
Bona Dea," the good goddess," the mysteries of this goddess being
" "
the great gods, on whom the final destinies of mankind depend, are
held up to the popular mind as objects of dread ; but the goddess
Kuanyin, "the goddess of mercy,"|| whom the Chinese of Canton
recognise as bearing an analogy to the Virgin of Rome, is described
as looking with an eye of compassion on the guilty, and interposing
to save miserable souls even from torments to which in the world of
spirits they have been doomed.1T Therefore she is regarded with
peculiar favour by the Chinese. This character of the goddess-mother
has evidently radiated in all directions from Chaldea. Now, thus we
see how it comes that Rome represents Christ, the Lamb of God," "
meek and lowly in heart, who never brake the bruised reed, nor
quenched the smoking flax who spake words of sweetest encourage
ment to every mourning penitent who wept over Jerusalem who
prayed for His murderers as a stern and inexorable judge, before
whom the sinner might grovel in the dust, and still never be sure
"
that his prayers would be heard,"** while Mary is set off in the most
winning and engaging light, as the hope of the guilty, as the grand
refuge of sinners ; how it is that the former is said to have reserved "
aph,"
"
radah,"
"
to subdue ;
" "
radlte
"
is the
feminine emphatic.
f PAUSANIAS, lib. i., Attica, cap. 31, p. 72.
From "
"
Yea, rather, blessed are they that hear the Word of God and
"
her,
keep (Luke xi. 27, 28).
it" There cannot be a doubt that this
answer was given by the prescient Saviour, to check in the very bud
every idea akin to that expressed by Liguori. Yet this idea, which
is not to be found in Scripture, which the Scripture expressly
Siva," says
of gods
Papal story to the Son of the Blessed, when it represents Him as
needing to be pacified by His mother exposing to Him the breasts
"
that He has sucked." All this is done only to exalt the Mother, as
more gracious and more compassionate than her glorious Son. Now,
this was the very case in Babylon and to this character of the :
sacrifice
Church of Rome lays so much stress, that, to use the pithy language
of John Knox in regard to the wafer-god, in making the "If,
sacrifice ?
the Supper of our Lord ; for in all the accounts that are given of it,
no reference whatever is made to the form of the bread which our
Lord took, when He blessed and break it, and gave it to His disciples,
Take, eat this is My body this do in remembrance of
"
:
saying, ;
Fig. 37.
initiated adored her for a higher gift for food to nourish their
souls for giving them that bread of God that cometh down from
heaven for the life of the world, of which, if a man eat, he shall "
is life 1
never could be, spiritual life in any soul, since the world began, at
least since the expulsion from Eden, that was not nourished and
supported by a continual feeding by faith on the Son of God, in "
whom it hath pleased the Father that all fulness should dwell"
(Col. i. 19), "that out of His fulness we might receive, and grace
for grace" (John i. 16). Paul tells us that the manna of which the
Israelites ate in the wilderness was to them a type and lively symbol
of "the bread of life;" (1 Cor. x. 3), "They did all eat the same
spiritual meat i.e., meat which was intended not only to support
"
their natural lives, but to point them to Him who was the life of
their souls. Now, Clement of Alexandria, to whom we are largely
indebted for all the discoveries that, in modern times, have been
made in Egypt, expressly assures us that, their hidden character, "in
Bar,"
"
"the Son." And now, the reader will be prepared to understand the
full significance of the representation in the Celestial sphere of
"
the
*
CLEMENS ALEXANDRINUS, Stromata, v. 7, vol. iii. p. 56.
f DAVIES S British Druids, p. 504.
Song of Taliesin," DAVIKS S British Druids, p. 230.
"
J
M
162 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
Virgin with the ear of wheat in her hand." That ear of wheat in
the Virgin s hand is just another symbol for the child in the arms
of the Virgin Mother.
Now, this Son, who was symbolised as "Corn," was the SUN-
divinity incarnate, according to the sacred oracle of the great
goddess of Egypt "No
: mortal hath lifted my veil The fruit
which I have brought forth is the SUN."* What more natural,
then, if this incarnate divinity is symbolised as the bread of God,"
"
"A
plate of silver, in the form of a SUN, is fixed opposite to the
SACRAMENT on the altar ; which, with the
Fig. 38.
light of the tapers, makes a most brilliant
appearance."! What has that "brilliant"
to do there, on the altar, over
"
Sun"
*
BUNSEN S Egypt, vol. i.
pp. 386, 387.
t KURD S Rites and Ceremonies, p. 196, col. i.
J From MAURICE S Indian Antiquities, vol. iii. p. 809. 1793.
See ante, p. 62.
||PRESCOTT S Peru, vol. i. p. 64. IF BRYANT, vol. i.
p. 259.
THE SACRIFICE OF THE MASS. 163
when the wafer is so placed that the silver SUN is fronting the "
"
Corn,"
"
*
Quoted by Translator of SAVARY S Letters, vol. ii. pp. 562, 563, Note.
f Protestant, p. 269, col. 2. Sincere Christian, vol. ii. sect. iii. p. 34.
POTTER, vol. i., Elcusiania, p. 356.
164 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
the mass, we have seen not little already. But there is something
yet to be considered, in which the working of the mystery of iniquity
will still further appear. There are letters on the wafer that are
worth reading. These letters are I. H. S. What mean these
mystical letters? To a Christian these letters are represented as
signifying, lesus Hominum Salvator," "Jesus the Saviour of men."
"
But let a Roman worshipper of Isis (for in the age of the emperors
there were innumerable worshippers of Isis in Rome) cast his eyes
upon them, and how will he read them? He will read them, of
course, according to his own well-known system of idolatry: "/sis,
Horus, that is,
Seb" The Mother, the Child, and the Father of the
"
gods,"
in other words, The Egyptian Trinity." Can the reader
"
imagine that this double sense is accidental ? Surely not. The very
same spirit that converted the festival of the Pagan Cannes into the
feast of the Christian Joannes, retaining at the same time all its
ancient Paganism, has skilfully planned the initials I. H. S. to pay
the semblance of a tribute to Christianity, while Paganism in reality
has all the substance of the homage bestowed upon it.
When the women of Arabia began to adopt this wafer and offer
the "unbloody sacrifice," all genuine Christians saw at once the real
character of their sacrifice. They were treated as heretics, and
branded with the name of Collyridians, from the Greek name for the
cake which they employed. But Rome saw that the heresy might
be turned to account \ and therefore, though condemned by the sound
portion of the Church, the practice of offering and eating this
was patronised by the Papacy ; and now,
"
"
unbloody sacrifice
throughout the whole bounds of the Romish communion, it has
superseded the simple but most precious sacrament of the Supper
instituted by our Lord Himself.
EXTREME UNCTION. 165
fairly quoted it will be seen that such a practice could never have
arisen from the apostolic direction that it must have come from an
entirely different source. any sick among you?" says James
"Is
(v. 14, 15), the elders of the church; and let them
"let him call for
pray over him, anointing him with oil in the name of the Lord :
and the prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord shall RAISE
HIM UP." Now, it is evident that this prayer and anointing were
intended for the recovery of the sick. Apostolic men, for the laying
of the foundations of the Christian Church, were, by their great King
and Head, invested with miraculous powers powers which were
intended only for a time, and were destined, as the apostles them
selves declared, while exercising them, to "vanish away" (1 Cor.
xiii. 8). These powers were every day exercised by the elders of "
the Church," when James wrote his epistle, and that for healing the
bodies of men, even as our Lord Himself did. The "extreme
of Rome, as the very expression itself declares, is not
unction"
intended for any such purpose. It is not intended for healing the
sick, or raising them up ; for it is not on any account to be admin
" "
properly
given exactly as the name of the "Lord of Oil" (pp. 12, 13). EUSEB., Praep.
Evang., lib. i.
cap. 10, p. 39.
f HERODOTUS, lib. iii. cap. 124.
166 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
certainly not an idea that could naturally have presented itself ; but
when the name Beel-samen," Lord of Heaven," is seen also to
" "
signify Oil,"
of it is
suggested. This also accounts for the fact that the body of the Baby
lonian Belus was represented as having been preserved in his
sepulchre in Babylon till the time of Xerxes, floating in oil.* And
for the same reason, no doubt, it was that at Rome the statue of "
iv. 12-14). Hence the reason that the Greeks, in coming before their
gods in the attitude of suppliants deprecating their wrath and entreat
ing their favour, came to the temple on many occasions bearing an
olive branch in their hands. As the olive branch was one of the
recognised symbols of their Messiah, whose great mission it was to
make peace between God and man, so, in bearing this branch of the
anointed one, they thereby testified that in the name of that anointed
one they came seeking peace. Now, the worshippers of this Beel-
samen, "Lord of Heaven," and "Lord of Oil," were anointed in the
name of their god. It was not enough that they were anointed with
spittle ; they were also anointed with "magical ointments
" "
of the
"
most powerful kind ; and these ointments were the means of intro
ducing into their bodily systems such drugs as tended to excite their
imaginations and add to the power of the magical drinks they received,
that they might be prepared for the visions and revelations that were
to be made to them in the Mysteries. These unctions" says Salverte, "
Before
consulting the oracle of Trophonius, they were rubbed with oil over
the whole body. This preparation certainly concurred to produce the
desired vision. Before being admitted to the Mysteries of the Indian
sages, Apollonius and his companion were rubbed with an oil so
powerful that they felt as if bathed with fire This was professedly "\
an unction in the name of the Lord of Heaven," to fit and prepare "
them for being admitted in vision into his awful presence. The very
same reason that suggested such an unction before initiation on this
present scene of things, would naturally plead more powerfully still
for a special unction when the individual was called, not in vision,
"
"
Its votaries
were anointed for their last journey, that by the double influence of
superstition and powerful stimulants introduced into the frame by
the only way in which it might then be possible, their minds might
*
CLERICUS, Phiiosoph. Orient., lib. i., De Chaldccis, sect. i.
cap. 4.
t SMITH S Classical Dictionary, p. 679.
t SALVERT, Des Sciences Occultes, p. 282.
Quarterly Journal of Prophecy, p. 6, January, 1853.
PURGATORY AND PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD. 167
held up before the minds of men but there, there seems to have been
;
*
Bishop GIBSON says that it was not known in the Church for a thousand
years. Preservative against Popery, vol. viii. p. 255.
f PLATO, Pfiaedrus, p. 249, A, B.
168 DOCTRINE AND DISCIPLINE.
Pagan priesthood
merchandise of the tender feelings of sorrowing relatives, sensitively
alive to the immortal happiness of the beloved dead. From all
quarters there is one universal testimony as to the burdensome char
acter and the expense of these posthumous devotions. One of the
oppressions under which the poor Romanists in Ireland groan, is the
periodical special devotions, for which they are required to pay, when
death has carried away one of the inmates of their dwelling. Not
only are there funeral services and funeral dues for the repose of the
departed, at the time of burial, but the priest pays repeated visits to
the family for the same purpose, which entail heavy expense, begin
ning with what is called "the month s mind," that is, a service in
behalf of the deceased when a month after death has elapsed. Some
thing entirely similar to this had evidently been the case in ancient
Greece ; for, says Miiller in his History of the Dorians, the "
made by the man himself at the approach of death ; or, if he be too "
free them from all the evils to which the wicked are liable when
they have left this world. In Egypt the exactions of the priests
"IT
for funeral dues and masses for the dead were far from being trifling.
* DRYDKN Book
S Virgil, vi. 11. 995-1012, vol.ii.
p. 536 ; in Original, 11. 730-747.
f Dorians, vol. ii. p. 405. MULLER states that the Argives sacrificed also
immediately after death.
$. Asiatic Researches, vol. vii. pp. 239, 240.
Asiatic Journal, vol. xvii. p. 143.
11 SUIDAS, vol. ii. p. 879, B.
IT PLATO, vol. ii. pp. 364, 365.
PURGATORY AND PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD. 169
"The
says Wilkinson, "induced the people to expend large
priests,"
sums on the celebration of funeral rites ; and many who had barely
sufficient to obtain the necessaries of life were anxious to save some
thing for the expenses of their death. For, besides the embalming
process, which sometimes cost a talent of silver, or about 250
English money, the tomb itself was purchased at an immense
expense ;
and numerous demands were made upon the estate of the
deceased, for the celebration of prayer and other services for the
soul."* The ceremonies," we find him elsewhere saying, consisted
" "
the same extortions in the one as there were in the other. The
doctrine of purgatory is purely Pagan, and cannot for a moment
stand in the light of Scripture. For those who die in Christ no
purgatory is, or can be, needed ; for the blood of Jesus Christ, "
God s Son, cleanseth from ALL sin." If this be true, where can there
be the need for any other cleansing 1 On the other hand, for those
who and consequently unwashed,
die without personal union to Christ,
unjustified, unsaved, there can be no other cleansing; for, while he "
that hath the Son hath life, he that hath not the Son hath not life,"
and never can have it. Search the Scripture through, and it will be
found that, in regard to all who "die in their sins" the decree of
God is irreversible Let him that is unjust be unjust still, and let
:
"
purifying Baal-fires of the eve of St. John, they form another link in
identifying the system of Rome with the system of Tammuz or
Zoroaster, the great God of the ancient fire-worshippers.
Now, if baptismal regeneration, justification by works, penance as
a satisfaction to God s justice, the unbloody sacrifice of the mass,
extreme unction, purgatory, and prayers for the dead, were all
derived from Babylon, how justly may the general system of Rome
be styled Babylonian ? And if the account already given be true,
what thanks ought we to render to God, that, from a system such as
this, we were set free at the blessed Reformation ! How great a
boon is it to be delivered from trusting in such refuges of lies as
could no more take away sin than the blood of bulls or of goats !
How blessed to feel that the blood of the Lamb, applied by the
Spirit of God to the most defiled conscience, completely purges it
from dead works and from sin ! How fervent ought our gratitude
to be, when we know that, in all our trials and distresses, we may
come boldly unto the throne of grace, in the name of no creature,
but of God s eternal and well-beloved Son ; and that that Son is
exhibited as a most tender and compassionate high priest, who is
TOUCHED with a feeling of our infirmities, having been in all points
tempted like as we are, yet without sin. Surely the thought of all
this, while inspiring tender compassion for the deluded slaves of
Papal tyranny, ought to make us ourselves stand fast in the liberty
wherewith Christ has made us free, and quit ourselves like men,
that neither we nor our children may ever again be entangled in the
yoke of bondage.
CHAPTER V.
THOSE who have read the account of the last idol procession in the
capital of Scotland, in John Knox s History of the Reformation,
cannot easily have forgot the tragi-comedy with which it ended.
The light of the Gospel had widely spread, the Popish idols had lost
their fascination, and popular antipathy was everywhere rising
against them. "The
images," says the historian, "were stolen
away in all parts of the country ; and in Edinburgh was that great
idol called Sanct Geyle [the patron saint of the capital], first drowned
in the North Loch, after burnt, which raised no small trouble in the
town."* The bishops demanded of the Town Council either "to
get
them again the old Sanct Geyle, or else, upon their (own) expenses,
to make a new image, The Town Council could not do the one,
"f
and the other they absolutely refused to do for they were now ;
possible.
from the Grey friars, which the people, in derision, called Young "
Sanct Geyle," and which was made to do service instead of the old
one. On the appointed day, says Knox, there assembled priests, "
friars, canons .... with taborns and trumpets, banners, and bag
pipes ; and who was there to lead the ring but the Queen Regent
herself, with all her shavelings, for honour of that feast. West
about goes it, and comes down the High Street, and down to the
Canno Cross. As long as the Queen was present, all went to the
"J
as willing to help to bear him, and getting the fertour (or barrow)
on their shoulders, began to shudder, thinking that thereby the idol
should have fallen. But that was provided and prevented by the
iron nails [with which it was fastened to the fertour] ; and so began
one to cry, Down with the idol, down with it; and so without
* 258.
KNOX, vol. i.
p. 256. t Ibid. vol. i.
p.
Ibid. vol. i.
p. 259.
171
172 RITES AND CEREMONIES.
delay it was pulled down. Some brag made the priests patrons at
the first ; but when they saw the feebleness of their god, for one took
him by the heels, and dadding* his head to the calsay,f left Dagon
without head or hands, and said, Fye upon thee, thou young Sanct
Geyle, thy father would have tarried J four such [blows] ; this
considered, we say, the priests and friars fled faster than they did at
Pinkey Cleuch. There might have been seen so sudden a fray as
seldom has been seen amongst that sort of men within this realm ;
for down goes the crosses, off goes the surplice, round caps corner
with the crowns. The Grey friars gaped, the Black friars blew,
the priests panted and fled, and happy was he that first gat the
house ; for such ane sudden fray came never amongst the generation
of Antichrist within this realm before."
Such an idol procession among a people who had begun to study
and relish the Word of God, elicited nothing but indignation and
scorn. But in Popish lands, among a people studiously kept in the
dark, such processions are among the favourite means which the
Romish Church employs to bind its votaries to itself. The long
processions with images borne on men s shoulders, with the gorgeous
dresses of the priests, and the various habits of different orders of
monks and nuns, with the aids of flying banners and the thrilling
strains of instrumental music, if not too closely scanned, are well
plausibly to amuse
"
fitted
"
singing and uttering the words, "Lord, have mercy upon us,"
Dr. Wiseman, referring to the Indian disasters, had this calamity "
fallen upon our forefathers in Catholic days, one would have seen
the streets of this city [London] trodden in every direction by
penitential processions, cryingout, like David, when pestilence
had struck the people."
If this allusion to David has any pertinence
or meaning, it must imply that David, in the time of pestilence,
headed some such "penitential procession." But Dr. Wiseman
knows, or ought to know, that David did nothing of the sort, that
his penitence was expressed in no such way as by processions, and
far less by idol processions, as "in the Catholic days of our fore
fathers," to which we are invited to turn back. This reference
to David, then, is a mere blind, intended to mislead those who are
not given to Bible reading, as if such penitential processions had
" "
"
Here is a precedent
penitential processions for "
in connection
"
Himself had chosen for its abode ; and on such an occasion it was
entirely fitting and proper that the transference should be made
with all religious solemnity. But these were simply occasional
things, and have nothing at all in common with Romish processions,
which form a regular part of the Papal ceremonial. But, though
Scripture speaks nothing of religious processions in the approved
worship of God, it refers once and again to Pagan processions,
and these, too, accompanied with images; and it vividly exposes
the folly of those who can expect any good from gods that cannot
move from one place to another, unless they are carried. Speaking
of the gods of Babylon, thus saith the prophet Isaiah (chap. xlvi. 6),
They lavish gold out of the bag, and weigh silver in the balance,
"
yea, they worship. They bear him upon the shoulder, they carry him,
and set him in his place, and he standeth ; from his place he shall
not remove." In the sculptures of Nineveh these processions of
idols, borne on men s shoulders, are forcibly represented,* and form
at once a striking illustration of the prophetic language, and of the
real origin of the Popish processions. In Egypt, the same practice
was observed. In "the procession of shrines," says Wilkinson,
was usual to carry the statue of the principal deity, in whose
"it
honour the procession took place, together with that of the king,
and the figures of his ancestors, borne in the same manner, on men s
shoulders." f But not only are the processions in general identified
with the Babylonian system. We have evidence that these pro
cessions trace their origin to that very disastrous event in the history
of Nimrod, which has already occupied so much of our attention.
Wilkinson says "that Diodorus speaks of an Ethiopian festival
of Jupiter, when his statue was carried in procession, probably to
commemorate the supposed refuge of the gods in that country,
which," says he, "may have been a memorial of the flight of the
Egyptians with their gods." J The passage of Diodorus, to which
*
LAYARD Nineveh and its Remains,
S vol. ii. p. 451.
f WILKINSON, vol. v. p. 273.
I Ibid. vol. v. p. 274.
IDOL PROCESSIONS. 175
Ethiopians used to fetch the images of Zeus, and other gods from
the great temple of Zeus at Thebes. With these images they went
about at a certain period in Libya, and celebrated a splendid festival
for twelve gods."f As the festival was called an Ethiopian festival;
and as it was Ethiopians that both carried away the idols and
brought them back again, this indicates that the idols must have
been Ethiopian idols; and as we have seen that Egypt was under
the power of Nimrod, and consequently of the Cushites or Ethiopians,
when idolatry was for a time put down in Egypt, what would this
carrying of the idols into Ethiopia, the land of the Cushites, that
was solemnly commemorated every year, be, but just the natural
result of the temporary suppression of the idol- worship inaugurated
by Nimrod. In Mexico, we have an account of an exact counter
part of this Ethiopian festival. There, at a certain period, the
images of the gods were carried out of the country in a mourning-
procession, as if taking their leave of it, and then, after a time, they
were brought back to it again with every demonstration of joy.
In Greece, we find a festival of an entirely similar kind, which,
while it connects itself with the Ethiopian festival of Egypt on
the one hand, brings that festival, on the other, into the closest
relation to the penitential procession of Pope Gregory. Thus we
find Potter referring first to a Delphian festival in
"
memory of
a JOURNEY of Apollo; "||
and then under the head of the festival
called Apollonia, thus read we
To Apollo, at ^Egialea on this :
"
in Egypt ;
between Shein and Nimrod. Thus we
in other words,
see the real meaning and origin of the Ethiopian festival, when the
Ethiopians carried away the gods from the Egyptian temples. That
festival evidently goes back to the time when Nimrod being cut
off, idolatry durst not show itself except among the devoted adherents
of the "Mighty hunter"
(who were found in his own family
the family of Gush), when, with great weepings and lamentations,
the idolaters fled with their gods on their shoulders, to hide them
selves where they might.* In commemoration of the suppression
of idolatry, and the unhappy consequences that were supposed to
flow from that suppression, the first part of the festival, as we get light
upon it both from Mexico and Greece, had consisted of a procession of
mourners ; and then the mourning was turned into joy, in memory
of the happy return of these banished gods to their former exaltation.
Truly a worthy origin for Pope Gregory s Sevenfold Litany and " "
and he will in no wise wonder that Rome has made a saint of him,
and set him up for the worship of her devotees. Take only a speci
men or two of the stories with which he bolsters up the prevalent
delusions of his day When the Bishop Projectius brought the
:
"
relics of St. Stephen to the town called Aquae Tibiltinse, the people
came in great crowds to honour them. Amongst these was a blind
woman, who entreated the people to lead her to the bishop who had
the HOLY RELICS. They did so, and the bishop gave her some flowers
which he had in his hand. She took them, and put them to her
eyes, and immediately her sight was restored, so that she passed
speedily on before all the others, no longer requiring to be guided. "f
In Augustine s day, the formal worship of the relics was not yet
" "
*
In regard to flight of the gods," see also
"the
Chapter VII.
t De Civitate, lib. xxii. cap. 8, vol. ix. p. 875. B and C.
RELIC WORSHIP. 177
poor and holy old man, by name Florentius, who obtained a living
by tailoring. This man once lost his coat, and not being able to
purchase another to replace it, he came to the shrine of the Twenty
Martyrs, in this city, and prayed aloud to them, beseeching that they
would enable him to get another garment. A crowd of silly boys
who overheard him, followed him at his departure, scoffing at him,
and asking him whether he had begged fifty pence from the martyrs
to buy a coat. The poor man went silently on towards home, and as
he passed near the sea, he saw a large fish which had been cast up on
the sand, and was still panting. The other persons who were present
allowed him to take up this fish, which he brought to one Catosus, a
cook, and a good Christian, who bought it from him for three
hundred pence. With this he meant to purchase wool, which his
wife might spin, and make into a garment for him. When the cook
cut up the fish, he found within its belly a ring of gold, which his
conscience persuaded him to give to the poor man from whom he
bought the fish. He did so, saying, at the same time, Behold how
"
the Twenty Martyrs have clothed you! H Thus did the great
Augustine inculcate the worship of dead men, and the honouring of
their wonder-working relics. The "
silly children
"
who "
scoffed
"
at
the tailor s prayer seem to have had more sense than either the
11
holy old tailor
"
committed,"
sacred relic, "to the custody" of the man who had fished it out of
the sea, and of his posterity after him.f The bones of the Trojan
Hector were preserved as a precious deposit at Thebes.
"
"
They
[the Thebans], says Pausanias, "say that his [Hector s] bones were
brought hither from Troy, in consequence of the following oracle :
J
*
De Civitate, lib. xxii., cap. 8, vol. ix. pp. 874, 875. This story of the fish and
the ring is an old Egyptian story. (WILKINSON, vol. Catosus,
pp. 186, 187.) i.
"the
good Christian," was evidently a tool of the priests, who could afford to give
him a ring to put into the fish s belly. The miracle would draw worshippers to
the shrine of the Twenty Martyrs, and thus bring grist to their mill, and amply
repay them.
f PAUSANIAS, lib. v., Prior Eliaca, cap. 13, p. 408.
Ibid. lib. ix., Bceotica, cap. 18, p. 746.
N
178 RITES AND CEREMONIES.
of the Holy Coat of Treves, and its exhibition to the people ? From
the following, the reader will see that there was an exactly similar
exhibition of the Holy Coat of Buddha "
brought to the spot where he was poised, the Dupathupo (or shrine)
in which the DRESS laid aside by Buddho, as Prince Siddhatto, on his
entering the priesthood, was enshrined .... and EXHIBITED IT TO
THE PEOPLE."! This Holy Coat" of Buddha was no doubt as
"
among
sionary, who was sent to one of the principal courts of Ceylon to
demand a relic or two from the Rajah, "King of Devas, thou
possessest the right canine tooth relic (of Buddha), as well as the
right collar bone of the divine teacher. Lord of Devas, demur not
in matters involving the salvation of the land of Lanka. Then the "
||
bones or limbs of Buddha were scattered all over the world, like
those of Osiris and Jupiter Zagreus. To collect them was the first
*
POCOCKE S India in Greece, p. 307.
f Ibid. pp. 307, 308.
Original Interpretation of the Apocalypse, p. 72.
POCOCKE, p. 321.
||
Ibid. p. 321, and Note.
RELIC WORSHIP. 179
venerable antiquity. If, therefore, Rome can boast that she has six
teen or twenty holy coats, seven or eight arms of St. Matthew, two
or three heads of St. Peter, this is nothing more than Egypt could do
in regard to the relics of Osiris. Egypt was covered with sepulchres
of its martyred god ; and many a leg and a^m and skull, all vouched
to be genuine, were exhibited in the rival burying-places for the
adoration of the Egyptian faithful. Nay, not [only were these
Egyptian relics sacred themselves, they CONSECRATED THE VERY
GROUND in which they were entombed. This fact is brought out
by Wilkinson, from a statement of Plutarch | "The Temple of this
:
holy was the place considered by the Egyptians, that persons living
*
Asiatic Researches, vol. x. pp. 128, 129.
f PLUTARCH, vol. p. 358, A.
ii.
This seems not to have been a procession merely of the priests in the
immediate neighbourhood of the tomb, but a truly national pilgrimage ;
for, says Diodorus,
"
Philae is revered by
the sepulchre of Osiris at
all the priests throughout Egypt. "II have We
not the same minute
information about the relic worship in Assyria or Babylon ; but we
have enough to show that, as it was the Babylonian god that was
worshipped in Egypt under the name of Osiris, so in his own country
there was the same superstitious reverence paid to his relics. We
have seen already, that when the Babylonian Zoroaster died, he was
said voluntarily to have given his life as a sacrifice, and to have
"charged his countrymen to preserve his remains" assuring
them
*
WILKINSON, vol. iv. 346.
p.
t Evangelical Christendom, Ann. 1855, vol. ix. p. 201.
J HERODOTUS, ffistoria, lib. ii. cap. 60, pp. 126, 127.
PLUTARCH, vol. ii. p. 359, B.
II WILKINSON S Egyptians, vol. iv. p. 346.
IF DIODORUS, lib.i.
p. 13.
THE CLOTHING AND CROWNING OF IMAGES. 181
Him shall not be broken." When, again, the false Messiah was
pretended to have had a resurrection, that resurrection was in a new
body, while the old body, with all its members, was left behind,
thereby showing that the resurrection was nothing but a pretence
and a sham. When, however, the true Messiah was "declared to
be the Son of God with power, by the resurrection from the dead,"
the tomb, though jealously watched by the armed unbelieving soldiery
of Rome, was found to be absolutely empty, and no dead body of the
Lord was ever afterwards found, or even pretended to have been
found. The resurrection of Christ, therefore, stands on a very
different footing from the resurrection of Osiris. Of the body of
Christ, of course, in the nature of the case, there could be no relics.
Rome, however, to carry out the Babylonian system, has supplied the
deficiency by means of the relics of the saints and now the relics of
;
St. Peter and St. Paul, of St. Thomas A Beckett and St. Lawrence
O Toole, occupy the very same place in the worship of the Papacy as
the relics of Osiris in Egypt, or of Zoroaster in Babylon.
giving
3000 reals in alms to the poor," but especially, and above all, for
their piety in "presenting the Virgin with a magnificent dress of
tissue of gold, with white lace and a silver crown." Somewhat about
*
SUIDAS, in Zoroastres, vol. i. pp. 1133, 1134. See further on this subject in
Chap. VII. Sect. I., in connection with what is said about Phaethon.
f Metamorphoses, lib. iv. 1. 88, vol. ii. p. 278.
182 KITES AND CEREMONIES.
the same time the piety of the dissolute Queen of Spain was testified
by a similar benefaction, when she deposited at the feet of the Queen
of Heaven the homage of the dress and jewels she wore on a previous
occasion of solemn thanksgiving, as well as the dress in which she was
attired when she was stabbed by the assassin Merino. The mantle," "
says the Spanish journal JEspana, exhibited the marks of the wound,
"
and its ermine lining was stained with the precious blood of Her
Majesty. In the basket (that bore the dresses) were likewise the
jewels which adorned Her Majesty s head and breast. Among them
was a diamond stomacher, so exquisitely wrought, and so dazzling,
that it appeared to be wrought of a single stone."* This is all suffi
ciently childish, and presents human nature in a most humiliating
aspect ; but it is just copied from the old Pagan worship. The same
clothing and adorning of the gods went on in Egypt, and there were
sacred persons who alone could be permitted to interfere with so
high a function. Thus, in the Rosetta Stone we find these sacred
functionaries distinctly referred to : "The chief priests and prophets,
and those who have access to the adytum to clothe the gods, ....
assembled in the temple at Memphis, established the following
The "clothing of the gods" occupied an equally important
decree."!
"
holy of the mysteries, they say that the mystics at first meet with
the many-shaped genera [i.e., with evil demons], which are hurled
forth before the gods : but on entering the interior parts of the
temple, unmoved and guarded by the mystic rites, they genuinely
receive in their bosom divine illumination, and, DIVESTED OF THEIR
GARMENTS, participate, as they would say, of a divine nature." J
When the initiated, thus "illuminated" and made partakers of a
"divine nature," after being "divested of their garments," were
clothed anew, the garments with which they were invested were
*
HERODOTUS, Historia, lib. ii.
cap. 42, p. 119, A and B.
t FIRMICUS, I)e Errore, p. 18.
J TAYLOR S Jamblichui, Note, p. 148. See Appendix, Note M.
184 RITES AND CEREMONIES.
virtues.
divinely invested after he was made so painfully sensible of his
nakedness, was, as all intelligent theologians admit, a typical emblem
of the glorious righteousness of Christ "the
garment of salvation,"
which is "unto all and upon all them that believe." The garments
put upon the initiated after their disrobing of their former clothes,
were evidently intended as a counterfeit of the same. The garments "
ing from Ahriman," or the Devil; and they represent those who
neglect the use of this sacred vest as suffering in their souls, and
" "
light"
at the Reformation, could think of no better way to cover
their naked and polluted souls in prospect of death, than by wrapping
*
POTTER S Greek Antiquities, vol. i. p. 356.
f HERODOTUS, lib. ii. cap. 81, p. 134, B.
WILSON S Parsee Religion, pp. 164, 441, and 442.
British Reformers, "Bilney," p. 258, Note. || Ibid.
THE CLOTHING AND CROWNING OF IMAGES. 185
is
in the Popish communion, the festivals for crowning the "sacred
have been more and more celebrated. In Florence, a few
"
images
years ago, the image of the Madonna with the
child in her arms was "crowned" with unusual Fig. 39.
*
Bulwark, 1852-53, pp. 154-157.
f PLINY, Hist. Nat., lib. xvi. p. 377. Under the name of Saturn, also, the
same thing was attributed to Nimrod. See ante, p. 35, Note,
t PLUTARCH, De Iside, vol. ii. p. 356, E.
From DIDRON S Iconography, vol. i.
p. 296.
186 RITES AND CEREMONIES.
Druids the white clover leaf was held in high esteem as an emblem
of their Triune God,| and was borrowed from the same Babylonian
source as the rest of their religion. The Melilot, or trefoil garland,
then, with which the head of Osiris was bound, was the crown of
the Trinity the crown set on his head as the representative of the
Eternal "The crown of all the earth," in accordance with the
voice divine at his birth, The Lord of all the earth is born." Now,
"
crown must be again upon his head, and his universal dominion
set
solemnly avouched. Hence, therefore, came the solemn crowning of
the statues of the great god, and also the laying of the chaplet on
"
"
altar, and his tomb was crowned with flowers, arose the custom,
"
"
11"
chaplets
by side with this reason for decorating the altars with flowers, there
was also another. When in
That fair field "
and all the flowers she had stored up in her lap were lost, the loss
thereby sustained by the world not only drew forth her own tears,
but was lamented in the Mysteries as a loss of no ordinary kind, a
loss which not only stripped her of her own spiritual glory, but
*
Historia, lib. i.
cap. 132, pp. 62, 63.
t HOMER, Hymn to Mercury, 11. 526, 527.
$ DAVIES S Druids, p. 448.
OVID, Fasti, lib. iii. 1. 513, vol. iii. p. 184.
||MANILIUS, lib. v. v. 21, p. 164.
IT WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 345.
**
Ibid. vol. v. p. 368.
THE ROSARY. 187
blasted the fertility and beauty of the earth itself.* That loss,
however, the wife of Nimrod, under the name of Astarte, or Venus,
was believed to have more than repaired. Therefore, while the
of the discrowned god was placed in triumph
"
sacred "
chaplet
anew on his head and on his altars, the recovered flowers which
Proserpine had lost were also laid on these altars along with it, in
token of gratitude to that mother of grace and goodness, for the
beauty and the temporal blessings that the earth owed to her inter
position and love.f In Pagan Rome especially this was the case.
The altars were profusely adorned with flowers. From that source
directly the Papacy has borrowed the custom of adorning the altar
with flowers ; and from the Papacy, Puseyism, in Protestant
England, is labouring to introduce the custom among ourselves.
But, viewing it in connection with its source, surely men with the
slightest spark of Christian feeling may well blush to think of such
a thing. It is not only opposed to the genius of the Gospel
"On
hearing of this event, Shiva fainted from grief; then, having
recovered, he hastened to the banks of the river of heaven, where he
*
OVID, Metamorphoses, lib. v. fab. 6, 11. 391-395, and fab. 8, 11. 468-473. Ovid
speaks of the tears which Proserpine shed when, on her robe being torn from top
to bottom, all the flowers which she had been gathering up in it fell to the
ground, as showing only the simplicity of a girlish mind. But this is evidently
only for the uninitiated. The lamentations of Ceres, which were intimately
connected with the fall of these flowers, and the curse upon the ground that
immediately followed, indicated something entirely different. But on that I
cannot enter here.
t Lucretius, addressing Venus, says, "Tibi suaveis dsedala tellus suminittit
flores/ Lib. i. v. 6, 7, p. 2.
It is evident that this expression does not mean merely that they should
worship Himin sincerity, but in simplicity, as opposed to the Jewish symbolical
worship.
HUMBOLDT, Vol. ii.
p. 20.
188 RITES AND CEREMONIES.
beheld lying the body of his beloved Sati, arrayed in white garments,
holding a rosary in her hand, and glowing with splendour, bright
as burnished gold."* In Thibet it has been used from time
immemorial, and among all the millions in the East that adhere to
the Buddhist faith. The following, from Sir John F. Davis, will
show how it is employed in China From the Tartar religion of the :
"
Lamas, the rosary of 108 beads has become a part of the ceremonial
dress attached to the nine grades of official rank. It consists
of a necklace of stones and coral, nearly as large as a pigeon s
egg, descending to the waist, and distinguished by various beads,
according to the quality of the wearer. There is a small rosary of
eighteen beads, of inferior size, with which the bonzes count their
prayers and ejaculations exactly as in the fiomish ritual. The laity
in China sometimes wear this at the wrist, perfumed with musk,
and give it the name of Heang-choo, or fragrant beads, In "f
Asiatic Greece the rosary was commonly used, as may be seen from
the image of the Ephesian Diana.J In Pagan Rome the same
appears to have been the case. The necklaces which the Roman
ladies wore were not merely ornamental bands about the neck, but
hung down the breast, just as the modern rosaries do ; and the
name by which they were called indicates the use to which they
were applied. Monile" the ordinary word for a necklace, can
"
since the worship of the Sacred Heart was first introduced ; and " "
*
Vaivashi Pur an, KENNEDY, p. 332.
t China, vol. i.
p. 391. J See Woodcut, Fig. 8, p. 29.
"
Dat longa monilia OVID, Metam., lib. x. 1. 264, vol. ii. p. 498.
collo."
||
"Rosary"
itself seems to be from the Chaldee "thought,"
and "Ro,"
"Shareh," "director."
"
From what we have seen already as to the power and glory of the
Goddess Mother
being entirely built on the divine character
attributed to her Son, the reader must see how exactly this is
brought out, when the Son is called THE STRENGTH of his Mother. "
"
As the boy-god, whose symbol was the heart, was recognised as the
god of childhood, this very satisfactorily accounts for one of the
peculiar customs of the Romans. Kennett tells us, in his Anti
quities, that the Roman youths, in their tender years, used to wear
a golden ornament suspended from their necks, called bulla, which
*
PLUTARCH, De hide, vol. ii. p. 378, C. t Pompeii, vol. ii. p. 177.
JOHN BELL S Italy, p. 269. Edinburgh, 1825.
The following lines of Ovid will show that he distinctly identified Venus and
Cupid with the Babylonian Mother and Child
"
"
the bulla was given up."| Who so likely to be the god under
whose guardianship the Roman children were put, as the god under
one or other of his many names whose express symbol they wore, and
who, while he was recognised as the great and mighty war-god, was
also exhibited himself in his favourite form as a little child 1
The veneration of the sacred heart" seems also to have extended
"
BEL
"
Bel,"
that mighty one of Babylon,
who had died a martyr for idolatry ;
for Harpocrates, or Horus, the infant
god, was regarded as Bel, born again. U That this was in very deed
the case, the following extract from Taylor, in one of his notes to
his translation of the Orphic Hymns, will show. "While
mirror, he was miserably torn to pieces by the Titans, who, not con
tent with this cruelty, first boiled his members in water, and after
wards roasted them in the fire ; but while they were tasting his
*
Pp. 300, 301.
t Lares and Penates of Cilicia, p. 147.
J Ibid. p. 166.
See ante, in regard to the death of Crishna, one of the forms of Vishnu,
p. 61.
li
From MOOR S Pantheon, Plate 11, Fig. 6.
IF See ante, p. 69.
LAMPS AND WAX-CANDLES. 191
flesh thus dressed, Jupiter, excited by the steam, and perceiving the
cruelty of the deed, hurled his thunder at the Titans, but committed
his members to Apollo, the brother of Bacchus, that they might be
properly interred. And this being performed, Dionysius [i.e.,
Bacchus], (whose HEART, during his laceration, was snatched away
by Minerva and preserved) by a new REGENERATION, again emerged,
and he being restored to his pristine life and integrity, afterwards
filled up the number of the gods."* This surely shows, in a strik
ing light, the peculiar sacredness of the heart, of Bacchus and that ;
the regeneration of his heart has the very meaning I have attached
to it viz., the new birth or new incarnation of Nimrod or Bel.
When Bel, however, was born again as a child, he was, as we have
seen, represented as an incarnation of the sun. Therefore, to
indicate his connection with the fiery and burning sun, the sacred "
and at the same time, in his speech, giving his gods a hint, that if
they did not give him the victory against Constantine, his enemy
and theirs, he would be under the necessity of abandoning their
worship, and lighting up no more wax-tapers to their honour." J
"
Now,
so thoroughly and exclusively Pagan was this custom of lighting up
lamps and candles in daylight, that we find Christian writers, such
as Lactantius, in the fourth century, exposing the absurdity of the
practice, and deriding
the Romans for lighting up candles to God,
"
as if He lived in the
dark."||
Had
such a custom at that time gained
the least footing among Christians, Lactantius could never have
ridiculed it as he does, as a practice peculiar to Paganism. But
what was unknown to the Christian Church in the beginning of the
fourth century, soon thereafter began to creep in, and now forms one
of the most marked peculiarities of that community that boasts that
it is Mother and mistress of all Churches."
the "
While Rome uses both lamps and wax-candles in her sacred rites,
it is evident, however, that she attributes some pre-eminent virtue to
* and Nineveh
Identified with Sheik Adi. See Nineveh and Babylon, p. 81,
and its Remains, vol. i.
pp. 289, 290.
f BABUCH, vi. 19, 20. The above is from Diodati s Translation. The common
English version, so far as the point in hand is concerned, is substantially the
same.
+ ECSEBIUS, Vita Constantini, lib. ii. 5, p. 183.
MIDDLETON S Letter from Rome, p. 189. APULEIUS, vol. i., Metam., cap. ix.
pp. 1014-1016, and cap. x. pp. 1019-1021.
LACTANTIDS, Institut., lib. vi. cap. 2, p. 289.
||
LAMPS AND WAX-CANDLES. 193
the latter above all other lights. Up to the time of the Council of
Trent, she thus prayed on Easter Eve, at the blessing of the Easter
candles Calling upon thee in thy works, this holy Eve of Easter,
"
we offer most humbly unto thy Majesty this sacrifice ; namely, a fire
not defiled with the fat of flesh, nor polluted with unholy oil or
ointment, nor attainted with any profane fire ; but we offer unto thee
with obedience, proceeding from perfect devotion, a fire of wrought
WAX and wick, kindled arid made to burn in honour of thy name.
This so great a MYSTERY therefore, and the marvellous sacrament of
this holy eve, must needs he extolled with due and deserved
* That there was some occult Mystery," as is here
"
praises."
Twenty
having assembled," the Nito, by beating
says Hurd,
"
they summon
a small consecrated drum, whilst two or more of the company light
up wax-tapers, and pronounce several mysterious words, which they
consider as able to conjure him up."J In the worship of Ceylon, the
use of wax-candles is an indispensable requisite. In Ceylon," says "
the same author, some devotees, who are not priests, erect chapels
"
A
from some primeval source, and must have originally had some
mystic reason at the bottom of it. The wax-candle was, in fact, a
hieroglyphic, like so other things which we have already seen, many
and was intended to exhibit the Babylonian god in one of the
essential characters of the Great Mediator. The classic reader may
remember that one of the gods of primeval antiquity was called
Ouranos,|| that is, "The Enlightener." In this very character
*
"Office for Easter Eve," in Review of
Epistle of Dr. GENTIANUS HARVET of
Louvaine, p. 229, B, and 230, A.
t Asiatic Journal, vol. xvii. pp. 593, 596.
+ Rites and Ceremonies, p. 91, col. 1.
Ibid. p. 95, col. 2.
|i
From Aor or our, and an, act upon" or produce, the same as
"light,"
"to
our English particle en, to make." Ouranos, then, is The Enlightener." This
" "
Ouranos is, by Sanchuniathon, the Phoenician, called the son of Elioun i.e., as he
himself, or Philo-JByblius, interprets the name, "The Most High." (SANCH., pp.
16-19.) Ouranos, in the physical sense, is "The Shiner;" and by Hesychius
(sub voce Akmon it is made equivalent to Cronos, which also has the same
"
")
meaning, for Krn, the verb from which it comes, signifies either put forth ;
"to
Kronos, or The Horned One," had primarily reference to the physical power of
"
Nimrod as a "mighty king when that king was deified, and made Lord of
"
;
"
Heaven," that name, Kronos, was still applied to him in his new character as
"The Shiner or
Lightgiver." The distinction made by Hesiod between Ouranos
O
194 RITES AND CEREMONIES.
Testament, not less than the New, that the proper and personal
name of our Lord Jesus Christ is, "The Word of God," as the
Revealer of the heart and counsels of the Godhead. Now, to
identify the Sun-god with the Great Kevealer of the Godhead, while
under the name of Mithra, he was exhibited in sculpture as a Lion ;
that Lion had a Bee represented between his lips.f (Fig. 42.) The
bee between the lips of the Sun-god was intended to point him out
the Word ; for Dabar, the expression which signifies in Chaldee
"
as "
a "
days ; there was no open vision," that is, in consequence of the sin
of Eli, the Lord had not, for a long time, revealed Himself in vision
to him, as He did to the prophets. When the Lord had called
and Kronos, is no argument against the real substantial identity of these
divinities originally as Pagan divinities ; for Herodotus (Hist., lib. ii. cap. 53)
states that Hesiod had a hand in "inventing a theogony for the Greeks, which
"
implies that some at least of the details of that theogony must have come from
his own fancy ; and, on examination, it will be found, when the veil of allegory
is removed, that Hesiod Ouranos," though introduced as one of the Pagan
"
gods, was really at bottom the "God of Heaven," the living and true God. See
what is said in regard to Hesiod s Titan in Chap. VII. Sect. V.
"
"
*
WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 189.
t DUPUIS, De I origine des tons les cultes, vol. iv. p. 194. The above figure is
from HYDE, De Vetere Rdigione Persarum, p. 113.
PLUTARCH, De hide, vol. ii. p. 369.
LAMPS AND WAX-CANDLES. 195
Samuel, this
"
to Eli), for it is said in the last verse (v. 21), "And the Lord
APPEARED again in Shiloh; for the Lord revealed Himself to
Samuel by the WORD
Although the Lord spakeof the Lord."
speak of the second person of his Trinity under the name of the
Logos, which is just a translation of "Dabar," or "the Word."f
Now, the light of the wax-candle, as the light from Dabar, "the
Bee,"
was set up as the substitute of the light of Dabar the Word." "
Thus the apostates turned away from the "True Light," and set up
a shadow in His stead. That this was really the case is plain ; for,
says Crabb, speaking of Saturn, "on his altars were placed wax-
tapers lighted, because by Saturn men were reduced from the
darkness of error to the light of truth. In Asiatic Greece, the "|
appeared on her medals was just another symbol for her child, as the
"Seed of the Woman," in his assumed character, as Dabar, "The
Word that enlightened the souls of men. That this is the precise
"
the Papacy, we have very remarkable evidence from its own formu
laries ; for, in the very same place in which the "
Mystery of the
"
wax-candle isspoken of, thus does Rome refer to the Bee, by which
the wax is produced :
"
the Lord." In these Targums of later Chaldee, the term for "The Word" is
"Mimra"; but this word, though a synonym for that which is used in the
Hebrew Scriptures, is never used there. Dabar is the word employed. This is
so well recognised that, in the Hebrew translation of John s Gospel in Bagster s
Polyglott, the first verse runs thus In the beginning was the Word (Dabar)."
:
"
have come only from the source where the writer learned to call
"the incarnate Wisdom" by the name of the Bee. Now, as the
*
Review of Epistle of Dr. GENTIANUS HAKVET of Louvaine, pp. 349, B, and 350,
A. This work, which is commonly called The Beehive of the Roman Church t
contains the original Latin of the passage translated above. The passage in
question is to be found in at least two Roman Missals, which, however, are now
very rare viz., one printed at Vienna in 1506, fol. 75, p. 2, with which the
quotation in the text has been compared and verified and one printed at Venice ;
Ennodius, who occupied an Italian diocese in the sixth century, we find the
counterpart of that under consideration. Thus, in a prayer in regard to the
Easter Candle," the reason for offering up the wax-candle is expressly declared
"
to be, because that through means of the bees that produce the wax of which it
earth has an image of what is PECULIAR TO HEAVEN (meretur habere
"
"
is made,
terra quod cceli est) p. 456), and that
in regard to the very subject
(ENNOD. Opera,
of GENERATION ; the bees being able, "through the virtue of herbs, to pour forth
their young through their MOUTHS with less waste of time than all other creatures
do in the ordinary way" ("prolem .... quam herbarum lucro, diligentius
possunt ore profligare quam semine (Ibid.) This prayer contains the precise
").
idea of the prayer in the text ; and there is only one way of accounting for the
It must have come from a Chaldean Liturgy.
origin of such an
idea.
For discovering this first link in the chain of evidence en this important point,
now happily brought to perfection by another hand, I am indebted to my brother,
Mr. Hislop, of Blair Lodge, from whose zealous and recondite researches on many
other points this work has derived no slight advantage.
f Pancarpium, cap. 29, p. 122.
THE SIGN OF THE CROSS. 197
Mystery, Babylon
the Great !
"
2.f
that such a superstitious feeling for the sign of the cross, such
worship as Rome pays to a wooden or a metal cross, ever grew out
of the saying of Paul, "God forbid that I should glory, save in the
cross of our Lord Jesus Christ that is, in the doctrine of Christ
"
crucified is a mere
absurdity, a shallow subterfuge and pretence.
The magic virtues attributed to the so-called sign of the cross, the
worship bestowed on it, never came from such a source. The same
sign of the cross that Rome now worships was used in the Baby
lonian Mysteries, was applied by Paganism to the same magic
purposes, was honoured with the same honours. That which is now
called the Christian cross was originally no Christian emblem at all,
but was the mystic Tau of the Chaldeans and Egyptians the true
original form of the letter T the initial of the name of Tammuz
which, in Hebrew, radically the same as ancient Chaldee, as found
on coins, was formed as in No. 1 of the accompanying woodcut
(Fig. 43) ; and in Etrurian and Coptic, as in Nos. 2 and 3. That
*
From KITTO S Biblical Cyclopccdia, vol. i. p. 495.
f From Sir W. BETHAM S Etruria, vol. i. p. 54.
From BONSEN, vol. i.
p. 450.
198 RITES AND CEREMONIES
p. 446.
WILKINSON, vol. i.
p. 365, Plate.
H See woodcut of King in next Chapter, p. 214.
IT PERK LAFITAX, Mceurs des Sauvages Ameriquains, \<1. i.
p. 442.
THE SIGN OF THE CROSS. 199
world, among trees there is none like thee in leaf, flower, and bud.
Fig. 46.
*
Asiatic Researches, vol. x. p. 124.
t The two at the top are Standards of Pagan barbarous nations of the East,
from BRYANT S Mythology, vol. iii. p. 327. The black one in the middle, "The
sacred Egyptian Tau or Sign of Life," from WILKINSON, vol. v. p. 283. The two
lowest are Buddhist Crosses, from Asiatic Researches, vol. x. p. 124.
Review of Epistle of Dr. GENTIANUS HARVET of Louvaine, p. 251, A. The
following is one of the stanzas of the above hymn in the original :
"
The above was actually versified by the Romanisers in the Church of England,
and published along with much besides from the same source, some years ago, in
a. volume entitled Devotions on the Passion. The London Record, of April, 1842,
gave the following as a specimen of the provided by these wolves
"
Devotions "
in sheep s clothing :
"
the healthful, heals the sick, and does what mere human power
alone could never do." *
Now, this Pagan symbol seems first to have crept into the
Christian Church in Egypt, and generally into Africa. statement A
of Tertullian, about the middle of the third century, shows how
much, by that time, the Church of Carthage was infected with the
old leaven, f Egypt especially, which was never thoroughly evangel
ised appears to have taken the lead in bringing in this Pagan
symbol. The first form of that which is called the Christian Cross,
found on Christian monuments there, is the unequivocal Pagan Tau,
or Egyptian "Sign of life." Let the reader peruse the following
statement of Sir G. Wilkinson A still more curious fact may be
:
"
was afterwards dispensed with, and that it became the simple Tau,
or ordinary cross, as appears at this day, and that the design of
it
its first therefore, could have no
employment on the sepulchres,
reference to the crucifixion of the Nazarene, but was simply the
result of the attachment to old and long-cherished Pagan symbols,
which is always strong in those who, with the adoption of the
Christian name and profession, are still, to a large extent, Pagan in
heart and feeling. This, and this only, is the origin of the worship
of the "cross."
This, no doubt, will appear all very strange and very incredible to
those who have read Church history, as most have done to a large
extent, even amongst Protestants, through Romish spectacles ; and
especially to those who call to mind the famous story told of the
miraculous appearance of the cross to Constantine on the day before
*
From hymn already quoted.
f TKRTULLIAN, De Corona MHitis, cap. iii., vol. ii. p. 80.
J WILKINSON, vol. v. pp. 283, 284.
202 RITES AND CEREMONIES.
the decisive victory at the Milvian bridge, that decided the fortunes
of avowed Paganism and nominal Christianity. That story, as com
monly told, if true, would certainly give a Divine sanction to the
reverence for the cross. But that story, when sifted to the bottom,
according to the common version of it, will be found to be based on
a delusion a delusion, however, into which so good a man as Milner
has allowed himself to fall. Milner s account is as follows Con- :
"
to make the celestial sign of God upon his soldiers shields, and so to
join battle. He did as he was bid, and with the transverse letter X
circumflecting the head of it, he marks Christ or their shields.
Equipped with this sign, his army takes the sword." f Now, the
*
Church History, ii.
p. 41.
vol. Milner refers to EUSEB. Constant, xvii. But
this is an error ; De
Vita Constant, lib. i. cap. 28, 29, p. 173.
it is
t LACTANTIUS, De mortibus Persecutorum, 44, pp. 565, 566. The exact words
of Lactantius are as follows Cominonitus est in quiete Constantinus, ut coeleste
:
"
signum Dei notaret in scutis, atque ita proelium committeret. Fecit ut jussus est
et transversa X
litera summo capite circumflexo, Christum scutis notat. Quo signo
armatuB exercitus capit ferrum."
THE SIGN OF THE CROSS. 203
letter X was just the initial of the name of Christ, being equivalent
in Greek to CH. If, therefore, Constantino did as he was bid, when
he made "
the celestial sign of God in the form of the letter X," " "
Christ"
signum."*
"
sons," there is a distinct allusion to the story of the vision ; but that
allusion also shows that the X, and not the cross, was regarded as
the "
heavenly sign."
The words at the head of the inscription are
these :
and apostacy were working, tries hard to make it appear that that
cross-bar was the essential element in the ensign of Constantine. But
this is obviously a mistake ; that cross-bar was nothing new, nothing
peculiar to Constantine s standard. Tertullian shows that that ||
cross-bar was found long before on the vexillum, the Roman Pagan
*
Ambrosii Opera, vol. iv. p. 327.
f Epistle of Ambrose to the Emperor Theodosius about the proposal to restore the
Pagan altar of Victory in the Roman Senate. The subject of the Labarum has been
much confused through ignorance of the meaning of the word. Bryant assumes
(and I was myself formerly led away by the assumption) that it was applied to the
standard bearing the crescent and the cross, but he produces no evidence for the
assumption; and I am now satisfied that none can be produced. The name
Labarum, which is generally believed to have come from the East, treated as an
Oriental word, gives forth its meaning at once. It evidently comes from Lab, to "
standard, that carried a flag ; and it was used simply for the purpose
of displaying that flag. If, therefore, that cross-bar was the celestial
sign,"
it needed no voice from heaven to direct Constantine to make
to this cross-bar ; but we find evidence the most decisive that that
legend does refer to the X. Now, that that was not intended as X
the sign of the cross, but as the initial of Christ s name, is manifest
from this, that the Greek P, equivalent to our R, is inserted in the
middle of it, making by their union CHR. Any one who pleases may
satisfy himself of this by examining the plates given in Mr. Elliot s
Horce Apocalypticce* The standard of Constantine, then, was
just the name of Christ. Whether the device came from earth or
from heaven whether it was suggested by human wisdom or Divine,
supposing that Constantine was sincere in his Christian profession,
nothing more was implied in it than a literal embodiment of the
sentiment of the Psalmist, In the name of the Lord will we display
"
*
If the above remarks be well founded, surely it cannot be right that this sign
of the Cross, or emblem of Tammuz, should be used in Christian baptism. At
the period of the Revolution, a Royal Commission, appointed to inquire into
the Rites and Ceremonies of the Church of England, numbering among its
members eight or ten bishops, strongly recommended that the use of the cross,
as tending to superstition, should be laid aside. If such a recommendation
was given then, and that by such authority as members of the Church of
England must respect, how much ought that recommendation to be enforced
by the new light which Providence has cast on the subject !
CHAPTER VI.
RELIGIOUS ORDERS.
SECTION I. THE SOVEREIGN PONTIFF.
THE gift of the ministry is one of the greatest gifts which Christ has
bestowed upon the world. It is in reference to this that the Psalmist,
captive ; Thou hast received gifts for men, even for the rebellious,
that the Lord God might dwell among them" (Eph. iv. 8-11). The
Church of Rome, at its first planting, had the divinely-bestowed gift
of a Scriptural ministry and government ; and then its faith was
"
were both rich and abundant. But, in an evil hour, the Babylonian
element was admitted into its ministry, and thenceforth, that which
had been intended as a blessing, was converted into a curse. Since
then, instead of sanctifying men, it has only been the means of
demoralising them, and making them twofold more the children of
"
hell than they would have been if they had been left simply to
"
themselves.
If there be any who imagine that there is some occult and
mysterious virtue in an apostolic succession that comes through the
Papacy, let them seriously consider the real character of the Pope s
own orders, and of those of his bishops and clergy. From the Pope
downwards, all can be shown to be now radically Babylonian. The
College of Cardinals, with the Pope at its head, is just the counter
of Pontiffs, with its Pontifex Maximus,"
part of the Pagan College
"
times, and which is known to have been framed on the model of the
grand original Council of Pontiffs at Babylon. The Pope now
pretends to supremacy in the Church as the successor of Peter, to
whom it is alleged that our Lord exclusively committed the keys of
the kingdom of heaven. But here is the important fact that, till the
Pope was invested with the title, which for a thousand years had had
attached to it the power of the keys of Janus and Cybele,* no such
claim to pre-eminence, or anything approaching to it, was ever
publicly made on his part, on the ground of his being the possessor of
*
It was only in the second century before the Christian era that the worship
of Cybele, under that name, was introduced into Rome but the same goddess,;
under the name of Cardea, with the "power of the key," was worshipped in Rome,
along with Janus, ages before. OVID S Fasti, vol. iii. 1. 101, p. 346.
206
THE SOVERETGX PONTIFF. 207
the keys bestowed on Peter. Very early, indeed, did the bishops of
Rome show a proud and ambitious spirit ; but, for the first three
centuries, their claim for superior honour was founded simply on the
dignity of their see, as being that of the imperial city, the capital of
the Roman world. When, however, the seat of empire was removed
to the East, and Constantinople threatened some to eclipse Rome,
new ground for maintaining the dignity of the must Bishop of Rome
be sought. That new ground was found when, about 378, the Pope
fell heir to the keys that were the symbols of two well-known
Pagan
divinities at Rome. Janus bore a key,* and Cybele bore a key ;f
and these are the two keys that the Pope emblazons on his arms as
the ensigns of his spiritual authority. How the Pope came to be
regarded as wielding the power of these keys will appear in the
sequel but that he did, in the popular apprehension, become
;
the love of the truth, that they might be saved For this cause
God shall send them strong delusion, that they should believe a lie."
Few lies could be more gross ; but, in course of time, it came to be
*
OVID S Fasti, lib. i. 11. 95, 99, vol. iii.
p. 18.
f TOOKE S Pantheon, Cybele," p. 153.
"
In proof of the fact that this claim was first made in 431, see ELLIOT S Horce y
Tol. iii. p. 139. In 429 he gave a hint at it, but it was only in 431 that this olaim
was broadly and distinctly made.
208 RELIGIOUS ORDERS.
difficult to see how the Pagans would rally round the Pope all the
more readily when they heard him found his power on the possession
of Peter s keys. The keys that the Pope bore were the keys of a
"Peter" well known to the Pagans initiated in the Chaldean
Mysteries. That Peter the apostle was ever Bishop of Rome has
been proved again and again to be an arrant fable. That he ever
even set foot in Rome is at the best highly doubtful. His visit to
that city rests on no better authority than that of a writer at the end
of the second century or beginning of the third viz., the author of
the work called The Clementines* who gravely tells us that on
the occasion of his visit, finding Simon Magus there, the apostle
challenged him to give proof of his miraculous or magical powers,
whereupon the sorcerer flew up into the air, and Peter brought him
down in such haste that his leg was broken. f All historians of
repute have at once rejected this story of the apostolic encounter
with the magician as being destitute of all contemporary evidence ;
but as the visit of Peter to Rome rests on the same authority, it must
stand or fall along with it, or, at least, it must be admitted to be
extremely doubtful. But, while this is the case with Peter the
Christian, it can be shown to be by no means doubtful that before
the Christian era, and downwards, there was a Peter
"
"
at Rome,
who occupied the highest place in the Pagan priesthood. The priest
who explained the Mysteries to the initiated was sometimes called by
a Greek term, the Hierophant; but in primitive Chaldee, the real
language of the Mysteries, his title, as pronounced without the
points, was "Peter" i.e., "the interpreter."! As the revealer of
that which was hidden, nothing was more natural than that, while
opening up the esoteric doctrine of the Mysteries, he should be
decorated with the keys of the two divinities whose mysteries he
unfolded. Thus we may see how the keys of Janus and Cybele
would come to be known as the keys of Peter, the interpreter of
" "
*
GIESELER, vol. i. pp. 206-208. f See BOWER, vol. i. pp. 1, 2.
PARKHURST S Hebrew Lexicon, p. 602.
The Turkish Muftis, or "interpreters" of the Koran, derive that name from
the very same verb as that from which comes Miftak, a key.
||
POTTER S Antiquities, vol. i., Mysteries, p. 356.
THE SOVEREIGN PONTIFF. 209
which Athens derived its religion, the books of Hermes were regarded
as the divine fountain of all true knowledge of the Mysteries.* In
Egypt therefore, Hermes was looked up to in this very character of
Grand Interpreter, or Peter-Roma, In Athens, Hermes, as is
"
"f
keys of
"
Peter-Roma."
begins to appear in a new light, and not only so, but to shed new
light on one of the darkest and most puzzling passages of Papal
history. It has always been a matter of amazement to candid
historical inquirers how it could ever have come to pass that the
name of Peter should be associated with Rome in the way in which
it is found from the fourth century downwards how so many in
different countries had been led to believe that Peter, who was an
"apostle of the circumcision" had apostatised from his Divine
commission, and become bishop of a Gentile Church, and that he
should be the spiritual ruler in Rome, when no satisfactory evidence
could be found for his ever having been in Rome at all. But the
book of "Peter-Roma" accounts for what otherwise is entirely
inexplicable. The existence of such a title was too valuable to be
overlooked by the Papacy ; and, according to its usual policy, it was
had the opportunity, to turn it to the account of its own
sure, if it
aggrandisement. And that opportunity it had. When the Pope
came, as he did, into intimate connection with the Pagan priesthood ;
when they came at last, as we shall see they did, under his control,
*
The following are the authorities for the statement in the text Jamblichus :
"
says that Hermes [i.e., the Egyptian] was the god of all celestial knowledge,
which, being communicated by him to his priests, authorised them to inscribe
their commentaries with the name of Hermes" (WILKINSON, vol. v., chap. xiii.
pp. 9, 10). Again, according to the fabulous accounts of the Egyptian Mercury,
he was reported .... to have taught men the proper mode of approaching the
Deity with prayers and sacrifice (WILKINSON, vol. v., chap. xiii. p. 10). Hermes
Trisinegistus seems to have been regarded as a new incarnation of Thoth, and
possessed of higher honours. The principal books of this Hermes, according to
Clemens of Alexandria, were treated by the Egyptians with the most profound
respect, and carried in their religious processions (CLEM., ALEX., Strom., lib. vi.,
vol. iii.
pp. 214-219).
t In Egypt, was used
in this very sense.
"Petr" See BUNSEN, vol. i., Hiero
glyph, p. 545, where Ptr said to signify to show."
is The interpreter was called
"
showing in it.
"
.... He bestows, too, mathesis on souls, by unfolding the will of the father of
Jupiter, and this he accomplishes as the angel or messenger of Jupiter He
isthe guardian of disciplines, because the invention of geometry, reasoning, and
language is referred to this god. He presides, therefore over every species of
erudition, leading us to an intelligible essence from this mortal abode, governing
the different herds of souls (PROCLUS in Commentary on First Alcibiades, in the
"
Notes on TAYLOR S Orphic Hymns, pp. 64, 65). The Grecian Hermes was so
essentially the revealer or interpreter of divine things, that Hermeneutes, an
interpreter, was currently said to come from his name (HYGINUS, Note to page
114).
P
210 RELIGIOUS ORDERS.
what more natural than to seek not only to reconcile Paganism and
Christianity, but to make it appear that the Pagan
"
Peter-Roma,"
with his keys, meant "Peter of Rome," and that that "Peter of
Rome was the very apostle to whom the Lord Jesus Christ gave
"
the "
could not be opened, IF It was this same god whose worship prevailed
so exceedingly in Asia Minor at the time when our Lord sent, by
his servant John, the seven Apocalyptic messages to the churches
established in that region. And, therefore, in one of these messages
we find Him tacitly rebuking the profane ascription of His own
peculiar dignity to that divinity, and asserting His exclusive claim
to the prerogative usually attributed to His rival. Thus, Rev. iii. 7 :
And to the angel of the church in Philadelphia write These things
"
saith he that holy, he that is true, he that hath the key of David,
is
he that openeth, and no man shutteth ; and shutteth, and no man
openeth." Now, to this Janus, as Mediator, worshipped in Asia
Minor, and equally, from very early times, in Rome, belonged the
government of the world ; and, all power in heaven, in earth, and
"
or shutting the gates of peace or war upon earth. The Pope, there
fore, when he as the High-priest of Janus,
set up assumed also the
"jus
vertendi cardinis" "the power of turning the hinge,"
of open
ing and shutting in the blasphemous Pagan sense. Slowly and
cautiously at first was this power asserted ; but the foundation being
laid, steadily, century after century, was the grand superstructure of
priestly power erected upon it. The Pagans who saw what strides,
under Papal directions, Christianity, as professed in Rome, was mak
ing towards Paganism, were more than content to recognise the Pope
as possessing this power; they gladly encouraged him to rise, step
by step, to the full height of the blasphemous pretensions befitting
the representative of Janus pretensions which, as all men know, are
now, by the unanimous consent of Western Apostate Christendom,
recognised as inherent in the office of the Bishop of Rome. To enable
the Pope, however, to rise to the full plenitude of power which he
now asserts, the co-operation of others was needed. When his power
increased, when his dominion extended, and especially after he
became a temporal sovereign, the key of Janus became too heavy for
his single hand he needed some to share with him the power of
the "hinge."
Hence his privy councillors, his high functionaries of
state, who were associated with him in the government of the Church
and the world, got the now well-known title of Cardinals the "
"
priests of the "hinge" This title had been previously borne by the
high officials of the Roman Emperor, who, as "
Pontifex Maximus,"
had been himself the representative Janus, and who delegated
of
his powers to servants of his own. Even in the reign of Theodosius,
the Christian Emperor of Rome, the title of Cardinal was borne by
his Prime Minister.* But now both the name and the power
implied in the name have long since disappeared from all civil
functionaries of temporal sovereigns ; and those only who aid the
Pope in wielding the key of Janus in opening and shutting are
known by the title of Cardinals, or priests of the hinge" "
I have said that the Pope became the representative of Janus, who,
it is evident, was none other than the Babylonian Messiah. If the
reader only considers the blasphemous assumptions of the Papacy, he
will see how exactly it has copied from its original. In the countries
where the Babylonian system was most thoroughly developed, we find
the Sovereign Pontiff of the Babylonian god invested with the very
attributes now ascribed to the Pope. Is the Pope called God upon "
the "
greatest respect for the sanctity of old edicts ; and hence, no doubt, "
also the origin of the custom that the laws of the Medes and Per "
The title
seems to have been common to all the Pontiffs. Symmachus, the last
Pagan representative of the Roman Emperor, as Sovereign Pontiff,
addressing one of his colleagues or fellow-pontiffs, on a step of pro
motion he was about to obtain, says, I hear that YOUR HOLINESS "
real pedigree of the far-famed chair of Peter will appear from the
till the year 1662, a pregnant proof, not only of Peter s erecting their
*
WILKINSON S Egyptians. The Infallibility was a natural result of the " "
popular belief in regard to the relation in which the Sovereign stood to the
gods for, says Diodorus Siculus, speaking of Egypt, the king was believed to
:
t From the statements of Layard (Nineveh and its Remains, vol. ii. pp. 472-474,
and Nineveh and Babylon, p. 361), it appears that as the king of Egypt was the
Head of the religion and the state," so was the king of Assyria, which included
"
Babylon. Then we have evidence that he was worshipped. The sacred images
are represented as adoring him (LAYARD, Nineveh and its Remains, vol. ii. p. 464),
which could not have been the case if his own subjects did not pay their homage
in that way. Then the adoration claimed by Alexander the Great evidently came
from this source. It was directly in imitation of the adoration paid to the Persian
kings that he required such homage. Quint. Curtius says (lib. viii. cap. 5, pp. 592,
593), "Volebat .... itaque more Persarum Macedonas venerabundos ipsum
salutare prosternentes humi corpora." From Xenophon we have evidence that
this Persian custom came from Babylon. It was when Cyrus had entered
Babylon that the Persians, for the first time, testified their homage to him by
adoration; for, "before this," says Xenophon (Cyropced., lib. viii. p. 215, C),
"none of the Persians had
given adoration to Cyrus."
GAUSSEN on Daniel, vol. i. p. 114.
SYMMACHUS, Epistola, lib. vi. 31, p. 240.
THE SOVEREIGN PONTIFF. 213
chair,but of his sitting in it himself ; for, till that year, the very
chair onwhich they believed, or would make others believe, he had
sat, was shown and exposed to public adoration on the 18th of
January, the festival of the said chair. But while it was cleaning,
in order to set it up in some conspicuous place of the Vatican, the
twelve labours of Hercules unluckily appeared on it * and so it !
"
had to be laid aside. The partisans of the Papacy were not a little
disconcerted by this discovery but they tried to put the best face
-,
since it was not to the wood we paid it, but to the prince of the
apostles, St. that had been supposed to sit in it.f
Peter," Whatever
the reader think of this apology for chair-worship, he will surely
may
at least perceive, taking this in connection with what we have
already seen, that the hoary fable of Peter s chair is fairly exploded.
In modern times, Rome seems to have been rather unfortunate in
regard to Peter s chair; for, even after that which bore the twelve
labours of Hercules had been condemned and cast aside, as unfit to
bear the light that the Reformation had poured upon the darkness of
the Holy See, that which was chosen to replace it was destined to
reveal still more ludicrously the barefaced impostures of the Papacy.
The former chair was borrowed from the Pagans ; the next appears
to have been purloined from the Mussulmans ; for when the French
soldiers under General Bonaparte took possession of Rome in 1795,
they found on the back of it, in Arabic, this well-known sentence of
the Koran, "There is no God but God, and Mahomet is His
Prophet."}
The Pope has not merely a chair to sit in but he has a chair to ;
The guns of the soldiers rung on the stone pavement of the house of
God, as, at the bidding of their officer, they grounded, shouldered,
and presented arms. How unlike the Sabbath how unlike religion
how unlike the suitable preparation to receive a minister of the
meek and lowly Jesus Now, moving slowly up, between the two
!
along on the shoulders of men, amid the gaping crowds, his head was
shaded or canopied by two immense fans, made of peacock s feathers,
which were borne by two attendants."* Thus is it with the
Sovereign Pontiff of Koine at this day ; only that, frequently, over
and above being shaded by the fan, which is just the Mystic fan of "
Now, look back through the vista of three thousand years, and see
how the Sovereign Pontiff of Egypt used to pay a visit to the
temple of his god. Having reached the precincts of the temple,"
"
Fig. 47.
the tail of a fish. The other was, when, to use the words of Layard,
the head of the fish formed a mitre above that of the man, while its
"
scaly, fan-like tail fell as a cloak behind, leaving the human limbs
and feet exposed."* Of Dagon in this form Layard gives a repre-
Fig. 48.
*
LA YARD S Babylon and Nineveh, p. 343.
t 4th Edit, vol. iii. pt. 4, Plate 27.
+ WILKINSON, vol. v. p. 253.
216 RELIGIOUS ORDERS.
*
mitre on his head (Fig. 49) ; very nearly in the same form as the
mitre of the Pope, or of a Papal bishop at this day. Even in China,
the same practice of wearing the fish-head mitre had evidently once
prevailed ; for the very counterpart of the Papal mitre, as worn by
Pig. 49.
like manner the sacrificial mitre of the Chinese Emperor (the Pontifex Maximus
of his nation), which was of old represented under this form [and then the above
figure is given] ( Philos. Transact, at tab. 41 ), bearing a strong resemblance to
the Roman Episcopal Mitre," &c., &c.
KEMPFEK S Japan, in PINKERTON S Collection^ vol. vii. p. 776.
THE SOVEREIGN PONTIFF. 217
Pope stole it from the Roman augur. The classical reader may
remember, that when the Roman augurs consulted the heavens, or
took prognostics from the aspect of the sky, there was a certain
instrument with which it was indispensable that they should be
equipped. That instrument with which they described the portion
of the heavens on which their observations were to be made, was
curved at the one end, and was called lituus" Now, so manifestly
"
lituus"
Lord," have no doubt been derived, both the name of Hero itself,
and all that Hero-worship which has since overspread the world.
Certain that Nimrod s deified successors have generally been
it is
represented with the crook or crosier. This was the case in Babylon
and Nineveh, as the extant monuments show. The accompanying
figure (Fig. 51) i from Babylon shows the crosier in its ruder guise.
*
See Oradus ad Parnassum, compiled by G. PYPER, a member of the Society
of Jesus, sub vocibus Lituus Episcopus et Pedum, pp. 372, 464.
t BEROKUS apud ABYDKNUS, in CORY S Fragments, p. 32, See also EUSEB.,
Chron., Pars. i. pp. 46, 47.
I From KITTO S Biblical Cyclopaedia, vol. i. p. 272. See also KITTO S Illustrated
Commentary, TO!, iv. p. 31, where another figure from Babylon is given with
a similar crosier.
218 RELIGIOUS ORDERS.
doors, and these titular deities are made in the form of grapples
or hooks, which we generally make use of to shake our fruit trees."
This is the case at this hour in Thibet, where the Lamas or Theros
bear, as stated by the Jesuit Hue, a crosier, as the ensign of their
office. This is the case even in the far-distant Japan, where, in
a description of the idols of the great temple of Miaco, the spiritual
capital, we find this statement Their heads are adorned with rays
"
*
Nineveh and Babylon, p. 361. Layard seems to think the instrument referred
to, which is borne by the king, "attired as high priest in his sacrificial robes,"
a sickle but any one who attentively examines it will see that it is a crosier,
;
adorned with studs, as is commonly the case even now with the Roman crosiers,
only, that instead of being held erect, it is held downwards.
t The well-known name Pharaoh, the title of the Pontiff-kings of Egypt,
is just the Egyptian form of the Hebrew He-Roe. Pharaoh in Genesis, without
the points, is "Phe-Roe." Phe is the Egyptian definite article. It was not
shepherd-fctngrs that the Egyptians abhorred, but Roi-Tzan, "shepherds of cattle"
(Gen. xlvi. 34). Without the article a shepherd," is manifestly the
Roe",
"
original of the French Roi, a king, whence the adjective royal ; and from Ro,
which signifies to "act the shepherd," which is frequently pronounced Reg
(with Sh, which signifies He who "
He who acts the shepherd," whence the Latin Rex, and Regal.
"
the living and the dead."* What blasphemy could be worse than
this ? What more derogatory to the one sacrifice of Christ, whereby
He hath perfected for ever them that are sanctified ? (Heb. x. 14).
" "
who uttered these words, and him to whom they were addressed."!
The sacrifice which the papal priesthood are empowered to offer,
as a "true propitiatory sacrifice" for the sins of the living and
of the mass, which was
"
unbloody sacrifice
offered up in Babylon long before it was ever heard of in Rome.
Now, while Semiramis, the real original of the Chaldean Queen of
Heaven, to whom the of the mass was first
"
"
unbloody sacrifice
offered, was in her own person, as we have already seen, the very
paragon of impurity, she at the same time affected the greatest favour
for that kind of sanctity which looks down with contempt on God s
holy ordinance of marriage. The Mysteries over which she presided
were scenes of the rankest pollution ; and yet the higher orders of the
priesthood were bound to a life of celibacy, as a life of peculiar and
pre-eminent holiness. Strange though it may seem, yet the voice of
antiquity assigns to that abandoned queen the invention of clerical
celibacy, and that in the most stringent form.}: In some countries,
*
D AUEIGNE S Reformation, vol. i. B. ii.
cap. 4, p. 171.
t Ibid. vol. i.
p. 171.
AMMIANUS MARCKLLINTO. "Semiramis teneros mares castravit omnium
prima," lib. xiv. cap. 6, p. xxvi.
220 RELIGIOUS ORDERS.
as in Egypt, human nature asserted its rights, and though the general
system of Babylon was retained, the yoke of celibacy was abolished,
and the priesthood were permitted to marry. But every scholar
knows when
the worship of Cybele, the Babylonian goddess,
that
was introduced into Pagan Rome, it was introduced in its primitive
Jewell,"
HAMEL S Travels in Corea, in PINKER-TON S Collection, vol. vii. pp. 536, 537.
See also Description of Tibet in same Collection, p. 554 GABON S Japan, Ibid. p. ;
receive the tonsure." Then, without delay, as Bede informs us, this
important revolution was accomplished by royal authority.* He
sent agents into every province, and caused all the ministers and
monks to receive the circular tonsure, according to the Roman
fashion, and thus to submit to Peter, "the most blessed Prince of
the apostles." f It was the mark," says Merle D Aubigne, that
" "
Popes stamped not on the forehead, but on the crown. royal pro A
clamation, and a few clips of the scissors, placed the Scotch, like a
flock of sheep, beneath the crook of the shepherd of the Tiber." J Now,
as Rome set so much importance on this tonsure, let it be asked what
was the meaning of it ? It was the visible inauguration of those who
submitted to as the priests of Bacchus.
it This tonsure cannot have
the slightest pretence to Christian authority. It was indeed the
tonsure of Peter," but not of the Peter of Galilee, but of the Chal
"
dean Peter
"
of the Mysteries.
"
[i.e.,
the Queen of Heaven], and they say that their hair was cut in
the same manner as Bacchus s is cut now, they cut it in a circular ;
"||
*
BEDE, lib. v. c. 21, p. 216. t Ibid. J D AUBIGNE, vol. v. p. 55.
HEKODOTUS, lib. iii. cap. 8, p. 185, C.
||
Gheza signifies either "shearing" or "shaving."
If MACROBIUS, lib. i. c. 23, 189. j>.
**
TERTULLIAN, vol. ii., Carmina, pp. 1105, 1106.
222 RELIGIOUS ORDERS.
priesthood was the shaven head. Thus Gautama Buddha, who lived
at least 540 years before Christ, when setting up the sect of Buddhism
in India which spread to the remotest regions of the East, first shaved
his own head, in obedience, as he pretended, to a Divine command,
and then set to work to get others to imitate his example. One of
the very titles by which he was called was that of the Shaved- "
in India, as we have seen, was the sun-divinity incarnate. When that seed was
represented in human form, to identify him with the sun, he was represented with
the circle, the well-known emblem of the sun s annual course, on some part of his
person. Thus our own god Thor was represented with a blazing circle on his
breast. (WILSON S Parsi Religion, p. 31.) In Persia and Assyria the circle was
represented sometimes on the breast, sometimes round the waist, and sometimes
in the hand of the sun-divinity. (BRYANT, vol. ii., Plates, pp. 216, 406, 409 ; and
LAYAKD S Nineveh and Babylon, p. 160.) In India it is represented at the tip of
the finger. (Moon s Pantheon, Plate 13, "Vishnu.") Hence the circle became
the emblem of Tammuz born again, or "the seed." The circular tonsure of
Bacchus was doubtless intended to point him out as Zero," or the seed," the
" "
grand deliverer. And the circle of light around the head of the ao-called
pictures of Christ was evidently just a different form of the very same thing, and
borrowed from the very same source. The ceremony of tonsure, says Maurice,
referring to the practice of that ceremony in India, was an old practice of the "
priests of Mithra,
who in their tonsures imitated the solar disk." (Antiquities, vol.
vii. p. 851. London, 1800.) As the sun-god was the great lamented god, and had
his hair cut in a circular form, and the priests who lamented him had their hair
cut in a similar manner, so in different countries those who lamented the dead and
cut off their hair in honour of them, cut it in a circular form. There were traces
of that in Greece, as appears from the Electra of Sophocles (line 52, pp. 108, 109) ;
and Herodotus particularly refers to it as practised among the Scythians when
giving an account of a royal funeral among that people. "The
body," says he,
is enclosed in wax.
"
law of celibacy, that plunges them in profligacy ; if, in short, they are
all marked at their consecration with the distinguishing mark of the
Another
singular analogy with Roman Catholic institutions is presented by
the virgins of the sun, the elect, as they were called. These were
young maidens dedicated to the service of the deity, who at a tender
age were taken from their homes, and introduced into convents,
where they were placed under the care of certain elderly matrons,
?namaconas, who had grown grey within their walls. It was their
duty to watch over the sacred fire obtained at the festival of Raymi.
From the moment they entered the establishment they were cut off
*
See ante, Notes to p. 220, and also History of Tonquin, in PlNKERTON, vol. ix.
p. 766. There are some, and Protestants, too, who begin to speak of what they
call the benefits of monasteries in rude times, as if they were hurtful only when
decrepitude and corruption
"
the foundation of the monastic system, is of the very essence of the Apostacy,
which is divinely characterised as the "Mystery of Iniquity." Let such Protest
ants read 1 Tim. iv. 1-3, and surely they will never speak more of the abomina
tions of the monasteries as coming only from their "decrepitude" !
t MALLET, vol. i.
p. 141.
POTTER S Antiquities, vol. i.
p. 369.
Mamacona, "Mother almost pure Hebrew, being derived from
Priestess," is
Am a "
a priest,"
own Mamma, as well as that of Peru, is just the Hebrew reduplicated. It is Am
singular that the usual style and title of the Lady Abbess in Ireland is the
Reverend Mother." The term Nun itself is a Chaldean word. Ninus, the son
"
in Chaldee is either Nin or Non. Now, the feminine of Non, a gon," is Nonna,
"
a "daughter," which is just the Popish canonical name for a "Nun," and
Nonnus, in like manner, was in early times the designation for a monk in the
East. (GiESELER, vol. ii. p. 14, Note.)
224 RELIGIOUS ORDERS.
from all communication with the world, even with their own family
and friends Woe to the unhappy maiden who was detected
in an intrigue By the stem law of the Incas she was to be buried
!
alive" This was precisely the fate of the Roman Vestal who was
proved to have violated her vow. Neither in Peru, however, nor in
Pagan Home was the obligation to virginity so stringent as in the
Papacy. It was not perpetual, and therefore not so exceedingly
demoralising. After a time, the nuns might be delivered from their
confinement, and marry ; from all hopes of which they are absolutely
cut off in the Church of Rome. In all these cases, however, it is
plain that the principle on which these institutions were founded
was originally the same. One is astonished," adds Prescott, to
" "
Babylon hath been a golden cup in the Lord s hand, that hath
"
made ALL THE EARTH drunken (Jer. li. 7). This is the Rosetta
"
stone that has helped already to bring to light so much of the secret
iniquity of the Papacy, and that is destined still further to decipher
the dark mysteries of every system of heathen mythology that
either has been or that is. The statement of this text can be proved
to be a literal fact. It can be proved that the idolatry of the whole
earth is one, that the sacred language of all nations is radically
Chaldean that the GREAT GODS of every country and clime are
called by Babylonian names and that all the Paganisms of the
human race are only a wicked and deliberate, but yet most instruc
tive corruption of the primeval gospel first preached in Eden, and
through Noah, afterwards conveyed to all mankind. The system,
first concocted in Babylon, and thence conveyed to the ends of the
earth, has been modified and diluted in different ages and countries.
In Papal Rome only is it now found nearly pure and entire. But
yet, amid the seeming variety of heathenism, there is an astonish
all
truth, and with one loud and united acclaim, ascribe salvation, and
glory, and honour, and power unto Him that sitteth upon the throne,
and to the Lamb, for ever and ever.
*
PRESCOTT S Peru, vol. i.
p. 103.
CHAPTER VII.
that comes up out of the sea ; III. The Beast that ascendeth out of
the earth ; and IV. The Image of the Beast.* In all these respects
it will be found, on inquiry, that, in regard to succession and order
of development, the Paganism of the Old Testament Babylon was the
exact type of the Paganism of the New.
red dragon." It is admitted on all hands that this is the first grand
enemy that in Gospel times assaulted the Christian Church. If the
terms in which it is described, and the deeds attributed to it, are
considered, it will be found that there is a great analogy between it
and the first enemy of all, that appeared against the ancient Church
of God soon after the Flood. The term dragon, according to the
associations currently connected with it, is somewhat apt to mislead
the reader, by recalling to his mind the fabulous dragons of the Dark
Ages, equipped with wings. At the time this Divine description was
*
I purposely omit the consideration of the "Beast from the bottomless pit"
(Rev. xvii. 8). The reader will find an argument on that subject in the Red
Republic.
225 Q
226 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
given, the term dragon had no such meaning among either profane or
sacred writers. The dragon of the Greeks," says Pausanias, was
" "
very
case here ; for what in the third verse is called a dragon,"
in the "
does it appear to have been in the first form of idolatry, that, under
the patronage of Nimrod, appeared in the ancient world. The Ser "
pent of Fire in the plains of Shinar seems to have been the grand
"
that name,
"
"
"
no doubt, being divinely given, to keep the world in mind of the great
truth that, however glorious was the orb of day, it was, after all, the
appointed Minister of the bounty of the great unseen Creator to His
creatures upon earth. Men knew this, and yet with the full know
ledge of it, they put the servant in the place of the Master ; and
called the sun Baal that is, the Lord and worshipped him accord
ingly. What a meaning, then, in the saying of Paul, that, when "
they knew God, they glorified Him not as God ; but changed the
"
"
truth of God into a lie, and worshipped and served the creature more
than the Creator, who is God over all, blessed for ever." The begin
ning, then, of sun-worship, and of the worship of the host of heaven,
was a sin against the light a presumptuous, heaven-daring sin. As
the sun in the heavens was the great object of worship, so fire was
worshipped as its earthly representative. To this primeval fire-
worship Vitruvius alludes when he says that men were first "
Along with the sun, as the great fire-god, and, in due time, identi
fied with him, was the serpent worshipped. (See Fig. 52.)* In "
the mythology of the primitive world," says Owen, the serpent is "
evil."
likeness of "
Virgil,
the divine nature attributed to serpents,"* describes the sacred
serpent that came from the tomb of Anchises, when his son ^Eneas
had been sacrificing before it, in such terms as illustrate at once
the language of the Phoenician, and the "Fiery Serpent" of the
passage before us :
"
represented with all the emblems of royalty. All its heads are
encircled with crowns or diadems ; and so in Egypt, the serpent
"
"
of fire, or serpent of the sun, in Greek was called the Basilisk, that
is, the royal serpent," to identify it with Moloch, which name,
"
while it recalls the ideas both of fire and blood, properly signifies
the King"
"
and dominion."! As such, its image was worn affixed to the head
dress of the Egyptian monarchs ; and it was not lawful for any one
else to wear it. The sun identified with this serpent was called
P ouro,"|| which signifies at once the Fire and the King," and
" "
"
"
from this very name the epithet Purros," the "Fiery," is given to "
Thus was the Sun, the Great Fire-god, identified with the Serpent.
But he had also a human representative, and that was Tammuz, for
whom the daughters of Israel lamented, in other words Nimrod.
We have already seen the identity of Nimrod and Zoroaster. Now,
*
Vol. ii. p. 114.
t DRYDEN S Virgil, Book v. 11. 111-116, vol. ii.
pp. 460, 461 ; in Original,
11. 84-88.
WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 239.
Implied in Ibid. vol. iv. p. 239.
BONSEN, vol. i. pp. 407, 457.
||
IT The word Purros in the text does not exclude the idea of Red," for the sun-
"
god was painted red to identify him with Moloch, at once the god of fire and god
of blood. (WILKINSON, vol. iv. pp. 288-296.) The primary leading idea, however,
is that of Fire.
THE GREAT BED DRAGON. 229
Zoroaster was not only the head of the Chaldean Mysteries, but, as
all admit, the head of the fire-
worshippers.* The title given to Nim-
rod, as the first of the Babylonian kings, by Berosus, indicates the
same thing. That title is Alorus,f that is, "the god of fire."J As
Nimrod, "the god of fire," was Molk-Gheber, or, the Mighty king," "
inasmuch as he was the first who was called Moloch, or King, and the
first who began (Gheber) on the earth, we see at once
to be
"
mighty
"
and how the god of fire among the Romans came to be called Mulki- "
ber." It was only after his death, however, that he appears to have
been deified. Then, retrospectively, he was worshipped as the child of
the Sun, or the Sun incarnate. In his own life-time, however, he set up
no higher pretensions than that of being Bol-Kahn, or Priest of Baal,
from which the other name of the Roman fire-god Vulcan is evidently
derived. Everything in the history of Vulcan exactly agrees with
||
that of Nimrod. Vulcan was "the most ugly and deformed" of all
the gods.U Nimrod, over all the world, is represented with the
features and complexion of a negro. Though Vulcan was so ugly,
that when he sought a wife, "all the beautiful goddesses rejected him
with horror ; Destiny, the irrevocable, interposed, and pro
"
"
yet
nounced the decree, by which [Venus] the most beautiful of the god
desses, was united to the most unsightly of the gods."** So, in spite
of the black and Cushite features of Nimrod, he had for his queen
Semiramis, the most beautiful of women. The wife of Vulcan was
noted for her infidelities and licentiousness ; the wife of Nimrod was
the very same.ff Vulcan was the head and chief of the Cyclops, that
is, kings of flame."!!
"the Nimrod was the head of the fire-worship
pers. Vulcan was the forger of the thunderbolts by which such
havoc was made among the enemies of the gods. Ninus, or Nimrod,
in his wars with the king of Bactria, seems to have carried on the
conflict in a similar way. From Arnobius we learn, that when
the Assyrians under Ninus made war against the Bactrians, the war
fare was waged not only by the sword and bodily strength, but by
magic and by means derived from the secret instructions of the
*
In regard to Zoroaster as head of the fire worshippers, see Appendix, Note N.
t BUNSEN, vol. i. p. 710.
T BRYANT, vol. i. p. 10, and vol. iv. p. 152. Bryant derives the name Alorus
from Al-Aur, "god of I incline to think that, from the analogy of the
fire."
name that succeeds it, it cores from Al-Hor, "The burning god;" but the
meaning is the same either way.
spelled Mulciber (Ovin, Art. Am., lib. ii. 1. 562, vol. i. p. 535);
Commonly
but the Roman
c was hard. From the epithet "Gheber," the Parsees, or fire-
worshippers of India, are still called "Guebres."
II OVID, DeArt. Am., Ibid., Nota.
if Heathen Mythology Illustrated, p. 66.
**
Ibid. p. 75.
ft Nimrod, as universal king, was Khuk-hold, King of the world." As such,
"
the emblem of his power was the bull s horns. Hence the origin of the Guckhold s
horns.
Kuclops, from Khuk, and Lohb, flame." The image of the great
"
+ king,"
"
god was represented with three eyes one in the forehead hence the story of the ;
there can be little doubt that Nimrod, in erecting his power, availed
himself of such or similar scientific secrets, which he and his associ
ates alone possessed.
In these, and other respects yet to be noticed, there is an exact
coincidence between Vulcan, the god of fire of the Romans, and
Nimrod the fire-god of Babylon. In the case of the classic Yulcan,
it is only in his character of the fire-god as a physical agent that he
faith and a good conscience. These stories all point to one and the
same period, and they show how powerful had been this form of
apostacy. The Papal purgatory and the fires of St. John s Eve,
which we have already considered, and many other fables or
practices still extant, are just so many relics of the same ancient
superstition.
It will be observed, however, that the Great Red Dragon, or
Great Fiery Serpent, is represented as standing before the Woman
with the crown of twelve stars, that is, the true Church of God, To "
that the classical story of Kronos was just this, that, "he devoured
his sons as soon as they were born." I Such is the analogy between
type and antitype. This legend has a further and deeper meaning ;
but, as applied to Nimrod, or The Horned One," it just refers to
"
*
DAVIKS S Druids, p. 226.
t Phaethon, though the child of the sun, is also called the Father of the gods.
(LACTANTIU8, De Falsa Rdiyione, lib. i.
cap. 5, p. 10.) In Egypt, too, Vulcan
was the Father of the gods. (AMMIANUS MARCELLINUS, lib. xvii. cap. 4, p. 163.)
+ LEMPRIERK, Saturn."
"
reason to believe that the same practice obtained in our own land in
the times of the Druids. We
know that they offered human sacri
fices to their bloody gods. We
have evidence that they made their "
children pass through the fire to Moloch," and that makes it highly
probable that they also offered them in sacrifice ; for, from Jeremiah
xxxii. compared with Jeremiah xix. 5, we find that these two
35,
things were parts of one and the same system. The god whom the
Druids worshipped was Baal, as the blazing Baal-fires show, and the
last-cited passage proves that children were offered in sacrifice to Baal.
When the fruit of the body was thus offered, it was for the sin
"
" "
is the priest."
}
From the historian Castor (in Armenian translation of EUSEBIUS, pars. i.
p. 81) we learn that it was under Bel, or Belus, that is Baal, that the Cyclops
lived and the Scholiast on yEschylus (p. 32, ante, Note) states that these
;
Cyclops were the brethren of Kronos, who was also Bel or Bal, as we have else
where seen (p. 32). The eye in their forehead shows that originally this name
was a name of the great god ; for that eye in India and Greece is found the
characteristic of the supreme divinity. The Cyclops, then, had been representa
tives of that God in other words, priests, and priests of Bel or Baal. Now, we
find that the Cyclops were well-known as cannibals, Referre ritus Cyclopum, to
"
bring back the rites of the Cyclops," meaning to revive the practice of eating
human flesh. (OviD, Metam., xv. 93, vol. ii. p. 132.)
+ The wars of the giants against heaven, referred to in ancient heathen writers,
had primary reference to this war against the saints ; for men cannot make war
upon God except by attacking the people of God. The ancient writer Enpolemus,
as quoted by Eusebius (Prceparatio Evang., lib. i. cap. 17, vol. ii. p. 19), states,
that the builders of the tower of Babel were these giants ; which statement
amounts nearly to the same thing as the conclusion to which we have already
come, for we have seen that the "mighty ones" of Nimrod were "the giants" of
antiquity (see ante, p. 54, Notes). Epiphanius records (lib. i., vol. i. p. 7) that
Nimrod was a ringleader among these giants, and that conspiracy, sedition, and "
tyranny were carried on under him." From the very necessity of the case,
the faithful must have suffered most, as being most opposed to his ambitious and
sacrilegious schemes. That Nimrod s reign terminated in some very signal
catastrophe, we have seen abundant reason already to conclude. The following
statement of Syncellus confirms the conclusions to which we have already come as
to the nature of that catastrophe referring to the arresting of the tower-
;
fiery serpent associated with it. The case was exactly as stated here
in regard to the antitype (Rev. xii. 9) The great dragon," or fiery
:
"
serpent, was cast out of heaven to the earth, and his angels were
"
cast out with him ; that is, the Head of the fire-worship, and all
"
his associates and underlings, were cast down from the power and
glory to which they had been raised. Then was the time when the
whole gods of the classic Pantheon of Greece were fain to flee and
hide themselves from the wrath of their adversaries.* Then it was,
that, in India, Indra, the king of the gods, Surya, the god of the sun,
Agui, the god of fire, and all the rabble rout of the Hindu Olympus,
were driven from heaven, wandered over the earth, f or hid them
"
"
"
In Ausonian land
Men called him Mulciber ;
and how he fell
From heaven, they fabled. Thrown by angry Jove
Sheer o er the crystal battlements from morn ;
Nimrod would obstinately stay (when most of the other tower -builders were
still
doing so was his "malformation," that is, his ugliness. (HOMER S Hymn to
Apollo, 11. 316-318, p. 37 of Hymn.) How
exactly does this agree with the story
of Nimrod First he was personally cast down, when, by Divine authority, he was
:
slain. Then he was cast down, in effigy, by Juno, when his image was degraded
from the arms of the Queen of Heaven, to make way for the fairer child. See
ante, p. 69.
See pages 62-65. Though Orpheus was commonly represented as having
been torn in pieces, he too was fabled to have been killed by lightning.
(PAUSANIAS, Bceotica, cap. xxx. p. 768.) When Zoroaster died, he also is said in
the myth to have perished by lightning (SuiDAS, vol. i. pp. 1133, 1134) and ;
all the requirements of the case. I think there will be but few who will assent to
the opinion of Mr. Elliot, which in substance amounts to this, that the Man-child
was Constantino the Great, and that when Christianity, in his person sat down on
the throne of Imperial Rome, that was the fulfilment of the saying, that the child
brought forth by the woman, amid such pangs of travail, was "caught up to God
and His throne." When Constantine came to the empire, the Church indeed, as
was holpen with a little help but that was all. The
"
;
THE GREAT RED DRAGON. 235
Christianity of Constantine was but of a very doubtful kind, the Pagans seeing
nothing in it to hinder but that when he died, he should be enrolled among their
gods. (EuTROPius, x. pp. 131-133.) But even though ithad been better, the descrip
tion of the woman s child is far too high for Constantine, or any Christian emperor
that succeeded him on the imperial throne. The Man-child, born to rule all "
nations with a rod of iron," is unequivocally Christ (see Psalms ii. 9 Rev. xix. 15). ;
True believers, as one with Him in a subordinate sense, share in that honour (Rev.
ii. 27) ;
but to Christ alone, properly, does that prerogative belong and I think ;
it must be evident that it is His birth that is here referred to. But those who
have contended for this view have done injustice to their cause by representing
this passage as referring to His literal birth in Bethlehem. When Christ was born
in Bethlehem, no doubt Herod endeavoured to cut Him off, and Herod was a sub
ject of the Roman Empire. But it was not from any respect to Caesar that he did
so, but simply from fear of danger to his own dignity as King of Judea. So little
did Caesar sympathise with the slaughter of the children of Bethlehem, that it is
recorded that Augustus, on hearing of it, remarked that it was "better to be
Herod s hog than to be his child," (MACROBius, Saturnalia, lib. ii. cap. 4, p. 77, B.)
Then, even if it were admitted that Herod s bloody attempt to cut off the infant
Saviour was symbolised by the Roman dragon, standing ready to devour the
child as soon as it should be born," where was there anything that could correspond
to the statement that the child, to save it from that dragon, "was caught up to
God and His throne ? The flight of Joseph and Mary with the Child into Egypt
"
could never answer to such language. Moreover, it is worthy of special note, that
when the Lord Jesus was born in Bethlehem, He was born, in a very important
Where is He that is born King of the Jews 1
"
was the inquiry of the wise men that came from the East to seek Him. All His
life long, He appeared in no other character and when He died, the inscription ;
on His cross ran in these terms "This is the King of the Jews." Now, this was
:
no accidental thing. Paul tells us (Rom. xv. 8) that "Jesus Christ was a minister
of the circumcision for the truth of God, to confirm the promises made unto the
fathers." Our Lord Himself plainly declared the same thing. I am not sent," "
said He to the Syrophoanician woman, save to the lost sheep of the house of
"
and, in sending out His disciples during His personal ministry, this was
"
Israel ;
the charge which He gave them "Go not in the way of the Gentiles, and into
:
any city of the Samaritans enter ye not." It was only when He was "begotten
from the dead," and "declared to be the Son of God with power," by His victory
over the grave, that He was revealed as the Man-child, born to rule all nations.""
Then said He to His disciples, when He had risen, and was about to ascend on
high : All power is given unto Me in heaven and in earth
"
go ye therefore, and :
teach agnations." To this glorious "birth "from the tomb, and to the birth-
pangs of His Church that preceded it, our Lord Himself made distinct allusion on
the night before He was betrayed (John xvi. 20-22), "Verily, verily, I say unto
you, That ye shall weep and lament, but the world shall rejoice and ye shall be ;
sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy. A woman when she is in travail
hath sorrow, because her hour is come ; but as soon as she is delivered of the child,
she rernembereth no more the anguish, for joy that a MAN is born into the world.
And ye now therefore have sorroiv ; but I will see you again, and your heart shall
rejoice."
Here the grief of the apostles, and, of course, all the true Church that
sympathised with them during the hour and power of darkness, is compared to
the pangs of a travailing woman and their joy, when the Saviour should see ;
them again after His resurrection, to the joy of a mother when safely delivered
of a Man-child. Can there be a doubt, then, what the symbol before us means,
when the woman is represented as travailing in pain to be delivered of a "Man-
child, that was to rule all nations," and when it is said that that Man-child was "
most reverenced of all the temples of Rome."f The fire that was so
jealously guarded in that temple, and on which so much was believed
to depend, was regarded in the very same light as by the old Baby
lonian fire-worshippers. It was looked upon as the purifier, and in
April every year, at the Palilia, or feast of Pales, both men and
cattle, for this purpose, were made to pass through the fire.J The
Epidaurian snake, that the Romans worshipped along with the fire,
was looked on as the divine representation of /Esculapius, the child
of the Sun. ^Esculapius, whom that sacred snake represented, was
evidently, just another name for the great Babylonian god. His fate
was exactly the same as that of Phaethon. He was said to have
been smitten with lightning for raising the dead.|| It is evident
that this could never have been the case in a physical sense, nor
could it easily have been believed to be so. But view it in a spiritual
sense, and then the statement is just this, that he was believed
to raise men who were dead in trespasses and sins to newness
of life. Now, this was exactly what Phaethon was pretending
to do, when he was smitten for setting the world on fire. In the
Babylonian system there was a symbolical death,H that all the
initiated had to pass through, before they got the new life which
was implied in regeneration, and that just to declare that they
had passed from death unto life. As the passing through the fire
was both a purgation from sin and the means of regeneration, so
it was also for
raising the dead that Phaethon was smitten. Then,
as ^Esculapius was the child of the Sun, so was Phaethon.** To
symbolise this relationship, the head of the image of >3j]sculapius
was generally encircled with rays. ft The Pope thus encircles the
heads of the pretended images of Christ; but the real source of
these irradiations is patent to all acquainted either with the litera
ture or the art of Rome. Thus speaks Virgil of Latinus :
*
VIRGIL S JZneid, Book ii. 11. 296, 297, p. 78.
t De Civitate, lib. iii. cap. 28, vol. ix. p. 110.
OVID, Fasti, lib. iv. 11. 722-743.
Ibid. Metam., lib. xv. 11. 736-745.
Ibid, and Jlneid, lib. vii. 11. 769-773, pp. 364, 365.
||
"
to mark the same, to point him out as the child of the Sun, or the
Sun incarnate. The "golden beams "around the heads of pictures
and images called by the name of Christ, were intended to show the
Pagans that they might safely worship them, images of their as the
well-known divinities, though called by a name. Now different
Fire,"
became nearly universal.
In almost every house the sacred
serpent, which was a harmless sort,
was to be found. These ser "
and
his angels fought against the dragon
Fig. 54. ;
*
All the faces in his (MAZOIS S) engraving are quite black."
"
(Pompeii, vol.
ii. In India, the infant Crishna (emphatically the black god), in the arms
p. 106.)
of the goddess Devaki, is represented with the woolly hair and marked features of
the Negro or African race (see Fig. 54 from MOOR, Plate 59).
;
t AMMIANUS MARCELLINUS, lib. xvi. cap. 12, p. 145. (See Appendix, Note P.)
t ZOSIMI Hist., lib. iv. p. 761.
THE GREAT RED DRAGON. 239
"
The deadly wound, however, thus given to the Chaldean system, was
destined to be healed. A
colony of Etruscans, earnestly attached to
the Chaldean idolatry, had migrated, some say from Asia Minor,
others from Greece, and settled in the immediate neighbourhood of
Rome. They were ultimately incorporated in the Roman state,
but long before this political union took place they exercised the
most powerful influence on the religion of the Romans. From the
very first their skill in augury, soothsaying, and all science, real or
*
AURELIUS VICTOR, Origo Gent. Roman., cap. 3.
t PLUTARCH Numce, vol. i. p. 65) states, that Numa forbade the
(in Hist.
making of images, and that for 170 years after the founding of Rome, no images
were allowed in the Roman temples.
JBneid, lib. viii. 11. 467-470, vol. iii. p. 608.
DIONYSIDS HALICARN., vol. i. p. 22, Sir W. Betham (Etruria Celtica, vol. i.
p. 47) opposes the Lydian origin of the Etrurians but Layard (Nineveh and
;
Babylon, chap. xxiv. p. 563) seems to have set the question at rest in favour of
their Oriental extraction, or at least their close connection with the East.
240 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
(Rev.
ii. 13). There, under favour of the deifiedll kings of Pergamos, was
* ADAM S
KENNETT S Antiquities, Part ii., Book ii. chap. 3, p. 67, and Anti
quities, "Ministers of Religion," p.
255.
f KENNETT S Antiquities, Book ii. chap. 4, p. 69.
CICERO, De Divinatione, lib. i. cap. 41, vol. iii. pp. 34, 35.
LIVY, lib. iv. cap. 4, vol. i. p. 260.
I)
BARKER and AINSWORTH S Lares and Penates of Cilicia, chap. viii. p. 232.
Barker says, The defeated Chaldeans fled to Asia Minor, and fixed their
"
central
college at Pergamos." Phrygia, that was so remarkable for the worship of Cybele
and Atys, formed part of the kingdom of Pergamos. Mysia also was another, and
the Mysians, in the Paschal Chronicle, are said to be descended from Nimrod.
The words are, Nebrod, the huntsman and giant
"
his favourite abode, there was the worship of ^Esculapius, under the
form of the serpent, celebrated with frantic orgies and excesses,
that elsewhere were kept under some measure of restraint. At first,
the Roman Pontiff had no immediate connection with Pergamos
and the hierarchy there ; yet, in course of time, the Pontificate of
Home and the Pontificate of Pergamos came to be identified.
Pergamos itself became part and parcel of the Roman empire, when
Attalus III., the last of its kings, at his death, left by will all his
dominions to the Roman people, B.C. 133.* For some time after
the kingdom of Pergamos was merged in the Roman dominions,
there was no one who could set himself openly and advisedly to lay
claim to all the dignity inherent in the old title of the kings of
Pergamos. The original powers even of the Roman Pontiffs seem
to have been by that time abridged,! but when Julius Caesar, who
had previously been elected Pontifex Maximus,| became also, as
Emperor, the supreme civil ruler of the Romans, then, as head of
the Roman state, and head of the Roman religion, all the powers and
functions of the true legitimate Babylonian Pontiff W&TG supremely
vested in him, and he found himself in a position to assert these
powers. Then he seems to have laid claim to the divine dignity of
Attalus, as well as the kingdom that Attalus had bequeathed to the
Romans, as centring in himself ; for his well-known watchword,
Venus Genetrix," which meant that Venus was the mother of the
"
Julian race, appears to have been intended to make him The Son "
"
of Dagon and bearing the keys of Janus and Cybele.H Thus did
sympathised with them, put into the vacant place which Belshazzar and his pre
decessors had occupied. They were hailed as the representatives of the old Baby
lonian god. This is evident from the statements of Pausanias. First, he quotes
the following words from the oracle of a prophetess called Phaennis, in reference
to the Gauls "But
divinity will still more seriously afflict those that dwell near
:
the sea. However, in a short time after, Jupiter will send them a defender, the
beloved son of a Jove-nourished bull, who will bring destruction on all the Gauls."
(Lib. x., Phocica, cap. xv. p. 833.) Then on this he comments as follows :
"Phaennis, in this oracle, means by the son of a bull, Attalus, king of Pergamos,
whom the oracle of Apollo called Taurokeron," or bull-horned. (Ibid.) This
title given by the Delphian god, proves that Attalus, in whose dominions the
Magi
had their chief seat, had been set up and recognised in the very character of
Bacchus, the Head of the Magi. Thus the vacant seat of Belshazzar was filled,
and the broken chain of the Chaldean succession renewed.
*
SMITH S Classical Dictionary, p. 542.
t NIEBUHB, vol. iii. p. 27.
J DYMOCK, sub voce "Julius Caesar," p. 460, col. 1.
The deification of the
emperors that continued in succession from the days of
Divus Julius, or the can be traced to no cause so likely as their
"Deified Julius,"
That scarlet was the robe of honour in Belshazzar s time, see Dan. v.
||
"
"
7, 29.
IT That the key was one of the symbols used in the Mysteries, the reader will
R
242 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
"
The next great enemy introduced to our notice is the Beast from
the Sea (Rev. xiii. 1) : "I
stood," says John, "upon the sand of the
sea-shore,and saw a beast rise up out of the sea." The seven heads
and ten horns on this beast, as on the great dragon, show that this
power is essentially the same beast, but that it has undergone a cir
cumstantial change. In the old Babylonian system, after the worship
of the god of fire, there speedily followed the worship of the god of
water or the sea. As the world formerly was in danger of being
burnt up, so now it was in equal danger of being drowned. In the
Mexican story it is said to have actually been so. First, say they, it
was destroyed by fire, and then it was destroyed by water, f The
Druidic mythology gives the same account ; for the Bards affirm that
the dreadful tempest of fire that split the earth asunder, was rapidly
succeeded by the bursting of the Lake Llion, when the waters of the
find on consulting TAYLOR S Note on Orphic Hymn to Pluto, where that divinity is
spoken of as "keeper of the keys." Now the Pontifex, as Hierophant," was
"
arrayed in the habit and adorned with the symbols of the great Creator of the
"
sight ;
of the host of heaven had been suppressed. we turn to Baby When
lon itself, we find there also substantially the same account. In
Berosus, the deluge is represented as coming after the time of Alorus,
or the "god of fire," that is, Nimrod, which shows that there, too,
this deluge was symbolical. Now, out of this deluge emerged Dagon,
the fish-god, or god of the sea. The origin of the worship of Dagon,
as shown by Berosus, was founded upon a legend, that, at a remote
period of the past, when men were sunk in barbarism, there carne up
a BEAST CALLED CANNES FROM THE RED SEA, or Persian Gulf half-
man, half-fish that civilised the Babylonians, taught them arts and
sciences, and instructed them in politics and religion. The worship ||
excepted who had previously seduced the world into the worship of
fire. In the secret Mysteries that were then set up, while in the first
instance, no doubt, professing the greatest antipathy to the prescribed
worship of fire, they sought to regain their influence and power by
scenic representations of the awful scenes of the Flood, in which Noah
was introduced under the name of Dagon, or the Fish-god scenes in
which the whole family of man, both from the nature of the event
and their common connection with the second father of the human
race, could not fail to feel a deep interest. The concocters of these
Mysteries saw that if they could only bring men back again to idolatry
in any shape, they could soon work that idolatry so as substantially
to re-establish the very system that had been put down. Thus it
was, that, as soon as the way was prepared for it, Tammuz was intro
duced as one who had allowed himself to be slain for the good of
mankind. A distinction was made between good serpents and bad
serpents, one kind being represented as the serpent of Agathodsemon,
or the good divinity, another as the serpent of Cacodsemon, or the
evil one.* It was easy, then, to lead men on by degrees to believe
that, in spite of all appearances to the contrary, Tammuz, instead of
being the patron of serpent- worship in any evil sense, was in reality
the grand enemy of the Apophis, or great malignant serpent that
envied the happiness of mankind, and that in fact he was the very
seed of the woman who was destined to bruise the serpent s head.
By means of it was just as easy to
the metempsychosis, identify
Nimrod and Noah, and to make
appear that the great patriarch, in
it
*
WILKINSON, vol. iv. pp. 239 and 412. In Egypt, the Urseus, or the Cerastes,
was the good serpent, the Apophis the evil one. WILKINSON, vol. v. p. 243.)
(
"
been established, the children were still made pass through the "to
fire to Moloch." This double purification both by fire and water was
practised in Mexico, among the followers of Wodan.f This double
purification was also commonly practised among the old Pagan
Romans ; J and, in course of time, almost everywhere throughout
*
The name Tammuz, as applied to Nirarod or Osiris, was equivalent to Alorus,
or the
"
h re. Tammuz is derived from tarn, "to make perfect," and muz, and sig "fire,"
as well as to the character of Ninirod as the Father of the gods, the Zoroastrian
verse alludes when it says : "All things are the progeny of ONE FIRE. The FATHER
perfected all things, and delivered them to the second mind, whom all nations of
men call the first." (CORY S Fragments, p. 242.) Here Fire is declared to be the
Father of all ; for all things are said to be its progeny, and it is also called the
perfecter of all things."
"
souls at last, and to purge away all the sins that they have carried with them into
the unseen world.
t HUMBOLDT S Researches, vol. i. p. 185.
t OVID, Fasti, lib. iv. 11. 794, 795, vol. iii. p. 274. It was not a little interest
ing to me, after being led by strict induction from circumstantial evidence to the
conclusion that the purgation by fire was derived from the fire-worship of Adon
or Tammuz, and that by water had reference to Noah s Flood, to find an express
statement in Ovid, that such was the actual belief at Rome in his day. After
mentioning, in the passage to which the above citation refers, various fanciful
reasons for the twofold purgation by fire and water, he concludes thus "For
my :
part, I do not believe them there are some (however) who say that the one is
;
prayers, who didst employ thyself in thy long career in cultivating the vine,
and gratifying the human race with that precious beverage, which allays the
thirst, restores the strength, and enlivens the spirits of us all, deign to regard our
vines, which, following thine example, we have cultivated hitherto ; and, while
246 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
and his deadly wound was healed and all the world wondered after
:
the beast. And they worshipped the dragon, which gave power unto
the beast, and they worshipped the beast, saying, Who is like unto
the beast 1 who is able to make war with him ?
"
Babylonian type.
Do we find, then, anything corresponding to this in the religious
history of the Roman empire after the fall of the old Paganism of
that empire? Exactly in every respect. No sooner was Paganism
legally abolished, the eternal fire of Yesta extinguished, and the old
serpent cast down from the seat of power, where so long he had sat
secure, than he tried the most vigorous means to regain his influence
and authority. Finding that persecution of Christianity, as such,
thou beholdest them languishing and blighted by that disastrous visitation, which,
before the vintage, destroys the fruit (in severe punishment for many blasphemies
and other enormous sins we have committed), have compassion on us, and, pros
trate before the lofty throne of God, who has promised to His children the fruits
of the earth, and an abundance of corn and wine, entreat Him on our behalf;
promise Him in our name, that, with the aid of Divine grace, we will forsake the
ways of vice and sin, that we will no longer abuse His sacred gifts, and will
scrupulously observe His holy law, and that of our holy Mother, the Catholic
Church, &c. The collection concludes with a new prayer, addressed to the Virgin
Mary, who is invoked in these words : immaculate Mary, behold our fields and
vineyards and, should it seem to thee that we merit so great a favour, stay, we
!
beseech thee, this terrible plague, which, inflicted for our sins, renders our fields
unfruitful, and deprives our vines of the honours of the A intage, &e. The work
contains a vignette, representing the patriarch Noah presiding over the operations
of the vintage, as well as a notification from the Archbishop, granting an indul
gence of forty days to all who shall devoutly recite the prayers in question.
Christian Times." In view of such rank Paganism as this, well may the noble
Lord already referred te remark, that surely here is the world turned backwards,
and the worship of the old god Bacchus unmistakably restored !
*
GIESELER, vol. ii. p. 42, Note.
f The Greeks chose as their war-god Arioch or Arius, the grandson of Nimrod.
(CKDRKNUS, vol. i pp. 28, 29.)
THE BEAST FROM THE SEA. 247
And the serpent cast out of his mouth a flood of water after
"
the woman, that he might cause her to be carried away of the flood."
The symbol here is certainly very remarkable. If this was the
dragon of fire, it might have been expected that it would have been
represented, according to popular myths, as vomiting fire after the
woman. But it is not so. It was a flood of water that he cast out
of his mouth. What could this mean ? As the water came out of
the mouth of the dragon that must mean doctrine, and of course,
false doctrine. But is there nothing more specific than this 1
A single glance at the old Babylonian type will show that the water
cast out of the mouth of the serpent must be the water of baptismal
regeneration. Now, it was precisely at this time, when the old
Paganism was suppressed, that the doctrine of regenerating men by
baptism, which had been working in the Christian Church before,
threatened to spread like a deluge over the face of the Roman
empire.* It was then precisely that our Lord Jesus Christ began to
be popularly called Ichthys, that is, "the Fish,"f manifestly to
identify him with Dagon. At the end of the fourth century, and
from that time forward, it was taught, that he who had been washed
in the baptismal font was thereby born again, and made pure as the
virgin snow.
This flood issued not merely from the mouth of Satan, the old
serpent, but from the mouth of him who came to be recognised by
the Pagans of Rome as the visible head of the old Roman Paganism.
When the Roman fire-worship was suppressed, we have seen that
the office of Pontifex Maximus, the head of that Paganism, was
That was the wounding unto death of the head of
"
"
abolished.
the Fiery Dragon. But scarcely had that head received its deadly
wound, when it began to be healed again. Within a few years
after the Pagan title of Pontifex had been abolished, it was
revived, and that by the very Emperor that had abolished it, and
was bestowed, with all the Pagan associations clustering around
it, upon the Bishop of Rome,J who, from that time forward,
became the grand agent in pouring over professing Christendom,
first the ruinous doctrine of baptismal regeneration, and then all the
other doctrines of Paganism derived from ancient Babylon. When
this Pagan title was bestowed on the Roman bishop, it was not as a
mere empty title of honour it was bestowed, but as a title to which
formidable power was annexed. To the authority of the Bishop of
Rome in this new character, as Pontifex, when associated "
with five
*
From about A.D. 360, to the time of the Emperor Justinian, about 550, we
have evidence both of the promulgation of this doctrine, and also of the deep
hold it came at last to take of professing Christians. See GIESELKR, vol. ii.,
k
Second Period, Public Worship," p. 145.
f AUGUSTINE, De Civitate, lib. xviii. cap. 23, vol. ix. p. 665.
Codex Theodosianus, lib. xvi. tit. 1, leg. 2. See also leg. 3. The reader will
notice, that while the Bishop of Rome alone is called Pontifex, the heads of the
other churches referred to are simply "
Episcopi."
248 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
earth opened her mouth and swallowed up the flood, which the
dragon cast out of his mouth." What means the symbol of the
earth s opening its mouth ?
"
"{
of Kome might very soon have infected all parts of that empire with
the Pagan corruption he had evidently given himself up to propagate.
Considering the cruelty* with which Jovinian, and all who opposed
the Pagan doctrines in regard to marriage and abstinence, were
treated by the Pontifex of Kome, under favour of the imperial
power, it may easily be seen how serious would have been the con
sequences to the cause of truth in the Western Empire had this
state of matters been allowed to pursue its natural course. But
now the great Lord of the Church interfered. The revolt of the "
Syricius," vol.
i.
p. 256. f BOWER, vol. ii.
p. 14.
GIESELER, vol. ii., Second Period, div. ii. c. 6,
"
gods which were exposed to public view four hundred and twenty- ;
issued A.D. 423, uses these words The Pagans that remain, :
"
has a great deal more to the same effect. Now, can any one
believe that this was accidental 1 No. It was evidently the result
of that unprincipled policy, of which, in the course of this inquiry,
we have already seen such innumerable instances on the part of the
Papacy. Pope Damasus saw that, in a city pre-eminently given to
idolatry, if he was to maintain the Gospel pure and entire, he must
be willing to bear the cross, to encounter hatred and ill-will, to
endure hardness as a good soldier of Jesus Christ. On the other
hand, he could not but equally see, that if bearing the title, around
which, for so many ages, all the hopes and affections of Paganism had
*
Decline and Fall, chap, xxviii., vol. v. pp. 90-93, and p. 112.
f GIESELEE, vol. ii.
pp. 40, 45.
Decline and Fall, chap, xxviii., vol. v. pp. 121, &c.
Gibbon
distinctly admits this. must ingenuously be confessed," says he,
"
It
that the ministers of the Catholic
"
Ichthys." (HESYCHius,
p. 179.)
The reader who has seen the edition of this work, will perceive that, in
first
the above reasoning, I found nothing upon the formal appointment by Gratian of
the Pope as Pontifex, with direct aiithority over the Pagans, as was done in that
edition. That is not because I do not believe that such an appointment was made,
but because, at the present moment, some obscurity rests on the subject. The
Rev. Barcroft Boake, a very learned minister of the Church of England in
Ceylon, when in this country, communicated to me his researches on the subject,
which have made me hesitate to assert that there was any formal authority given
to the Bishop of Rome over the Pagans by Gratian. At the same time, I am
THE BEAST FROM THE SEA. 253
Now, if the circumstances in which the Pope has risen to all this
"And the
king shall do according to his will; and he shall exalt
himself and magnify himself above every god, and shall speak
marvellous things against the God of gods, and shall prosper till the
indignation be accomplished for that that is determined shall be
:
done. Neither shall he regard the god of his fathers, nor the
desire of women, nor regard any god for he shall magnify himself
:
Papacy, with its pride, its blasphemy, and forced celibacy and
virginity. But the words that follow, according to any sense that
the commentators have put upon them, have never hitherto been
found capable of being made to agree either with the theory that the
Pope was intended, or any other theory whatever. Let them,
however, only be literally rendered, and compared with the Papal
history, and all is clear, consistent, and harmonious. The inspired
seer has declared that, in the Church of Christ, some one shall arise
still convinced that the original statement was substantially true. The late
Mr. Jones, in the Journal of Prophecy, not only referred to the Appendix to the
Codex Theodosianus in proof of such an appointment, but, in elucidation of the
,
words of the Codex, asserted in express terms that there was a contest for the
office of Pontifex, and that there were two candidates, the one a Pagan, Sym-
machus, who had previously been Valentinian s deputy, and the other the Bishop
of Rome. (Quarterly Journal of Prophecy, Oct. 1852, p. 328.) I have not been
able to find Mr. Jones s authority for this statement but the statement is so
;
Procons. Africce, p. 1262), these Pagan priests necessarily came under the
jurisdiction of the Bishop of Rome, as there was then no other tribunal but his
for determining all matters affecting religion. In the text, however, I have made
no allusion to this. The argument, as I think the reader will admit, is sufficiently
decisive without it.
254 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
who shall not only aspire to a great height, but shall actually reach
it, so that "he shall do according to his will;" his will shall be
supreme in opposition to all law, human and Divine. Now, if this
king is to be a pretended successor of the fisherman of Galilee, the
question would naturally arise, How could it be possible that he
should ever have the means of rising to such a height of power ?
The words that follow give a distinct answer to that question He :
"
shall not REGARD* any god, for he shall magnify himself above all.
BUT, in establishing himself, shall he honour the god of fortifications
(Ala Mahozim), and a god, whom his fathers knew not, shall he
honour with gold and silver, and with precious stones and pleasant
things. Thus shall he make into strengthening bulwarks! [for
himself] the people of a strange god, whom he shall acknowledge
and increase with glory and he shall cause them to rule over many,
;
and he shall divide the land for gain." Such is the prophecy. Now,
this is exactly what the Pope did. Self-aggrandisement has ever
been the grand principle of the Papacy; and, in "establishing"
himself, it was just the "God of Fortifications" that he honoured.
The worship of that god he introduced into the Roman Church;
and, by so doing, he converted that which otherwise would have
been a source of weakness to him, into the very tower of his
strength he made the very Paganism of Rome by which he was
surrounded the bulwark of his power. When once it was proved
that the Pope was willing to adopt Paganism under Christian names,
the Pagans and Pagan priests would be his most hearty and staunch
defenders. And when the Pope began to wield lordly power over
the Christians, who were the men that he would recommend that
he would promote that he would advance to honour and power ?
Just the very people most devoted to the worship of the strange "
Peter s pence from the ends of the earth to the Roman Pontiff.
"
"
highest end.
f The word here is the same as above rendered "fortifications."
J GIBBON, vol. v. p. 176, states that he was persecuted and exiled, and that as
the enemy of celibacy and fasts, that is, such fasts as Rome enforced. See
also in regard to his excommunication, BOWER, vol. i.
p. 256 ;
and MlLNER,
Church History, cent. 5th, cap. 10, vol. ii., Note, p. 476.
THE BEAST FROM THE SEA. 255
himself was a Roman augur and a priest was any man ever so "
mad as to take that which he feeds on for a god ? * Cicero could "
not have said this if anything like wafer-worship had been estab
lished in Rome. But what was too absurd for Pagan Romans is
no absurdity at all for the Pope. The host, or consecrated wafer, is
the great god of the Romish Church. That host is enshrined in a
box adorned with gold and silver and precious stones. And thus it
is manifest that god"
whom even the Pope s Pagan "fathers
"a
knew he at this day honours in the very way that the terms of
not,"
was "
of his mouth a flood of water to carry away the Woman with the
flood." He, and those who co-operated with him in this cause,
paved the way for the erecting of that tremendous civil and spiritual
despotism which began to stand forth full in the face of Europe in
A.D. 606, when, amid the convulsions and confusions of the nations,
tossed like a tempestuous sea, the Pope of Rome was made Universal
Bishop ; and when the ten chief kingdoms of Europe recognised
him as Christ s Vicar upon earth, the only centre of unity, the only
source of stability to their thrones. Then by his own act and deed,
and by the consent of the UNIVERSAL PAGANISM of Rome, he was
actually the representative of Dagon and as he bears upon his head
;
And I stood upon the sand of the sea, and saw a beast rise up out
"
*
CICEHO, De Natura .Deorum, lib. iii. cap. 16, vol. ii. p. 500.
f It is from this period only that the well-known 1260 days can begin to be
counted for not before did the Pope appear as Head of the ten-horned beast,
;
and head of the Universal Church. The reader will observe that though the
beast above referred to has passed through the sea, it still retains its primitive
characteristic. The head of the apostacy at first was Kronos, The Horned One.""
The head of the apostacy is Kronos still, for he is the beast "with seven heads
and ten Aorns."
256 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
of the sea, having seven heads and ten horns, and upon his horns ten
crowns, and upon his heads the names of blasphemy And
I saw one of his heads as it had been wounded to death ;
and his
deadly wound was healed, and all the world wondered after the
"
beast ?
is said in WILKINSON, vol. iv. pp. 235, 238, it will be seen, that though the above
figure is called by the name of Amun," the ram s head makes it out as having the
"
attributes ofNoub.
From AnliquiUs Etrusqn.es. Par. F. A. DAVID. Vol. v. Plate 57. I am
indebted for the above, and many other things that have helped to elucidate this
work, to my friend and neighbour, the Rev. A. Peebles, of Colliston.
THE BEAST FROM THE EARTH. 257
to have taught the Romans augury, and all the superstition and
wonder-working jugglery connected therewith.* As in recent times,
we hear of weeping images and winking Madonnas, and innumerable
prodigies besides, continually occurring in the Romish Church,
in proof of this papal dogma or that, so was it also in the system
of Babylon. There is hardly a form of "pious fraud" or saintly
imposture practised at this day on the banks of the Tiber, that
cannot be proved to have had its counterpart on the banks of the
Euphrates, or in the systems that came from it. Has the image
of the Virgin been seen to shed tears ? Many a tear was shed by the
Pagan images. To these tender-hearted idols Lucan alludes, when,
Fig. 55. Fig. 56.
"
"
gods had also their merry moods, as well as their weeping fits.
If Rome counts it a divine accomplishment for the sacred image
of her Madonna to wink," it was surely not less becoming in the
"
statues of the Egyptian Isis. They were so framed, that the goddess
could shake the silver serpent on her forehead, and nod assent
to those who had preferred their petitions in such a way as pleased
her.J We read of Romish saints that showed their miraculous
powers by crossing rivers or the sea in most unlikely conveyances.
Thus, of St. Raymond it is written that he was transported over the
sea on his cloak. Paganism is not a whit behind in this matter ;
for it is recorded of a Buddhist saint, Sura Acharya, that, when
he used to visit his flocks west of the Indus, he floated himself
"
across the stream upon his mantle." Nay, the gods and high
||
above the earth, and that this was the case with Zoroaster."*
The Jamblichus asserted that they had often witnessed
disciples of
the same miracle in the case of their master, who, when he prayed
was raised to the height of ten cubits from the earth, f The
greatest miracle which Rome pretends to work, is when, by the
repetition of five magic words, she professes to bring down the body,
blood, soul, and divinity of our Lord Jesus Christ from heaven,
to make Him really and corporeally present in the sacrament of
the altar. The Chaldean priests pretended, by their magic spells,
in manner, to bring down their divinities into their statues,
like
should be visibly manifested in them.
"
comes the blasphemous saying of the Popish priests, that they have
power create their Creator."
"to There is no evidence, so far
as I have been able to find, that, in the Babylonian system, the thin
round cake of wafer, the unbloody sacrifice of the mass," was ever
"
regarded in any other light than as a symbol, that ever it was held
to be changed into the god whom it represented. But yet the doctrine
is clearly of the very essence of Magic, which
of trans ubstantiation
pretended, on the pronunciation of a few potent words, to change
one substance into another, or by a dexterous juggle, wholly to
remove one substance, and to substitute another in its place.
Further, the Pope, in the plenitude of his power, assumes the right
of wielding the lightnings of Jehovah, and of blasting by his
f ulminations
"
aloft in prayer, but his body became luminous at the same time, flainmamque "
exactly describe his doing than the words of the prediction (ver. 13) :
heaven in the sight of men, .... and he causeth the earth and
them that dwell therein to worship the first beast, whose deadly
wound was healed." This wonder-working beast, called Nebo, or
"the as the prophet of idolatry, was, of course, the "false
Prophet,"
prophet."
the passage before us with Rev. xix. 20, it
By comparing
came up out of the earth is
"
expressly called by that very name And the beast was taken, and
:
"
with him the false prophet that wrought miracles before him, with
which he deceived them that received the mark of the beast, and
them that worshipped his image." As it was the "beast from the
before the first beast, this shows
"
that "the beast from the earth" is the "false prophet;" in other
words, is "Nebo."
*
JDSTIN MARTYR, vol. ii. p. 193. It is remarkable that, as Mithra was bow,
out of a cave, so the idolatrous nominal Christians of the East represent our
Saviour as having in like manner been born in a cave. (See KITTO S Cyclopaedia,
"
Bethlehem," vol. i. p. 327.) There is not the least hint of such a thing in the
Scripture.
t LEMPRIERE.
THE BEAST FROM THE EARTH. 261
whether they concern the ordinary revenues of the city, either from
funds arising from the property of the city, or from private gifts or
legacies, or from any other source whether public works, or depots
;
bishop, and three notables, chosen from among the first men of the
city, shall meet together; they shall each year examine the works
done ; they shall take care that those who conduct them, or who
have conducted them, shall regulate them with precision, render
their accounts, and show that they have duly performed their
engagements in the administration, whether of the public monuments,
or of the sums appointed for provisions or baths, or of expenses in
the maintenance of roads, aqueducts, or any other work."* Here is
a large list of functions laid on the spiritual shoulders of the very "
Gibbon we get light as to the real origin of what Guizot calls this
"prodigious power." The author of the Decline and Fall shows,
that soon after Constantino s time, the Church [and consequently
" "
either the justice or mercy of the Deity and His ministers."! Thus
was the foundation laid of the invasion of the rights of the civil
the very crimes they were raised to banish from the world. This "J
lawlessness,"
and is an additional proof to the many that might be alleged, that
*
GUIZOT, History of Civilisation, vol. i. sect. ii. pp. 36, 37.
t GIBBON, vol. iii. chap. xx. p. 287.
+ Rome in the 19th Century, vol. i. pp. 246, 247.
262 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
the Head of the Roman system, to whom all bishops are subject, is
indeed The Lawless One
6
(2 Thess. ii. 8), predicted in
avopos,
"
"
this temporal power came into the hands of men, who, while profess
Iniquity doth already work." But by-and-by, towards the end of the
fourth century, when the minds of men had been pretty well pre
pared, and the aspect of things seemed to be favourable for it, the
wolves in sheep s clothing appeared above ground, brought their
secret doctrines and practices, by little and little, into the light of
day, and century after century, as their power increased, by means
of all deceivableness of unrighteousness," and "signs and lying
"
thus caused the earth, and them that dwelt therein, to worship the
"
appeared, it is said that this beast from the earth became the recog
nised, accredited executor of the will of the great sea beast (v. 12),
And he exerciseth all the power of the first beast before him,"
"
literally
"
in his presence
the first beast is, there is
great force in this expression in his "
presence." The beast that comes up from the sea, is "the little
(Dan. vii. 8) ; it is
Janus Tuens, "All-seeing Janus," in other words, the Universal
Bishop or Universal Overseer," who, from his throne on the seven
"
from the Capitol, yet it is not he in reality that brings down the fire from heaven,
but his clergy. But for the influence of the clergy in everywhere blinding the
minds of the people, the Papal thunders would be but bruta fulmina" after all. "
The symbol, therefore, is most exact, when it attributes the bringing down of "
the fire from heaven," to the beast from the earth, rather than to the beast from
the sea.
THE IMAGE OF THE BEAST. 263
Pope, taken from the holy lambs kept by the nuns of St. Agnes, and
woven by their sacred hands, f that it might be bestowed on those
whom the Popes delighted to honour, for the purpose, as one of
themselves expressed it, of "joining them to our society in the one
pastoral sheepfold"l Thus commissioned, thus ordained by the
universal Bishop, they did their work effectually, and brought the
earth and them that dwelt in it, to worship the beast that received
"
the wound by a sword and did live." This was a part of this beast s
predicted work. But there was another, and not less important,
which remains for consideration.
expressly states that it was only about 602, at the ascent of Phocas to the imperial
throne ^hat Phocas that made the Pope Universal Bishop that the Popes began
to bestow the pallium, that is, of course, systematically, and on a large scale.
f Rome in the 19th Century, vol. iii. p. 214. In the present day, the pallium is
given only to the Archbishops Gieseler, in passage already quoted, shows that it
;
H
EUSEBIUS, Prceparatio Evanyelii, lib. i. cap. 10, vol. i. p. 45. This statement
is remarkable, as showing that the horns which the
great goddess wore were really
intended to exhibit her as the express image of Ninus, or the Son." Had she "
worn merely the cow s horns, it might have been supposed that these horns were
intended only to identify her with the moon. But the buWs horns show that the
intention was to represent her as equal in her sovereignty with Nimrod, or
Kronos, the Horned one."
"
** See
ante, p. 165.
ft Jeremiah vii. 18, and PARKHURST S Hebrew Lexicon, pp. 402, 403.
Jt See ante, p. 72. See ante, p. 78.
See ante, p. 158. The Chaldean meaning of the name Amarusia, signifying
III!
the power to wash away sin, and, though the mother of the seed, was
called the Virgin, pure and undented."!
"
He was represented as
"Judge of the dead;" she was represented as standing by his side,
at the judgment-seat, in the unseen world. He, after being killed
by the sword, was fabled to have risen again, || and ascended up
to
heaven. 1T She, too, though history makes her to have been killed
with the sword by one of her own sons,** was nevertheless, in the
and
myth, said to have been carried by her son bodily to heaven,f f
to have been made Pambasileia, "Queen of the uni verse. "JJ
IMAGE." Thus, in every respect, to the very least jot and tittle,
she became the express image of the Babylonian beast that had the "
After what the reader has already seen in a previous part of this
work, it is hardly necessary to say that it is this very goddess that is
now worshipped in the Church of Rome under the name of Mary.
Though that goddess is called by the name of the mother of our
Lord, all the attributes given to her are derived simply from the
Babylonian Madonna, and not from the Virgin Mother of Christ. 1 1 1 1
The lamented ;/oddcss." The Roman Juno was evidently known in this very
"
character of the
Capitoline hill, under the name of Juno Moueta." Moneta is the emphatic form
"
of one of the Chaldee words for an image and that this was the real meaning
" "
of the name, will appear from the fact that the Mint was contained in the
precincts of that temple. (See SMITH S "Juno," p. 358.) What is the use of a
mint but just to stamp "images"? Hence the connection between Juno and
the Mint.
The very way in which the Popish Madonna is represented is plainly copied
Illl
from the idolatrous representations of the Pagan goddess. The great god used
to be represented as sitting or standing in the cup of a Lotus-flower. (See
BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 180, where Harpocrates is thus represented and VAUX S ;
There is not one line or one letter in all the Bible to countenance the
idea that Mary should be worshipped, that she is the "refuge of
sinners," that she was immaculate," that she made atonement for
"
sin when standing by the cross, and when, according to Simeon, a "
sword pierced through her own soul also ; or that, after her death,
"
she was raised from the dead and carried in glory to heaven. But
in the Babylonian system all this was found ; and all this is now
incorporated in the system of Rome. The sacred heart of Mary " "
Fig. 57.
Fig. 58.
heart,"
client go to the heart of Jesus, but let your way be through the
!
heart of Mary ; the sword of grief which pierced her sold opens you a
passage ; enter by the wound which love has made ;
"*
again we
seated on a Lotus-flower, said to have sprung from the navel of Vishnu. The
great goddess, in like manner, must have a similar couch and, therefore, in ;
India, we find Lakshmi, the Mother of the Universe," sitting on a Lotus, borne
"
by a tortoise (see Fig. 57 ; from COLKMAN S Mythology, plate 23). Now, in this
very thing, also. Popery has copied from its Pagan model ; for, in the Pancarpium,
Marianum, p. 88, the Virgin and child are represented sitting in the cup of a
tulip (see Fig. 58).
*
Memoir of Rev. Godfrey Massy, pp. 91, 92. In the Paradisus sponsi et sponsce,
by the author of Pancarpium Marianum, the following words, addressed to the
Virgin, occur in illustration of a plate representing the crucifixion, and Mary, at
the foot of the Cross, with the sword in her breast, Dilectus tuusfilius carnem tu
"
vero animam immolasti : immo corpus et animam Thy beloved son did
"
"
(p. 181) ;
THE IMAGE OF THE BEAST. 267
hear one expounder of the new faith, like M. Genoude in France, say
that Mary was the repairer of the guilt of Eve, as our Lord was
"
of Paderbon affirm that Mary was not a human creature like us,
that she is "the Woman, as Christ is the Man," that "Mary is
co-present in the Eucharist, and that it is indisputable that, accord
ing to the Eucharistic doctrine of the Church, this presence of Mary
in the Eucharist is true and real, not merely ideal or figurative
"
f ;
Saying to them that dwell on the earth, that they should make an
"
image to the beast ; and they made it. Now, here is the important
"
fact to be observed, that this never was done, and this never could
have been done, till eight years ago for this plain reason, that till :
earth, met in Rome and with only four dissentient voices, it was
;
decreed that Mary, the mother of God, who died, rose from the dead,
and ascended into heaven, should henceforth be worshipped as the
Immaculate Virgin, "conceived and born without sin." This was
the formal setting up of the Image of the beast, and that by the
general consent of "the men that dwell upon the earth." Now, this
beast being set up, it is said, that the beast from the earth gives life
and speech to the Image, implying, first, that it has neither life nor
voice in itself; but that, nevertheless, through means of the beast
from the earth, it is to have both life and voice, and to be an effective
agent of the Papal clergy, who will make it speak exactly as they
please. Since the Image has been set up, its voice has been every
where heard throughout the Papacy. Formerly decrees ran less or
more in the name of Christ. Now all things are pre-eminently
done in the name of the Immaculate Virgin. Her voice is every-
sacrifice his fleshthou thy soul yea, both body and soul." This does much
;
more than put the sacrifice of the Virgin on a level with that of the Lord Jesus,
itmakes it greater far. This, in 1617, was the creed only of Jesuitism now ;
Dagon and the Pope being now identified, this brings us naturally
and easily to the long-sought name and number of the beast, and con
firms, by entirely new evidence, the old Protestant view of the sub
ject. The name Lateinos has been generally accepted by Protestant
" "
xvii. 5). Here, then, we have the key that at once unlocks the
enigma. We
have now only to inquire what was the name by which
Nimrod was known as the god of the Chaldean Mysteries. That
name, as we have seen, was Saturn. Saturn and Mystery are both
Chaldean words, and they are correlative terms. As Mystery signi
fies the Hidden system, so Saturn signifies the Hidden god.J To
those who were initiated the god was revealed ; to all else he was
hidden. Now, the name Saturn in Chaldee is pronounced Satur ;
but, as every Chaldee scholar knows, consists only of four letters, thus
Stur. This name contains exactly the Apocalyptic number 666 :
S - 60
T = 400
U = 6
R = 200
666
*
See Appendix, Note Q.
f Vol. iv. p. 179.
+ In the Litany of the Mass, the worshippers are taught thus to pray "GoD :
HIDDEN, and my Saviour, have mercy upon (M GAViN s Protestant, vol. ii.
us."
p. 79, 1837.) Whence can this invocation of the "God Hidden" have come, but
from the ancient worship of Saturn, the "Hidden God"? As the Papacy has
canonised the Babylonian god by the name of St. Dionysius, and St. Bacchus, the
"martyr,"
so by this very name of "Satur" is he also enrolled in the calendar ;
(CHAMBERS S Book of
Days, p. 435.)
270 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
the "
Saturnian land." But what bearing, it may be said, has this upon the
name Lateinos, which is commonly believed to be the "name of the
Much. It proves that the common opinion is thoroughly
"
beast ^
well-founded. Saturn and Lateinos are just synonymous, having pre
cisely the same meaning, and belonging equally to the same god.
The reader cannot have forgotten the lines of Virgil, which showed
that Lateinos, to whom the Romans or Latin race traced back their
lineage, was represented with a glory around his head, to show that
he was a "child of the Sun." Thus, then, it is evident that, in
popular opinion, the original Lateinos had occupied the very same
position as Saturn did in the Mysteries, who was equally worshipped
as the offspring of the Sun."
"
god of Mystery."H
"
*
Fasti, lib. vi. 11. 31-34, vol. iii. p. 342. f Hist. Nat., lib. iii. 5, p. 55.
J AUREL. VICT., Origo Gent. Roman, cap. iii. See ante, p. 236.
||OVID, Fasti, lib. i. 1. 238, vol. iii. p. 29 also VIRGIL, Jlneid lib. viii. 1. 319, ;
&c., p. 384.
IT Latium Latinus (the Roman form of the Greek Lateinos), and Lateo, to lie "
all alike come from the Chaldee Lat," which has the same meaning. The
"
hid,"
name or the hidden one, had evidently been given, as well as Saturn, to
"Lat,"
the Great Babylonian god. This is evident from the name of the fish Latus,
which was worshipped along with the Egyptian Minerva, in the city of Latopolis
in Egypt, now Esneh (WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 284, and vol. v.
p. 253), that fish
Latus evidently just being another name for the fish-god Dagon. have seen We
that Ichthys, or the Fish, was one of the names of Bacchus ; and the Assyrian
goddess Atergatis, with her son Ichthys is said to have been cast into the lake of
Ascalon. ( Vossius de Idololatria, lib. i. cap. xxiii. p. 89, also ATHEN^EDS, lib. viii.
cap. viii. p. 346, E.) That the sun-god Apollo had been known under the name of
Lat, may be inferred from the Greek name of his mother- wife Leto, or in Doric,
Late, which is just the feminine of Lat. The Roman name Latona confirms this,
for it Bignifies The lamenter of Lat," as Bellona signifies "The lamenter of Bel."
"
The Indian god Siva, who, as we have seen, is sometimes represented as a child at
the breast of its mother, and has the same bloody character as Moloch, or the
Roman Saturn, is called by this very name, as may be seen from the following
verae made in reference to the image found in his celebrated temple at Somnaut :
"
While Saturn, therefore, is the name of the beast, and contains the
mystic number, Lateinos, which contains the same number, is just as
peculiar and distinctive an appellation of the same beast.
The Pope,
then, as the head of the beast, is equally Lateinos or Saturn, that is,
the head of the Babylonian Mystery." When, therefore, the Pope "
requires all his services to be performed in the Latin tongue," that "
his seat on the seven hills of Rome has exclusive and indefeasible
claims to be regarded as the Visible head of the beast.
The reader, however, who has carefully considered the language
that speaks of the name and number of the Apocalyptic beast, must
have observed that, in the terms that describe that name and
number, there is still an enigma that ought not to be overlooked.
The words are these Let him that hath understanding count the
:
"
number of the beast for it is the number of a man" (Rev. xiii. 18).
What means the saying, that the "number of the beast is the
number of a man ? Does it merely mean that he has been called
"
This is the sense in which the words have been generally under
stood. But surely this would be nothing very distinctive nothing
that might not equally apply to innumerable names. But view this
language in connection with the ascertained facts of the case, and
what a Divine light at once beams from the expression. Saturn, the
hidden god, the god of the Mysteries, whom the Pope represents,
whose secrets were revealed only to the initiated, was identical
with Janus, who was publicly known to all Rome, to the uninitiated
and initiated alike, as the grand Mediator, the opener and the
shutter, who had the key of the invisible world. Now, what means
the name Janus ? That name, as Cornincius in Macrobius shows,
was properly Eanus;* and in ancient Chaldee, E-anush signifies
As Lat was used as a synonym for Saturn, there can be Httle doubt that Latinus
was used in the same sense. Virgil makes the Latinus, who was the contemporary
of ^Eneas, third in descent from Saturn :
"
The deified kings were called after the gods from whom they professed to spring,
and not after their territories. The same, we may be sure, was the case with
Latinus.
*
Saturnalia, lib. i.
cap. 9, p. 54, G.
272 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
"the Man." By that very name was the Babylonian beast from the
sea called, when it first made its appearance.* The name E-anush,
or the Man," was applied to the
"
Man," as applied to
a god, was intended to designate him as the
"
god-man? We
have seen that in India, the Hindoo Shasters bear,
that in order to enable the gods to overcome their enemies, it was
needful that the Sun, the supreme divinity, should be incarnate, and
born of a Woman, f The classical nations had a legend of precisely
the same nature. There was a current tradition in heaven," says
"
the help of a man." I That man, who was believed to have conquered
the adversaries of the gods, was Janus, the god-man. In consequence
of his assumed character and exploits, Janus was invested with high
powers, made the keeper of the gates of heaven, and arbiter of men s
eternal destinies. Of this Janus, this Babylonian man," the Pope, "
Principium
Deorum," the source and fountain of all the Pagan gods. We have
already in this character traced him backward through Gush to
Noah but to make out his claim to this high character, in its proper
;
of gods and men" should not be ignored. Nor was it. The
*
The name, as given in Greek by Berosus, 48) but this is just is O-annes (p. ;
name Oannes is taken by Barker (Lares and Penates, p. 224). find the We
conversion of the into H O
among our own immediate neighbours, the Irish ;
what is now O Brien and O Connell was originally H Brien and H Connell.
(Sketches of Irish History, p. 72.)
t See ante, Chapter III. p. 96.
Bibliotheca, lib. i. in PARKHURST, sub voce aaz,"
"
No. v. ;
see also MACROBIUB,
Saturnalia, lib. i. cap. 20, in regard to Hercules the "
man."
Mysteries were full of what he did, and what befel him ; and the
name E-anush, or, as it appeared in the Egyptian form, Ph anesh,*
The man," was only another name
"
fallen man."
"
Principium deorurn,"
"
"to
Atys or Attes, formed from the same verb, and in a
sin."
sinner," even her own husband, whom she induced to share with her
in her sin, and partake of her fatal knowledge, and who thereby
became in true and proper sense, "The man of sin,"
"the man by
* vol. iv. p. 191.
WILKINSON,
t Anesh properly signifies only the weakness or frailty of fallen humanity but ;
any one who consults OVID, Fasti, Kal. Jun.," 11. 100, &c., vol. iii. p. 346, as to
"
the character of Janus, will see that when E-anush was deified, it was not simply
as Fallen man with his weakness, but Fallen man with his corruption.
SMITH S Classical Dictionary, "Atys," p. 107. The identification of Attes
with Bacchus or Adonis, who was at once the Father of the gods, and the
Mediator, is proved from divers considerations. 1. While it is certain that the
favourite god of the Phrygian Cybele was Attes, whence he was called "Cybelius
Attes," from Strabo, lib. x. p. 452, we learn that the divinity worshipped along
with Cybele in Phrygia, was called by the very name of Dionusos or Bacchus.
2. Attes was represented in the very same way as Bacchus. In Bryant there is an
inscription to him along with the Idaean goddess, that is Cybele, under the name
of "Attis the Minotaur" (MythoL, vol. ii. p. 109, Note). Bacchus was bull-
horned it is well known that the Minotaur, in like manner, was half-man, half-
;
bull. 3.He was represented in the exoteric story, as perishing in the same way
as Adonis by a wild boar (PAUSAN., lib. vii., Achaica, cap. 17). 4. In the rites of
Magna Mater or Cybele, the priests invoked him as the Deus propitiu*, Deus
"
sanctus," "the merciful God, the holy God" (AKNOBIUS, lib. i. in Maxima Biblioth.
Patrum, in Ed. Adv. Lib., torn. iii. p. 435, Lugd., 1677), the very character which
Bacchus or Adonis sustained as the mediatorial god.
See ante, p. 111.
T
274 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
whom sin entered the world, and death by sin, and so death passed
upon all, because all have sinned."* Now to Attes, this Man of
"
as contained in the
"
that he equally occupies the place of Attes, the sinner," and then "
And they worshipped the Dragon which gave power unto the
"
"a
Fasti, lib. iv., Ludi Megalenses). The love of Attes for this nymph was in one
aspect an offence to Cybele, but, in another, it was the love of Cybele herself ; for
Cybele has two distinct fundamental characters that of the Holy Spirit, and also
that of our mother Eve (see Appendix, Note G). "The
nymph whose fate
depended on a tree was evidently Rhea, the mother of mankind.
"
t BRYANT, vol. i. p. 387, Note. The ground of the identification of Attis with
the sun evidently was, that as Hata signifies to sin, so Hatah, which signifies to
burn, is in pronunciation nearly the same. In illustration of the name Attes, or
Attis, as "The Sinner," see Appendix, Note R.
PAUSAN., lib. vii., Achaica, cap. 17.
THE NAME OF THE BEAST, ETC. 275
treason,
"
to the working
"
i.e.,
literally,
(2 Thess. ii. 9).* Therefore Satan himself, and not any subordinate
spirit of hell, must preside over the whole vast system of consecrated
wickedness; he must personally take possession of him who is its
visible head, that the system may be guided by his diabolical
subtlety, and "energised" by his super-human power. Keeping
this in view, we see at once how it that, when the followers of
is
the Pope worship the beast, they worship also the dragon that gave
"
Chaldean books, describing the inspiration coming from the gods and demons to
their worshippers. (TAYLOR S Jamblichus, p. 163, et passim.)
f IREN^US, lib. v. cap. 30, p. 802. Though the name Teitan was originally
derived from Chaldee, yet it became thoroughly naturalised in the Greek language.
Therefore, to give the more abundant evidence on this important subject, the
Spirit of God seems to have ordered it, that the number of Teitan should be
found according to the Greek computation, while that of Satur is found by the
Chaldee.
276 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
opinion itself he may have derived from others who had better and
more valid reasons for their belief on this subject. Now, on inquiry,
it will actually be found, that while Saturn was the name of the
visible head, Teitan was the name of the invisible head of the beast.
Teitan is just the Chaldean form of Sheitan,* the
very name by
which Satan has been called from time immemorial by the Devil-
worshippers of Kurdistan ;f and from Armenia or Kurdistan, this
Devil-worship embodied in the Chaldean Mysteries came westward
to Asia Minor, and thence to Etruria and Rome. That Teitan was
actually known by
the classic nations of antiquity to be Satan, or the
spirit ofand originator of moral evil, we have the
wickedness,
following proofs The history of Teitan and his brethren, as given in
:
Homer and Hesiod, the two earliest of all the Greek writers,
although later legends are obviously mixed up with it, is evidently
the exact counterpart of the Scriptural account of Satan and his
angels. Homer says, that "
The chief of
them having committed a certain act of wickedness against his
father, the supreme god of heaven, with the sympathy of many
others of the sons of heaven," that father called them all by an
" "
the earliest account of Teitan and his followers among the Greeks,
we find that, in the Chaldean system, Teitan was just a synonym
for Typhon, the malignant Serpent or Dragon, who was universally
regarded as the Devil, or author of all wickedness. It was Typhon,
according to the Pagan version of the story, that killed Tammuz, and
cut him in pieces ; but Lactantius, who was thoroughly acquainted
with the subject, upbraids his Pagan countrymen for worshipping a "
Tanin, &c.
f WALPOLE S Ansayri, vol. i. p. 397. LATARD S Nineveh, vol. i. pp. 287, 288.
See also REDHOUSE S Turkish Dictionary, sub voce Satan," p. 303. The Turks "
In the Mysteries,
as formerly hinted, an important change took
place as soon as the way was paved for it. First, Tammuz was
worshipped as the .bruiser of the serpent s head, meaning thereby
that he was the appointed destroyer of Satan s kingdom. Then the
dragon himself, or Satan, receive a certain measure of
came to
worship, to Pagans said, "for the loss of his
"console him," as the
power," and to prevent him from hurting them;*
and last of all
the dragon, or Teitan or Satan, became the supreme object of
worship, the Titania, or rites of Teitan, occupying a prominent place
in the Egyptian Mysteries,! and also in those of Greece. J How
vitally important was the place that these rites of Teitan or Satan
occupied, may be judged of from the fact that Pluto, the god of Hell
(who, in his ultimate character, was just the grand Adversary), was
looked up to with awe and dread as the great god on whom the
destinies of mankind in the eternal world did mainly depend ; for it
was said that to Pluto it belonged "to purify souls after death. "
was manifestly the case in Greece ; for the current story there came
to be, that the first Bacchus was brought forth in consequence of a
connexion on the part of his mother with the father of the gods, in
the form of a speckled snake."1F That father of the gods was
"
" "
that very deed by the name of the Grand Adversary of all, Typhon, or the Devil.
If they called the Master of the house Beelzebub," no wonder that his servant
"
man set up to be a god upon earth, it was held essential to establish his title to
that character, that he prove himself to be the serpent s seed." Thus, when
Alexander the Great claimed divine honours, it is well known that his mother
Olympias, declared that he was not sprung from King Philip, her husband, but
from Jupiter, in the form of a serpent. In like manner, says the authoress of
Rome in the 19th Century, vol. i. p. 388, the Roman emperor, Augustus,
"
pretended that he was the son of Apollo, and that the god had assumed the form
of a serpent for the purpose of giving him birth." Vid. SUET. AUGUSTUS.
**
See ante, p. 126.
278 THE TWO DEVELOPMENTS CONSIDERED.
legend from that which it has in the Divine Word. Thus the grand
Thimblerigger, by dexterously shifting the peas, through means of
men who began with great professions of abhorrence of his character,
got himself almost everywhere recognised as in very deed the god "
of this world." So deep and so strong was the hold that Satan had
contrived to get of the ancient world in this character, that even
when Christianity had been proclaimed to man, and the true light
had shone from Heaven, the very doctrine we have been considering
raised its head among the professed disciples of Christ. Those who
held this doctrine were called Ophiani or Ophites, that is, serpent-
worshippers. "These heretics," says Tertullian, "magnify the
serpent to such a degree as to prefer him even to Christ Himself ;
for he, say they, gave us the first knowledge of good and evil. It
was from a perception of his power and majesty that Moses was
induced to erect the brazen serpent, to which whosoever looked was
healed. Christ Himself, they affirm, in the Gospel imitates the
sacred power of the serpent, when He says that, As Moses lifted up
the serpent in the wilderness even so must the Son of Man be lifted
up. t They introduce it when they bless the Eucharist." These
wicked heretics avowedly worshipped the old serpent, or Satan, as the
grand benefactor of mankind, for revealing to them the knowledge
of good and evil. But this doctrine they had just brought along
with them from the Pagan world, from which they had come, or
from the Mysteries, as they came to be received and celebrated in
Rome. Though Teitan, in the days of Hesiod and in early Greece,
was an opprobrious name," yet in Rome, in the days of the Empire
"
Pherecydes called Semele, Hue." (PHOT. Lex., pars ii. p. 616.) Hue is just the
"
shkul,
"
to instruct ;
and Aph6, or Ap6 "
;
"
"a
serpent." The Greek form of this name, Asklepios, signifies simply "the
instructing snake," and comes from A, ski, teach," and heft,
"the,"
"to "a
snake," the Chaldean words being thus modified in Egypt. The name Asclepios,
capable of another sense, as derived fromAaz, strength," and Khlep,
"
however, is
"to
renew;" and, therefore, in the exoteric doctrine, Asclepios was known
simply as "the strength -restorer," or the Healing God. But, as identified with
the serpent, the true meaning of the name seems to be that which is first stated.
Macrobius, giving an account of the mystic doctrine of the ancients, says that
THE NAME OF THE BEAST, ETC. 279
Eome was Teitan, or Satan, identified with the serpent that taught
"
mankind," that opened their eyes (when, of course, they were blind),
and gave them "the knowledge of good and evil." In Pergamos,
and in all Asia Minor, from which directly Rome derived its know
ledge of Mysteries, the case was the same.
the In Pergamos,
especially,where pre-eminently Satan s seat was," the sun-divinity,
"
the highest rank, and, as Cicero declares, "the most learned of the
Romans," had incautiously divulged it, he was remorselessly put to
death for his revelation. Now, however, it stands plainly revealed.
Fig. 59.
yEsculapius was that beneficent influence of the sun which pervaded the souls
of men. (Sat., lib. i. cap. 23.) Now the Serpent was the symbol of the
enlightening sun.
*
MACKOBIUS, Saturnalia, lib. i. cap. 17, 23, pp. 65, C, and 72, 1, 2.
Lord of the Fly," to the profane meant only the power that
"
destroyed the swarms of flies when these "became, as they often did
in hot countries, a source of torment to the people whom they
invaded. But this name, as identified with the serpent, clearly
reveals itself as one of the distinctive names of Satan. And how
appropriate is this name, when its mystic or esoteric meaning is
proper name, must have been the great god of their secret and
mysterious worship, and this accounts for the extraordinary mystery
observed on the subject. f When, therefore, Gratian abolished
the legal provision for the support of the fire-worship and serpent-
worship of Rome, we see how exactly the Divine prediction was
fulfilled (Rev. xii. 9): "And the great dragon was cast out, that
old serpent called the DEVIL, and SATAN, which deceiveth the whole
world he was cast out into the earth, and his angels were cast out
:
t I find Lactantius was led to the conclusion that the ^Esculapian serpent was
the express symbol of Satan, for, giving an account of the bringing of the
Epidaurian snake to Rome, he says "Thither [i.e., to Rome] the Demoniarches
:
[or Prince of the Devils] in his own proper shape, without disguise, was brought ;
for those who were sent on that business brought back with them a dragon of
amazing size." (De Origine JErroris, lib. ii. cap. 16, p. 108.)
J The facts stated above cast a very singular light on a well-known supersti
tion among ourselves. Everybody has heard of St. Swithin s day, on which, if it
rain, the current belief is, that it will rain in uninterrupted succession for six weeks.
And who or what was St. Swithin that his day should be connected with forty
days uninterrupted rain ? for six weeks is just the round number of weeks equi
valent to forty days. It is evident, in the first place, that he was no Christian
saint, though an Archbishop of Canterbury in the tenth century is said to have
been called by his name. The patron saint of the forty days rain was just
Tammuz or Odin, who was worshipped among our ancestors as the incarnation
of Noah, in whose time it rained forty days and forty nights without intermission.
Tammuz and St. Swithin, then, must have been one and the same. But, as in
Egypt, and Rome, and Greece, and almost everywhere else, long before the
Christian era, Tammuz had come to be recognised as an incarnation of the Devil,
we need not be surprised to find that St. Swithin is no other than St. Satan.
One of the current forms of the grand adversary s name among the Pagans was
just Sytan or Sythan. This name, as applied to the Evil Being, is found as far
to the east as the kingdom of Siam. It had evidently been known to the Druids,
and that in connection with the flood ; for they say that it was the son of Seithin
that, under the influence of drink, let in the sea over the country so as to over
whelm a large and populous district. (DAVIES S Druids, p. 198.) The Anglo-
Saxons, when they received that name, in the very same way as they made Odin
into Wodin, would naturally change Sythan into Swythan and thus, in St. ;
striking proof of the wide extent of Devil-worship in the heathen world, and of
the thorough acquaintance of our Pagan ancestors with the great Scriptural fact
of the forty days incessant rain at the Deluge.
THE NAME OF THE BEAST, ETC. 281
prerogatives the Pope had served himself heir, was thus the High-
priest of Satan, so, when the Pope entered into a league and alliance
with that system of Devil-worship, and consented to occupy the very
position of that Pontifex, and to bring all its abominations into the
Church, as he has done, he necessarily became the Prime Minister
of the Devil, and, of course, came as thoroughly under his power as
ever the previous Pontiff had been.* How exact the fulfilment of
the Divine statement that the coming of the Man of Sin was to be
"after the
working or energy of Satan." Here, then, is the grand
conclusion to which we are compelled, both on historical and
Scriptural grounds, to come As the mystery of godliness is God
:
* The time is
greatest hope ; yea, the SOLE GROUND OF OUR HOPE 1
"
These words are words of awful import ; and woe to the man who
is found finally under the guilt which they imply. These words, as
has already been admitted by Elliott, contain a chronological
"
We
have, as it were, with our own ears heard this predicted Fall of "
Babylon announced from the high places of Rome itself, when the
"
from the temporal throne of the Roman State. Now, it is in the "f
order of the prophecy, after this fall of Babylon, that this fearful
threatening comes. Can there, then, be a doubt that this threatening
specially and peculiarly applies to this very time ? Never till now
was the real nature of the Papacy fully revealed ; never till now
was the Image of the beast set up. Till the Image of the beast
was erected, till the blasphemous decree of the Immaculate Con
ception was promulged, no such apostacy had taken place, even
in Rome, no such guilt had been contracted, as now lies at the door
of the great Babylon. This, then, is a subject of infinite importance
to every one within the pale of the Church of Rome to every one
alsowho is looking, as so many at present are doing, towards the
City of the Seven Hills. If any one can prove that the Pope does
not assume all the prerogatives and bear substantially all the
blasphemous titles of that Babylonian beast that "had the wound
by a sword, and did and if it can be shown that the Madonna,
live,"
*
The language of the late Pope Gregory, substantially indorsed by the
present Pontiff.
t The Apocalypse announces two falls of Babylon. The fall referred to above
is evidently only the first. The prophecy clearly implies, that after the first fall
it rises to a greater height than before ; and therefore the necessity of the warning.
284 CONCLUSION.
that has so recently with one consent been set up, is not in every
essential respect the same as the Chaldean
"
idolatrous."
endowed and unendowed, alike with one voice declare the very same.
They proclaim that the system of Rome is a system of blasphemous
all
says he, "what we have done for idolaters abroad, and in the end the
results will be the same ;nay, worse ; for Popish cruelty, and thirst
for the blood of the innocent, have been the most savage and merci
less that the earth has seen. Cawnpore, Delhi, and Bareilly, are
but dust in comparison with the demoniacal brutalities perpetrated
by the Inquisition, and by the armies of Popish fanaticism." f
These are the words of truth and soberness, that no man acquainted
with the history of modern Europe can dispute. There is great
danger of their being overlooked at this moment. It will be a fatal
error if they be. Let not the pregnant fact be overlooked, that,
while the Apocalyptic history runs down to the consummation of
all things, in that Divine foreshadowing all the other Paganisms of
the world are in a manner cast into the shade by the Paganism of
Papal Rome. It is against Babylon that sits on the seven hills that
the saints are forewarned ; it is for worshipping the beast and his
image pre-eminently, that the vials of the wrath of God, that liveth
"
and abideth for ever," are destined to be outpoured upon the nations.
Now, if the voice of God has been heard in the late Indian calamities,
the Protestantism of Britain will rouse itself to sweep away at once
and for ever all national support, alike from the idolatry of Hindo-
stan and the still more malignant idolatry of Rome. Then, indeed,
there would be a lengthening of our tranquillity, then there would
be hope that Britain would be exalted, and that its power would
*
First Series, p. 121.
f British Messenger, Dec., 1857.
286 CONCLUSION.
hear the
voice, if receive not correction, if we refuse to return," if we
we
persist in maintaining, at the national charge, "that image of
jealousy provoking to jealousy," then, after the repeated and ever-
INCREASING strokes that the justice of God has laid on us, we have
every reason to fear that the calamities that have fallen so heavily
upon our countrymen in India, may fall still more heavily upon
ourselves, within our own borders at home ; for it was when the "
that the Lord said, Therefore will I also deal in fury ; mine eye
"
shall not spare, neither will I have pity ; and though they cry in
mine ears with a loud voice, yet will I not hear them." He who let
loose the Sepoys, to whose idolatrous feelings and antisocial pro
pensities we have pandered so much, to punish us for the guilty
homage we had paid to their idolatry, can just as easily let loose the
Papal Powers of Europe, to take vengeance upon us for our criminal
fawning upon the Papacy.
3. But, further, if the views established in this work be correct,
it is time that the Church of God were aroused. Are the witnesses
still to be slain, and has the Image of the Beast only within the last
year or two been set up, at whose instigation the bloody work is to
be done ? Is this, then, the time for indifference, for sloth, for luke-
warmness in religion 1 Yet, alas how few are they who are lifting
!
up their voice like a trumpet, who are sounding the alarm in God s
holy mountain who are bestirring themselves according to the
greatness of the emergency to gather the embattled hosts of the
Lord to the coming conflict ? The emissaries of Eome for years
have been labouring unceasingly night and day, in season and out of
season, in every conceivable way, to advance their Master s cause,
and largely have they succeeded. But the children of light have
" "
the "
that it is ancient indeed. It can trace its lineage far beyond the
era of Christianity, back over 4000 years, to near the period of the
Flood and the building of the Tower of Babel. During all that period
its essential elements have been nearly the same, and these elements
have a peculiar adaptation to the corruption of human nature.
Most seem to think that Popery is a system merely to be scouted
and laughed at ; but the Spirit of God everywhere characterises it
in quite a different way. Every statement in the Scripture shows
that it was truly described when it was characterised as "Satan s
Masterpiece" the perfection of his policy for deluding and en
snaring the world. It is not the state-craft of politicians, the
wisdom of philosophers, or the resources of human science, that
can cope with the wiles and subtleties of the Papacy. Satan, who
inspires it, has triumphed over all these again and again. Why,
the very nations where the worship of the Queen of Heaven,
with all its attendant abominations, has flourished most in all
ages, have been precisely the most civilised, the most polished,
the most distinguished for arts and sciences. Babylon, where it
took its rise, was the cradle of astronomy. Egypt, that nursed
it in its bosom, was the mother of all the arts ; the Greek cities of
Asia Minor, where it found a refuge when expelled from Chaldea,
were famed for their poets and philosophers, among the former
Homer himself being numbered ; and the nations of the European
Continent, where literature has long been cultivated, are now pro-
288 CONCLUSION.
in its behalf but the question arises, How comes it that this system,
;
the cities of Asia Minor departed but the worship of the Queen of
;
Heaven did not wane. It took a higher flight, and seated itself on
the throne of Imperial Rome. That throne was subverted. The
Arian Goths came burning with fury against the worshippers of the
Virgin Queen ; but still that worship rose buoyant above all attempts
to put it down, and the Arian Goths themselves were soon prostrate
at the feet of the Babylonian goddess, seated in glory on the seven
hills of Rome. In more modern times, the temporal powers of
all the kingdoms of Europe have expelled the Jesuits, the chief
coming of the Man of Sin is with the energy, the mighty power
"
"
of Satan." Now, is this the system that, year by year, has been
rising into power in our own empire 1 And is it for a moment to be
imagined that lukewarm, temporising, half-hearted Protestants can
make any head against such a system ? No ; the time is come when
Gideon s proclamation must be made throughout the camp of the
Lord : Whosoever is fearful and afraid, let him return and depart
"
shall quietly
consent to resign the power that for thousands of years he has
wielded, without stirring upall his wrath, and putting forth all his
But
testimony
it is not common grace that will do for uncommon times. If there
be indeed such prospects before us, as I have endeavoured to prove
there are, then we must live, and feel, and act as if we heard every
day resounding in our ears the words of the great Captain of our
Salvation, To him that overcometh will I grant to sit with Me
"
could it ever have entered into the heart of John, the solitary exile
of Patmos, to imagine, tuat any of the professed disciples of that
Saviour whom
he loved, and who said, My kingdom is not of this "
world,"
should gather up and systematise all the idolatry and super
stition and immorality of the Babylon of Belshazzar, introduce it
into the bosom of the Church, and, by help of it, seat themselves
on the throne of the Csesars, and there, as the high-priests of the
Queen of for 1200 years, rule the
Heaven, and gods upon earth,
nations with a rod of Human
foresight could never have
iron 1
done this ; but all this the exile of Patmos has done. His pen, then,
must have been guided by Him
who sees the end from the beginning,
and who calleth the things that be not as though they were. And
if the wisdom of God now shines forth so brightly from the Divine
infallible Word, will ever find that he walketh surely," and that
"
offend them."
APPENDIX.
NOTE A, p. 6.
Phidias," says he, made a statue of Nemesis ; and on the head of the
"
cup but the meaning of the ^Ethiopians and the stags too will be apparent
;
to all who read pp. 48, 49, and 50, &c., ante. We find, however, from
statements made in the same chapter, that though Nemesis is commonly
represented as the goddess of revenge, she must have been also known in
quite a different character. Thus Pausanias proceeds, commenting on the
statue "But neither has this statue of the
:
goddess wings. Among the
Smyrneans, however, who possess the most holy images of Nemesis, I
perceived afterwards that these statues had wings. For, as this goddess
principally pertains to lovers, on this account they may be supposed to have
given wings to Nemesis, as well as to love," i.e., Cupid. (Ibid.) The
giving of wings to Nemesis, the goddess who "principally pertained to
lovers," because Cupid, the god of love, bore them, implies that, in the
first erected in the form of Venus, and therefore bore also the branch of an
apple tree." (PHOTII, Lexicon, pars. ii. p. 482.) Though a goddess of love
and a goddess of revenge might seem very remote in their characters from
one another, yet it is not difficult to see how this must have come about.
The goddess who was revealed to the initiated in the Mysteries, in the
most alluring manner, was also known to be most unmerciful and
unrelenting in taking vengeance upon those who revealed these Mysteries ;
for every such one who was discovered was unsparingly put to death.
(POTTER S Antiquities, vol. i., Eleusinia," p. 354.) Thus, then, the cup-
"
291
292 APPENDIX.
NOTE B, p. 6.
Hebrew Chronology.
Dr. Hales has attempted to substitute the longer chronology of the
Septuagint tor the Hebrew chronology. But this implies that the* Hebrew
Church, as a body, was not faithful to the trust committed to it in respect
to the keeping of the Scriptures, which seems distinctly opposed to the
testimony of our Lord in reference to these Scriptures (John v. 39 x. 35), ;
and also to that of Paul (Rom. iii. 2), where there is not the least hint of
unfaithfulness. Then we can find a reason that might induce the
translators of the Septuagint in Alexandria to lengthen out the period of the
ancient history of the world we can find no reason to induce the Jews in
;
Palestine to shorten it. The Egyptians had long, fabulous eras in their
history, and Jews dwelling in Egypt might wish to make their sacred
history go as far back as they could, and the addition of just one hundred
years in each case, as in the Septuagint, to the ages of the patriarchs, looks
wonderfully like an intentional forgery ; whereas we cannot imagine why
the Palestine Jews should make any change in regard to this matter at all.
It is well known that the Septuagint contains innumerable gross errors and
interpolations.
Bunsen casts overboard all Scriptural chronology whatever, whether
Hebrew, Samaritan, or Greek, and sets up the unsupported dynasties of
Manetho, as if they were sufficient to over-ride the Divine word as to a
question of historical fact. But, if the Scriptures are not historically true,
we can have no assurance of their truth at all. Now it is worthy of
notice that, though Herodotus vouches for the fact that at one time there
were no fewer than twelve contemporaneous kings in Egypt, Manetho, as
observed by Wilkinson (vol. i. p. 148), has made no allusion to this, but
has made his Thinite, Memphite, and Diospolitan dynasties of kings, and
a long etcetera of other dynasties, all successive !
The period over which the dynasties of Manetho extend, beginning with
Menee, the first king of these dynasties, is in itself a very lengthened
period, and surpassing all rational belief. But Bunsen, not content with
this, expresses his very confident persuasion that there had been long lines
of powerful monarchs in Upper and Lower Egypt, during a period of
"
from two to four thousand years (vol. i. p. 72), even before the reign of
"
Upper
"
and Lower Egypt (Ibid. p. 73), which had previously existed as separate
"
kingdoms, the name Misrim, according to him, being a plural word. This
derivation of the name Mizraim, or Misrim, as a plural word, infallibly
leaves the impression that Mizraim, the son of Ham, must be only a
mythical personage. But there is no real reason for thinking that Mizraim
is a plural word, or that it became the name of the land of Ham," from
"
any other reason than because that land was also the land of s son. Ham
Mizraim, as it stands in the Hebrew of Genesis, without the points, is
Metzrim and Metzr-iin signifies The encloser or embanker of the sea
;
"
"
(the word being derived from Jm, the same as Yam, the sea," and Tzr, "
"
M
to enclose," with the formative prefixed).
If the accounts which ancient history has handed down to us of the
original state of Egypt be correct, the first man who formed a settlement
there must have done the very thing implied in this name. Diodorug
Siculus tells us that, in primitive times, that which, when he wrote, was "
APPENDIX. 293
)t, have been not a country, but one universal sea" (DiOD.,
was said to
libl Plutarch also says (De Iside, vol. ii. p. 367) that Egypt
"hi.
p. 106.)
was sea. From Herodotus, too, we have very striking evidence to the same
effect. He excepts the province of Thebes from his statement but when ;
testimony of
"
Cyclopedia, p. 598, ;
formerly
washed the foot of the sandy mountains of the Lybian chain." Now,
before Egypt could be fit for being a suitable place for human abode
before it could become what it afterwards did become, one of the most
fertile of all lands, it was indispensable that bounds should be set to the
overflowings of the sea (for by the very name of the Ocean, or Sea, the Nile
was anciently called, DIODORUS, lib. i. p. 8), and that for this purpose
great embankments should enclose or confine its waters. If s son, then, Ham
led a colony into Lower Egypt and settled it there, this very work he
must have done. And what more natural than that a name should be
given him in memory of his great achievement ? and what name so exactly
descriptive as Metzr-im, "The embanker of the or as the name is sea,"
found at this day applied to all Egypt (WILKINSON, vol. i. p. 2), Musr or
Misr ? Names always tend^to abbreviation in the mouths of a people, and,
therefore, The land of Misr is evidently just The land of the embanker."
" " "
From this statement it follows that the "embanking of the sea" the
enclosing of it within certain bounds, was the making of it as a river, so
" "
far as lower Egypt was concerned. Viewing the matter in this light, what
a meaning is there in the Divine language in Ezekiel xxix. 3, where
judgments are denounced against the king of Egypt, the representative of
The embanker of the for his pride Behold, I am
" "
Metzr-im, sea,"
:
against thee, Pharaoh, king of Egypt, the great dragon that lieth in the
midst of his rivers, which saith, My river is mine own, I have made it for
myself."
When we turn to what is recorded of the doings of Menes, who, by
Herodotus, Manetho, and Diodorus alike, is made the first historical king
of Egypt, and compare what is said of him, with this simple explanation of
the meaning of the name of Mizraim, how does the one cast light on the
other ? Thus does Wilkinson describle the great work which entailed fame
on Meues, who," says he, is allowed by universal consent to have been
" "
the first sovereign of the country." Having diverted the course of the
"
Nile, which formerly washed the foot of the sandy mountains of the Lybian
chain, he obliged it to run in the centre of the valley, nearly at an equal
distance between the two parallel ridges of mountains which border it on
the east and west ; and built the city of Memphis in the bed of the
ancient channel. This change was effected by constructing a dyke about a
hundred stadia above the site of the projected city, whose lofty mounds
and strong EMBANKMENTS turned the water to the eastward, and effectually
CONFINED the river to its new bed. The dyke was carefully kept in
~
The same view of the extent of Mizraim is taken by the Rev. II. JAMIESON in PAXTON S
Illustrations of Scripture, vol. i. p. 198 and in Krrro s Illustrated Comment., vol. iv. p. 110.
;
294 APPENDIX.
period of from two to four thousand years before the reign of Menes, by
"
which all Scriptural chronology respecting Noah and his sons was to be
upset, when it turns out that Menes must have been Mizraim, the grandson
of Noah himself ? Thus does Scripture contain, within its own bosom, the
means of vindicating itself ; and thus do its minutest statements, even in
regard to matters of fact, when thoroughly understood, shed surprising
light on the dark parts of the history of the world.
NOTE C, p. 21.
to believe that Shing Moo signifies the same for Mu was one of the forms ;
in which Mut or Maut, the name of the great mother, appeared in Egypt
(BUNSEN S Vocabulary, vol. i. p. 471) and Shngh, in Chaldee, signifies ;
the vulture s eye hath not seen (Job xxviii. 7). The vulture was noted "
for its sharp sight, and hence, the eye surrounded by the vulture s wings
showed that, for some reason or other, the great mother of the gods in
Egypt had been known as The gazer." But the idea contained in the
"
Egyptian symbol had evidently been borrowed from Chaldea for Rheia, ;
one of the most noted names of the Babylonian mother of the gods, is just
the Chaldee form of the Hebrew Rhaah, which signifies at once a gazing "
Itwas no doubt to indicate the same thing that, as the Egyptian Maut
wore a vulture on her head, so the Athenian Minerva was represented as
wearing a helmet with two eyes, or eye-holes, in the front of the helmet.
(VAUX S Antiquities, p. 186.)
Having thus traced the gazing mother over the earth, is it asked, What
can have given origin to such a name as applied to the mother of the gods ?
APPENDIX. 295
gods"
from "Hypsistos," The Most High,* we naturally recall what Hesiod
says in regard to his Kronos, the father of the gods, who, for a certain
wicked deed, was called Titan, and cast down to hell. (Theogonia, 1. 207,
p. 18.) The Kronos to whom Hesiod refers is evidently at bottom a
different Kronos from the human father of the gods, or Nimrod, whose
history occupies so large a place in this work. He is plainly none other
than Satan himself the name Titan, or Teitan, as it is sometimes given,
;
being, as we have elsewhere concluded (pp. 275, 276), only the Chaldee
form of Sheitan, the common name of the grand Adversary among the
Arabs, in the very region where the Chaldean Mysteries were originally
concocted, that Adversary who was ultimately the real father of all the
Pagan gods, and who (to make the title of Kronos, "the Horned One,"
appropriate to him also) was symbolised by the Kerastes, or Horned
serpent. All the brethren of this father of the gods, who were
" "
implicated in his rebellion against his own father, the God of Heaven," "
whose common title is that of the Mother of the gods, and who is also
identified with Ge, or the Earth-goddess, had the child called Muth, or
Death, who could this Mother of the gods be, but just our Mother Eve ?
" "
by Satan, and brought forth that deadly birth, under which the world has
hitherto groaned. It was through her eyes that the fatal connection was
first formed between her and the grand Adversary, under the form of a
to gaze "
:
"
(Gen. iii. 6) And when the woman saw? that the tree was good for food,
"
and pleasant to the &c., she took of the fruit thereof, and did eat
eyes,"
"
and gave also unto her husband with her, and he did Here, then, we eat."
have the pedigree of sin and death Lust, when it had conceived, brought
"
forth sin and sin, when it was finished, brought forth death (James i. 15).
;
"
Though Muth, or Death, was the son of Rhea, this progeny of hers came to
be regarded, not as Death in the abstract, but as the god of death there ;
fore, says Philo-Byblius, Muth was interpreted not only as death, but as
Pluto. (SANCHUN., p. 24.) In the Roman mythology, Pluto was regarded
as on a level, for honour, with Jupiter (OviD, Fasti, lib. vii. 578) and in ;
Egypt, we have evidence that Osiris, the seed of the woman," was the
"
supposed to have become incarnate ; who, though through the first trans
gression, and his connection with the woman, he had brought sin and
death into the world, had, nevertheless, by means of them, brought
innumerable benefits to mankind. As the name Pluto has the very same
meaning as Saturn, The hidden one," so, whatever other aspect this name
"
had, as applied to the father of the gods, it is to Satan, the Hidden Lord of
hell, ultimately that all came at last to be traced back ; for the different
myths about Saturn, when carefully examined, show that he was at once
the Devil, the father of all sin and idolatry, who hid himself under the
disguise of the serpent, and Adam, who hid himself among the trees of
the garden, and Noah, who lay hid for a whole year in the ark, and
Nimrod, who was hid in the secrecy of the Babylonian Mysteries. It was
to glorify Nimrod that the whole Chaldean system of iniquity was formed.
He was known as Nin, "the son," and his wife as Ehea, who was called
Arnmas, The Mother." The name Rhea, as applied to Semiramis, had
"
another meaning from what it had when applied to her, who was really the
primeval goddess, the "mother of gods and men." But yet, to make out
the full majesty of her character, it was necessary that she should be
identified with that primeval goddess ; and, therefore, although the son she
bore in her arms was represented as he who was born to destroy death, yet
she was often represented with the very symbols of her who brought death
into the world. And so was it also in the different countries where the
Babylonian system spread.
NOTE D, p. 32.
Ala-Mahozim.
The name Ala-Mahozim is never, so far as I know, found in any
" "
travelling about the habitable world," is said to have found a star falling
"
through the air, which she took up and consecrated in the holy island
Tyre." Now what is this story of the falling star but just another version
of the fall of Mulciber from heaven (see ante, p. 233), or of Nimrod from
his high estate ? for as we have already seen, Macrobius shows (Saturn.,
lib. i., cap. 21, p. 70) that the story of Adonis the lamented one so
favourite a theme in Phenicia, originally came from Assyria. The name
of the great god in the holy island of Tyre, as is well known, was Melkart
(KiTTo s Illus. Comm-ent., vol. ii. p. 300), but this name, as brought from
Tyre to Carthage, and from thence to Malta (which was colonised from
Carthage), where it is found on a monument at this day, casts no little
light on the subject. The name Melkart is thought by some to have been
derived from Melek-eretz, or "king of the earth" (WILKINSON, vol. v.
p. 18) ; but the way in which it is sculptured in Malta shows that it was
king of the walled city." (See WILKINSON S Errata
"
really Melek-kart,
prefixed to vol. v.) Kir, the same as the Welsh Caer, found in Caer-narvon,
an encompassing wall," or a city completely walled
" "
&c., signifies
round and Kart was the feminine form of the same word, as may be
;"
Melk-kart, then,
walled city, conveys the very same idea as Ala-Mahozim. In GRUTER S
5
"
Malacse Hispanise
MARTI CIRADINO
Templum communi voto
Erectum."
also Aden. Now, with this clue to guide us, we can unravel at once what
has hitherto greatly puzzled mythologists in regard to the name of Mars
Quirinus as distinguished from Mars Gradivus. The in Kir is what in K
Hebrew or Chaldee is called Koph, a different letter from Kape, and is
frequently pronounced as a Q. Quir-inus, therefore, signifies
"
belonging
to the walled city," and refers to the security which was given to cities by
encompassing walls. Gradivus, on the other hand, comes from "Grah,"
"conflict, and "divus," a different form of Deus, which has been
"god,"
NOTE E, p. 42.
for, even though it could be derived from words that signify "Bull-killers"
(and the derivation itself is but lame), such a meaning casts no light at all
on the history of the Centaurs. Take it as a Chaldee word, and it will be
seen at once that the whole history of the primitive Kentaurus entirely
agrees with the history of Nimrod, with whom we have already identified
him. Kentaurus is evidently derived from Kehn, priest,"
and Tor, "a
is, of the sun, which, to appearance, makes a daily revolution round the
earth. The name for a priest, as written, is just Khn, and the vowel is
supplied according to the different dialects of those who pronounce it, so
as to make it either Kohn, Kahn, or Kehn. Tor, the revolver," as applied "
to the sun, is evidently just another name for the Greek Zen or Zan applied
to Jupiter, as identified with the snn, which signifies the "Eiicircler" or
"
Encompasser," the very word from which comes our own word "Sun,"
298 APPENDIX.
Chaldee becomes Don or Dawon, and thus we penetrate the meaning of the
name given by the Boeotians to the Mighty hunter," Orion. That name "
Bceotians call also Kandaon." Kahn-daon, then, and Kehn-tor, were just
different names for the same office the one meaning Priest of the
"
(Des
Sciences, Appendix, p. 483). Let this only admitted to be the case here "be
let only the name of Ixion be removed, and it will be seen that all that
is said of the father of the Centaurs, or Horsemen-archers, applies exactly
to Nimrod, as represented by the different myths that refer to the first
progenitor of these Centaurs. First, then, Centaurus is represented as
having been taken up to heaven (DYMOCK, sub voce Ixion that is, as "
"),
having been highly exalted through special favour of heaven ; then, in that
state of exaltation, he is said to have fallen in love with Nephele, who
passed under the name of Juno, the Queen of Heaven." The story here is
"
is from that fallen woman," therefore, that the Centaurs are really said to
"
have sprung. Now, the story of Nimrod, as Ninus, is, that he fell in love
with Semiramis when she was another man s wife, and took her for his
own wife, whereby she became doubly fallen fallen as a woman* and
fallen from the primitive faith in which she must have been brought up ;
and it is well known that this fallen woman was, under the name of
" "
Juno, or the Dove, after her death, worshipped among the Babylonians.
Centaurus, for his presumption and pride, was smitten with lightning by
the supreme God, and cast down to hell (DYMOCK, sub voce Ixion This,
"
").
as denoting the Priest of the revolving sun." To the worship of the sun
"
only in the circle which, among the Pagans, was the emblem of the sun-
god, and the blazing wheel with which he was so frequently represented
(WiLSON s Parsi Religion, p. 31), "but in the circular dances of the Bac
chanalians. Hence the phrase, "Bassaridum rotator Evan" "The wheel
ing Evan of the Bacchantes" (STATIUS, Sylv., lib. ii., s. 7, v. 7, p. 118).
Hence, also, the circular dances of the Druids as referred to in the
following quotation from a Druidic song Ruddy was the sea beach
"
whilst the circular revolution was performed by the attendants and the
white bands in graceful extravagance" (DAVIES S Druids, p. 172). That
this circular dance among the Pagan idolators really had reference to the
circuit of the sun, we find from the distinct statement of Lucian in his
treatise On Dancing, where, speaking of the circular dance of the ancient
Eastern nations, he says, with express reference to the sun-god, consisted "it
in a dance imitating this god (LuciAN, vol. ii. p. 278). We see then,
"
here, a very specific reason for the circular dance of the Baccha3, and for
the ever-revolving wheel of the great Centaurus in the infernal regions.
NOTE F, p. 72.
parent Adam. Now, of Saturn it is said that he devoured all his children.*
In the exoteric story, among those who knew not the actual fact referred to,
this naturally appeared in the myth, in the shape in which we commonly
find it viz., that he devoured them all as soon as they were born. But
that which was really couched under the statement, in regard to his
devouring his children, was just the Scriptural fact of the Fall viz., that
he destroyed them by eating not by eating them, but by eating the forbidden
fruit. When this was the sad and dismal state of matters, the Pagan story
goes on to say that the destruction of the children of the father of gods and
men was arrested by means of his wife, Rhea. Rhea, as we have already
seen, had really as much to do with the devouring of Saturn s children, as
Saturn himself but, in the progress of idolatry and apostacy, Rhea, or
;
Eve, came to get glory at Saturn s expense. Saturn, or Adam, was repre
sented as a morose divinity Rhea, or Eve, exceedingly benignant and, in ; * ;
bearing eon." This does not necessarily mean that Eve, or the mother of
mankind, herself actually brought forth the promised seed (although there
are many myths also to that effect), but that, having received the glad
tidings herself, and embraced it, she presented it to her husband, who
received it by faith from her, and that this laid the foundation of his own
salvation and that of his posterity. The devouring on the part of Saturn
*
Sometimes he is said to have devoured only his male children but see SMITH S (Larger) ;
Clc.ssicaJ- Dictionary, sub voce "Hera," where it will be found that the female as well as the
male were devoured.
t HESIOD, ThKogonia, 11. 485, pp. 38-41.
<fec.,
for the act of faith, both in the Old Testament and in the New, is symbol
ised by eating. Thus Jeremiah says, "Thy words were found of me, and I
did eat them, and Thy word was unto me the joy and rejoicing of my
heart"
(Jer. xv. 16). This also is strongly shown by our Lord Jesus
Christ Himself, who, while setting before the Jews the indispensable
necessity of eating His flesh, and feeding on Him, did at the same time say :
that I speak unto you, they are spirit, and they are life
"
called his wife s name Eve, because she was the mother of all living ones
"
taken to anoint it daily with oil, and to cover it with wool" (MAURICE S
Indian Antiquities, vol. ii. p. 348). If this stone symbolised the "sin-
bearing son," it of course symbolised also the Lamb of God, slain from the
foundation of the world, in whose symbolic covering our first parents were
invested when God clothed them in the coats of skins. Therefore, though
represented to the eye as a stone, he must have the appropriate covering of
wool. When represented as a branch, the branch of God, the branch also
was wrapped in wool ( POTTER, vol. i., Eeligion of Greece, chap. v. p.
208). The daily anointing with oil is very significant. If the stone repre
sented the "sin-bearing son," what could the anointing of that "sin-bearing
son"
daily with oil mean, but just to point him out as the "Lord s
Anointed," or the "Messiah," whom the idolaters worshipped in opposition
to the true Messiah yet to be revealed ?
One of the names by which this swaddled and anointed stone was called
is very strikingly confirmatory of the above conclusion. That name is
Baitulos. This we find from Priscian (lib. v., vol. i. p. 180, Note, and
lib. vi., vol. i. p. 249), who, speaking of that stone which Saturn is said "
to have devoured for Jupiter," adds, quern Greed BaiTvXov vacant," whom "
Baitulos."
* The father of
restoring child."
gods and men had destroyed his children
by eating but the reception of the swaddled stone is said to have
" "
life"
what is said in Sanchuniathon (lib. i., cap. 6, p. 22) about the Baithulia
made by the Phenician god Ouranos It was the god Ouranos who
"
Now, there is a great analogy between this swaddled stone that repre
sented the "sin-bearing son," and that Olenos mentioned by Ovid, who
took on him guilt not his own, and in consequence was changed into
* From STOCKII, Chald., p. 1342), and Hia, or
"
prefixed, comes the Greek Bios, life. That Hia, when adopted into Greek, was also pro
nounced Haya, we have evidence in the noun Hiiro, pronounced Hayyim, which in "life,"
Greek is represented by at/ma, "blood." The Mosaic principle, that the blood was the "
life,"
is thus proved to have been known by others besides the Jews. Now Haya, live or "to
restore with the digamma prefixed, becomes B haya and so in Egypt, we find that Bai
life," ;
signified or (BUNSEN,
"soul,"
vol. i. p. 375),
"spirit"
which is the living principle. B hai-
Life-restoring child." F haya-n is the same god.
"
a stone. We
have seen already that Olenos, when changed into a stone,
was set up in Phrygia on the holy mountain of Ida. have reason to We
believe that the stone which was fabled to have done so much for the
children of Saturn, and was set up near the temple of Delphi, was just
a representation of this same Olenos. We find that Olen was the first
prophet at Delphi, who founded the first temple there (PAUSANIAS, lib. x.,
Phocica, cap. 5, p. 321). As the prophets and priests generally bore the
names of the gods whom they represented (Hesychius expressly tells us
that the priest who represented the great god under the name of the
branch in the Mysteries was himself called by the name of Bacchus,
p. 179), this indicates one of the ancient names of the god
of Delphi.
If, then, there was a sacred stone on Mount Ida called the stone
of Olenos,
and a sacred stone in the precincts of the temple of Delphi, which Olen
founded, can there be a doubt that the sacred stone of Delphi represented
the same as was represented by the sacred stone of Ida 1 The swaddled
stone set up at Delphi is expressly called
Fig. 60.
by Priscian, in the place already cited, a
"
god."
This god, then, that in symbol was
divinely anointed, and was celebrated as
having restored to life the children of
Saturn, father of gods and men, as identified
with the Ida3an Olenos, is proved to have
been regarded as occupying the very place
of the Messiah, the great Sin-bearer, who
came to bear the sins of men, and took
their place and suffered in their room and
stead for Olenos, as we have seen, volun
;
Spes
Divina," or Divine hope, we see the foundation of this divine hope held
out to the world in the representation of the swaddled stone at her right
hand, bound with four different swathes. In DAVID S Antiquites Etrusques,
vol. iv. plate 27, we find a goddess represented with Pandora s box, the
source of all ill, in her extended hand, and the swaddled globe depending
from it ;
and in this case that globe has only two bandages, the one
crossing the other. And what is this bandaged globe of Paganism but just
the counterpart of that globe, with a band around it, and the mystic
Tau or cross, on the top of it, that is called the type of dominion," arid
"
of that very God whom the swaddled stone represented ; and that when
that God was born, it was said, The Lord of all the earth is born " "
that while some were dedicated to Jupiter, and others to the sun,"
"
the Father of the gods (MAURICE, vol. ii. p. 348), and that Rome, in
consequence, has put the round stone into the hand of the image, bearing
the profaned name of God the Father attached to it, and that from this
source the bandaged globe, surmounted with the mark of Tammuz, has
become the symbol of dominion throughout all Papal Europe.
NOTE G, p. 75.
the multiform divinities with which the Pagan world abounded, whatever
diversities there were among them, were resolved substantially into so
many manifestations of one or other of these divine persons, or rather of
two, for the first person was generally in the background. We have distinct
evidence that this was the case. Apuleius tells us (vol. i. pp. 995, 996),
that when he was initiated, the goddess Isis revealed herself to him as
The first of the celestials, and the uniform manifestation of the gods and
"
goddesses .... WHOSE ONE SOLE DIVINITY the whole orb of the earth
venerated, and under a manifold form, with different rites, and under
a variety of appellations and going over many of these appellations, she
;
"
(Ibid. p. 997).
case in the later ages of the Mysteries, so it must have been the case from
the very beginning because they SET OUT, and necessarily set out, with
;
the doctrine of the UNITY of the Godhead. This, of course, would give
rise to no little absurdity and inconsistency in the very nature of the case.
Both Wilkinson and Bunsen, to get rid of the inconsistencies they have
met with in the Egyptian system, have found it necessary to have recourse
to substantially the same explanation as I have done. Thus we find
Wilkinson saying I have stated that Amun-re and other gods took the
"
effect, :
Upon
justified in concluding that the two series of gods were originally identical,
and that, in the GREAT PAIR of gods, all these attributes were concentrated,
APPENDIX. 303
the waters."
"
The
Dove," or Khubele,
The binder with cords," which last title had
"
reference to "
Khubeli Adam
"
providential goodness, draw men unto Himself, but with which our
first
of Eden
parent Adam, through the Spirit s indwelling, while the covenant
was unbroken, was sweetly bound to God. This theme is minutely dwelt
on in Pagan story, and the evidence is very abundant but I cannot enter ;
Fig. 61.
upon it here. Let this only be noticed, however, that the Eomans joined
the two terms Juno and Khubele or, as it is commonly pronounced,
Cybele together and on certain occasions invoked their supreme goddess,
;
accompanying woodcut (Fig. 61), from BRYANT, vol. ii. p. 216 and KITTO S ;
to travail in birth
"
Mother "
of the gods," by whom all God s children must be born anew or regenerated.
But, for this purpose, it was held indispensable that there should be a
union in the first instance with Rheia, The gazer," the human mother " "
304 APPENDIX.
of gods and men," that the ruin she had introduced might be remedied.
Hence the identification of Cybele and Rheia, which in all the Pantheons
are declared to be only two different names of the same goddess (see
LEMPRIERE S Classical Dictionary, sub voce), though, as we have seen, these
goddesses were in reality entirely distinct. This same principle was applied
to all the other deified mothers. They were deified only through the
supposed miraculous identification with them of Juno or Cybele in other
words, of the Holy Spirit of God. Each of these mothers had her own
legend, and had special worship suited thereto ; but, as in all cases, she
was held to be an incarnation of the one Spirit of God, as the great Mother
of all, the attributes of that one Spirit were always pre-supposed as
belonging to her. This, then, was the case with the goddess recognised
as Astarte or Venus, as well as with Rhea. Though there were points
of difference between Cybele or Rhea, and Astarte or Mylitta, the Assyrian
Venus, Layard shows that there were also distinct points of contact
between them. Cybele or Rhea was remarkable for her turreted crown.
Mylitta, or Astarte, was represented with a similar crown (LAYARD S
Nineveh, vol. ii. p. 456). Cybele, or Rhea, was drawn by lions ; Mylitta,
or Astarte, was represented as standing on a lion (Ibid.}. The worship of
Mylitta, or Astarte, was a mass of moral pollution (HERODOT., lib. i.
cap. 199, p. 92). The worship of Cybele, under the name of Terra,
was the same (AUGUSTINE, De Civitate, lib. vi. cap. 8, torn, ix.,
p. 203).
The first deified woman was no doubt
Semiramis, as the first deified man
was her husband. But
evident that it was some time after the
it is
Mysteries began that this deification took place ; for it was not till after
Semiramis was dead that she was exalted to divinity, and worshipped under
the form of a dove. When, however, the Mysteries were originally
concocted, the deeds of Eve, who, through her connection with the serpent,
brought forth death, must necessarily have occupied a place for the ;
Mystery of sin and death lies at the very foundation of all religion, and in
the age of Semiramis and Nimrod, and Shern and Ham, all men must have
been well acquainted with the facts of the Fall. At first the sin of Eve may
have been admitted in all its sinfulness (otherwise men generally would
have been shocked, especially when the general conscience had been
quickened through the zeal of Shem) but when a woman was to be deified,
;
the shape that the mystic story came to assume shows that that sin was
softened, yea, that it changed its very character, and that by a perversion
of the name given to Eve, as the mother of all living ones," that is, all
"
the regenerate (see Note I), she was glorified as the authoress of spiritual
life, and, under the very name Rhea, was recognised as the mother of the
gods. Now, those who had the working of the Mystery of Iniquity did not
find it very difficult to show that this name Rhea, originally appropriate
to the mother of mankind, was hardly less appropriate for her who was the
actual mother of the gods, that is, of all the deified mortals. Rhea, in the
active sense, signifies the Gazing woman," but in the passive it signifies
"
the same term, the mother of mankind and the mother of the Pagan gods,
that is, Semiramis, were amalgamated insomuch, that now, as is well
;
*
In Esther ii. 9, we find the plural of Rhea evidently used in the sense of "beautiful." As
applied to the "maidens" given to Esther, the Vulgate renders it speciositsimas," and
"
NOTE H, p. 77.
The Virgin Mother of Paganism.
"Almost all the Tartar princes," says Salverte (Des Sciences Occultes,
Appendix, Note A, sect. xii. p. 490), trace their genealogy to a celestial
"
refers (Odyssey, lib. v. 11. 120, 121). While the name Aur-ora, in the
physical sense, signifies also pregnant with light and from ohra," to"
;"
" "
conceive or be "
pregnant,"
we have in Greek, the word oap for a wife.
"
the name of Ninus, was worshipped as the son of his wife, when he came to
be deified as the sun-god, that name Aurora, as applied to his wife, is
evidently intended to convey the very same idea as prevails in Tai tary and
India. These myths of the Tartars and Hindoos clearly prove that the
Pagan idea of the miraculous conception had not come from any inter
mixture of Christianity with their superstition, but directly from the
promise of the seed of the woman." But how, it may be asked, could the
"
prompting of a designing priesthood, men would slide into the idea of zuro,
the seed,"
"
Paganism, being thus identified. This was manifestly the case in Persia,
where the sun was the great divinity for the ;
Ck
Persians," says Maurice,
"called God Sure"
(Antiquities, vol. v. p. 22).
NOTE I, p. 77.
a deep sleep to fall upon Adam, and he slept, and he took one of his ribs,
and closed up the flesh instead thereof. And the rib which the Lord God
had taken from man, made (margin, literally BUILDED) he into a woman."
That this history of the rib was well known to the Babylonians, is manifest
from one of the names given to their primeval goddess, as found in Berosus
(lib. i. p. 50). That name is Thalatth. But Thalatth is just the Chaldean
form of the Hebrew Tzalaa, in the feminine, the very word used in
Genesis for the rib, of which Eve was formed and the other name which ;
Berosus couples with Thalatth, does much to confirm this for that name, ;
which is Omorka,* just signifies The Mother of the world." W hen we " 7
arka" "earth."
words is often pronounced as o. Thus the pronunciation of a in Am, mother," is seen in the
"
pronounced ora, comes w/xos, the shoulder that bears burdens. Hence also the name Oma, as
one of the names of Bona Dea. Oma is evidently the Mother." See Note K. "
X
306 APPENDIX.
signifies
Thalatthius or Thalasius, the man of the rib." And what name more
"
appropriate than this for Adam, as the god of marriage, who, when the
rib was brought to him, said, This is now bone of my bones, and flesh
"
of my flesh she shall be called Woman, because she was taken out of
:
man." At first, when Thalatth, the rib, was builded into a woman, that
woman" was, in a very important sense, the Habitation" or
" " "
Temple
of God and had not the Fall intervened, all her children would, in
"
of mankind, was identified with Cybele the binder with cords," or Juno,
"
the Dove," that is, the Holy Spirit. Then, in the blasphemous Pagan
"
Godhead bodily." Thus she became Heva, "The Living One not in the ;
"
sense in which Adam gave that name to his wife after the Fall, when the
hope of life out of the midst of death was so unexpectedly presented
to her as well as to himself but in the sense of the communicator of
;
spiritual and eternal life to men ; for Rhea was called the "fountain of the
blessed ones." f The agency, then, of this deified woman was held to be
indispensable for the begetting of spiritual children to God, in this, as
it was admitted, fallen world. Looked at from this point of view, the
meaning of the name given to the Babylonian goddess in 2 Kings xvii. 30,
will be at once apparent. The name Succoth-benoth has very frequently
been supposed to be a plural word, and to refer to booths or tabernacles
used in Babylon for infamous purposes. But, as observed by Clericus
(lib. i. De Chaldceis, sect. 2, cap. 37), who refers to the Rabbins as being
of the same opinion, the context clearly shows that the name must be the
name of an idol (ver. 29, 30), Howbeit every nation made gods of their
:
"
own, and put them in the houses of the high places which the Samaritans
had made, every nation in their cities wherein they dwelt. And the men
of Babylon made Succoth-benoth." It is here evidently an idol that is
spoken of ; and as the name is feminine, that idol must have been the
image of a goddess. Taken in this sense, then, and in the light of the
Chaldean system as now unfolded, the meaning of Succoth-benoth," as
"
ing."
When the Babylonian system was developed, Eve was represented as
the that occupied this place, and the very name Benoth, that signifies
first
child-bearing,"
as Hestia or Vesta, was herself called the Habitation," got the credit of
"
"having invented the art of building houses" (SMITH, sub voce "Hestia").
*
CATULLUS, Epithalamium, p. 98.
t Orphic Fragment, in BRYANT, vol. iii. p. 238.
J That is, the Habitation in which the Spirit of God dwelt, for the purpose of begetting
spiritual children.
APPENDIX. 307
phorically regarded as the "building up of the house," that is, of the family.
While the Pagan system, so far as a Goddess-mother was concerned, was
founded on this identification of the Celestial and Terrestrial mothers of the
"blessed"
immortals, each of these two divinities was still celebrated as
having, in some sense, a distinct individuality and, in consequence, all
;
at Rome, in like manner, the Triad was Juno, Minerva, and Jupiter while, ;
is stated both
by Dionysius Halicarnassius and by Livy, that soon after the
expulsion of the Tarquins, there was at Rome a temple in which were wor
shipped Ceres, Liber, and Libera (DiON. HALICARN., vol. i.
pp. 25, 26 ;
and
LIVY, vol. i. p. 233).
NOTE J, p. 110.
goddess"
was Astarte (LAYARD S Nineveh and its Remains, vol. ii. p. 456).
Now, the Assyrian goddess, or Astarte, is identified with Semiramis by
Athenagoras (Legatio, vol. ii. p. 179), and by Lucian (De Dea Syria, vol.
iii. p. 382). These testimonies in regard to Astarte, or the Syrian goddess,
being, in one aspect, Semiramis, are quite decisive. 1. The name Astarte,
as applied to her, has reference to her as being Rhea, or Cybele, the tower-
bearing goddess, the first, as Ovid says (Opera, vol. iii., Fasti, lib, iv. 11. 219,
220), that made (towers) in cities
"
above referred to, that in the Syrian temple of Hierapolis, she [Dea Syria "
woman that made towers." It is admitted on all hands that the last
syllable
"
tart comes from the Hebrew verb Tr." It has been always
" "
taken for granted, however, that "Tr" signifies only "to go round." But
we have evidence that, in nouns derived from it, it also signifies "to be
round," "to surround," or "encompass." In the masculine, we find "Tor"
used for a border or row of jewels round the head" (see PARKHURST, sub
"
voce No. ii., and also GESENIUS). And in the feminine, as given in
Hesychius (Lexicon, p. 925), we find the meaning much more decisively
brought out Tvpis 6 TreptjSoXos TOV reixovs. Turis is just the Greek form of
:
Turit, the final t, according to the genius of the Greek language, being con
verted into s. Ash-turit, then, which is obviously the same as the Hebrew
"Asbtoreth,"
is just "The woman that made the encompassing wall"
of the battle [near Pydna] reached Amphipolis, the matrons ran together to
the temple of Diana, whom they style Tauropolos, to implore her aid."
Tauropolos, from Tor, tower," or "surrounding fortification," and Pol,
"a
ante}, was evidently intended, when the distinction of sex had been blas
phemously attributed to the Godhead, to identify her, under the name of the
Mother of the gods, with that Divine Spirit, without whose agency no one
can be born a child of God, and whose emblem, in the symbolical language
of Scripture, was the Dove, as that of the Messiah was the Lamb. Since
the Spirit of God is the source of all wisdom, natural as well as spiritual,
arts and inventions and skill of every kind being attributed to Him (Exod.
xxxi. 3, and xxxv. 31), so the Mother of the gods, in whom that Spirit was
feigned to be incarnate, was celebrated as the originator of some of the useful
arts and sciences (DIODORUS SICULUS, lib. iii. p. 134). Hence, also, the
character attributed to the Grecian Minerva, whose name Athena, as we
have seen reason to conclude, is only a synonym for Beltis, the well-known
name of the Assyrian goddess (see ante, pp. 20, 21, Note). Athena, the
Minerva of Athens, is universally known as the "goddess of wisdom," the
inventress of arts and sciences. 2. The name Astarte signifies also the
Maker of investigations,;" and in this respect was applicable to Cybele or
"
same in sense as Tart. Now, Asterie was the wife of Perseus, the Assyrian
(HERODOTUS, lib. vi. p. 400), and who was the founder of Mysteries
(BRYANT, vol. iii. pp. 267, 268). As Asterie was further represented as the
daughter of Bel, this implies a position similar to that of Semiramis.
AstrsBa, again, was the goddess of justice, who is identified with the
heavenly virgin Themis, the name Themis signifying the perfect one,"
"
APPENDIX. 309
and sometimes identified but both have the same character as goddesses of
;
justice (see Gradu-s ad Parnassum, sub voce, Justitia"). The explanation of "
the discrepancy obviously is, that the Spirit has sometimes been viewed as
incarnate, and sometimes not. When incarnate, Astrsea is daughter of
Themis. What name could more exactly agree with the character of a
goddess of)t
justice, than Ash-trai-a, Tne maker
Asn-trai-a, "The mater of investigations, and
01 investigations," ana
what name te could move appropriately shadow forth one of the characters
of that DivineHvine Spirit, who searcheth all thing, yea, the deep things of
"
My
always strive with man, for that he also is flesh yet his days shall be an :
hundred and twenty years." All these 120 years, the Spirit was striving ;
when they came to an end, the Spirit strove no longer, forsook the earth,
and left the world to its fate. But though the Spirit of God forsook the
earth, it did not forsake the family of righteous Noah. It entered with the
patriarch into the ark and when that patriarch came forth from his long
;
imprisonment, it came forth along with him. Thus the Pagans had a
historical foundation for their myth of the dove resting on the symbol of
the ark in the Babylonian waters, and the Syrian goddess, or Astarte the
same as Astrsea corning forth from it. Semiramis, then, as Astarte,
worshipped as the dove, was regarded as the incarnation of the Spirit of
God. 3. As Baal, Lord of Heaven, had his visible emblem, the sun, so she,
as Beltis, Queen of Heaven, must have hers also the moon, which in another
sense was Asht-tart-e, The maker of revolutions,; for there is no doubt
"
"
that Tart very commonly signifies going round." But, 4th, the whole
"
system must be dovetailed together. As the mother of the gods was equally
the mother of mankind, Semiramis, or Astarte, must also be identified with
Eve and the name Rhea, which, according to the Paschal Chronicle, vol.
;
i.
p. 65, was given to her, sufficiently proves her
identification with Eve.
As applied to the common mother of the human race, the name Astarte is
singularly appropriate for, as she was Idaia mater, The mother of know
"
ledge,"
the question is, How did she come by that knowledge ?
"
To this "
the answer can only be By the fatal investigations she made." It was a
"
(bringing them)
life." In reference to this benignity of her character, both the titles, Aph
rodite and Mylitta are evidently attributed to her. The first I have else
where explained as
"
really The Messenger, the MEDIATOR." Parkhurst takes the word in this
"
"to
Mltz,"
Melitz is Melitza, from which comes Melissa, a "bee "(the sweetener, or
producer of sweetness), and Melissa, a common name of the priestesses of
Cybele, and as we may infer of Cybele, as Astarte, or Queen of Heaven,
herself for, after Porphyry has stated that the ancients called the priest
;
"
esses of Demeter, Melissae," he adds, that they also "called the Moon
Melissa" (De antro
Nympharum, p. 18). have evidence, further, that We
goes far to identify this title as a title of Semiramis. Melissa or Melitta
(APOLLODORUS, vol. i. lib. ii. p. 110) for the name is given in both ways
is said to have been the mother of Phoroneus, the first that
reigned, in
whose days the dispersion of mankind occurred, divisions having come in
among them, whereas before, all had been in harmony arid spoke one
language (Hyginus, fab. 143, p. 114). There is no other to whom this can
be applied but Nimrod; and as Nimrod came to be worshipped as Nin, the
son of his own wife, the identification is exact. Melitta, then, the mother of
Phoroneus, is the same as Mylitta, the well-known name of the Babylonian
Venus ; and the name, as being the feminine of Melitz, the Mediator, con
sequently signifies the Mediatrix. Another name also given to the mother
of Phoroneus, the first that reigned," is Archia (LEMPRIERE
"
see also ;
Spiritual
"
(from
"
Rkh,"
"
Spirit,"
which in Egyptian
(BDNSEN, vol. i. p. 516, No. 292) also is "Rkh" ;
and in Chaldee, with the prosthetic a prefixed becomes Arkh).* From the
same root also evidently comes the epithet Architis, as applied to the Venus
that wept for Adonis. t Venus Architis is the spiritual Venus. Thus, then,
the mother-wife of the first king that reigned was known as Archia and
Melitta, in other words, as the woman in whom the "Spirit of God" was
incarnate and thus appeared as the "Dea Benigna," "The Mediatrix" for
;
sinful mortals. The first form of Astarte, as Eve, brought sin into the
world the second form before the Flood, was avenging as the goddess of
;
justice. This form was Benignant and Merciful." Thus, also, Semiramis,
"
or Astarte, as Venus the goddess of love and beauty, became The HOPE of "
the whole world," and men gladly had recourse to the "mediation of one "
so tolerant of sin.
NOTE K, p. 124.
First, the name Oannes, as elsewhere shown, is just the Greek form of
He-anesh, or The man," which is a synonym for the name of our first
"
The Hebrew Dem, blood, in Chaldee becomes Adem ; and, in like manner, Ekh becomes
Arkh.
t MACROBIUS, Saturnal.,
cap. 21, p. 70, F. lib. i.,
J From OUVAROFF (Sect. 6, p. 102, Note) we learn that the mother of the third Bacchus was
Aura, and Phaethon is said by Orpheus to have been the son Trepi/xTy/ceos depos of the wide
"
so every deviation from the straight line of duty was Sin; Hata, the word
for sin, signifying generically to go aside from the straight Pan,
"
line."
it is admitted, was the Head of the Satyrs that is, the first of the "
Hidden Ones," for Satyr and Satur, the Hidden One," are evidently just "
the same word and Adam was the first of mankind that hid himself.
;
") ;
but just the name of the beguiling woman, who, having been beguiled her
self, acted the part of a beguiler to her husband, and induced him to take
the step, in consequence of which he earned the name Pan, The man "
that turned aside." Pitho or Pitys evidently come from Peth or Pet, to "
beguile,"
from which verb also the famous serpent Python derived its
name. This conclusion in regard to the personal identity of Pan and
Pitho is greatly confirmed by the titles given to the wife of Faunus.
Faunus, says Smith (Ibid.), is merely another name for Pan." * Now,
"
the wife of Faunus was called Oma, Fauna, and Fatua (Ibid., sub voce
Bona Dea"), which names plainly mean The mother that turned aside,
" "
sister, wife, or daughter of her husband and how this agrees with the
"
sub voce Pan and the origin of this title must be traced to what took
"
"),
place when our first parent became the Head of the Satyrs, the first of "
Adam, or Cannes, that shows that it must be Adam, after, through virtue
of the metempsychosis, he had passed through the waters of the deluge ;
the goat, as the symbol of Pan, representing Adam, the first father of
mankind, combined with the fish, the symbol of Noah, the second father of
the human race of both whom Nimrod, as at once Kronos,
;
the father of "
the gods," and Souro, the seed," was a new incarnation. Among the
"
and Berosus tells us Berosiana," in BUNSEN, vol. i. p. 708), that the well-
("
*
In Chaldee the same letter that is pronounced P is also pronounced Ph, that is F, there
fore Pan is just Faun.
t The name Fatua evidently conies from the same verb as Pitho or Pitys, that is Pet, or
Phet. In the active sense we find Fatuus in common use in the well-known expression Ignis
fatuus. In the passive sense it is seen in the phrase A fatuous person."
"
312 APPENDIX.
NOTE L, p. 133.
no food but wine. For thus we read in the Edda : As to himself he "
armies, with his own hand, fattens his two wolves but the victorious Odin ;
takes no other nourishment to himself than what arises from the uninter-
mitted quaffing of wine" (MALLET, 20th Fable, vol. ii. p. 106). 3. The
name of one of Odin s sons indicates the meaning of Odin s own name.
Balder, for whose death such lamentations were made, seems evidently just
the Chaldee form of Baal-zer, The seed of Baal ; for the Hebrew z, as is
" "
well known, frequently, in the later Chaldee, becomes d. Now, Baal and
Adon both alike signify Lord" and, therefore, if Balder be admitted to
"
be the seed or son of Baal, that is as much as to say that he is the son of
Adon and, consequently, Adon and Odin must be the same. This, of
;
course, puts Odin a step back makes his son to be the object of lamenta
;
tion and not himself but the same was the case also in Egypt for there
; ;
Horus the child was sometimes represented as torn in pieces, as Osiris had
been. Clemens Alexandrinus says (Cohortatio, vol. i. p. 30), "they lament
an infant torn in pieces by the Titans." The lamentations for Balder are
very plainly the counterpart of the lamentations for Adonis ; and, of course,
if Balder was, as the lamentations
prove him to have been, the favourite
form of the Scandinavian Messiah, he was Adon, or "Lord," as well as his
father. 4. Then, lastly, the name of the other son of Odin, the mighty
and warlike Thor, strengthens all the foregoing conclusions. Ninyas, the
son of Ninus or Nimrod, on his father s death, when idolatry rose again,
was, of course, from the nature of the mystic system, set up as Adon, the "
Lord."
Now, as Odin had a son called Thor, so the second Assyrian Adon
had a son called Thouros (Cedrenus, vol. i. p. 29). The name Thouros
seems just to be another form of Zoro, or Doro, the seed for Photius "
;
"
tells us that among the Greeks Thoros signified Seed (Lexicon, pars i. " "
NOTE M, p. 183.
The passage given at the above page from Proclus is differently rendered
by different translators. As I have quoted it, it is nearly the same as
rendered by Taylor in his translation of Proclus. Taylor departs from
the rendering of the Latin translator of the edition of Hamburgi, 1618, in
regard to the word rendered divested of their garments." That trans
"
will be found that Taylor s version, in regard to the meaning and application
of this word, is perfectly correct, and that to interpret it as light armed
"
light armed soldier, but when an adjective, to signify naked. Now, the
context shows that yv/j-viTas, or yvfMvtjras, must be used as an adjective.
Further, the context, before and after, makes it evident that it must mean
stripped or divested of garments." The sentence itself states a com
" "
"
parison. I give the words of the comparison from the Latin version already
referred to Et quemadmodum. :
[and then here come in the words I . . .
have quoted in the text] eodem modo puto et in ipsa reruin universarum
contemplatione rem se habere." Now, in the sentence before, the soul or
person who properly gives himself to the contemplation of the universe and
God, is said to do so thus Contrahens se totam in sui ipsius unionem, et :
"
&c. Here the argument is, that as the initiated needed to be stripped
naked, to get the full benefits of initiation, so the soul needs to divest itself
of everything that may hinder it from rising to the contemplation of things
as they really are.
There is only one other thing to be noticed, and that is the doubt that
as they would say," whether,
;
be held to affect. This can be ascertained only from the usus loquendi.
Now, the usus loquendi in Proclus is very decisive in showing that they
qualify what follows. Thus, in lib. i. cap. 3, p. 6, we find the following,
a
r-rjv dKpoTrjTa TOV vov, /ecu (ws TO avdos The summit of the soul, and as <pa.(n)
(they say) the flower and again (Ibid. cap. 7, p. 16), /ecu Traces (ws enreiv)
;
"
rrjs evdeov ^ereiATj^cKri and all (so to speak) have partaken of the
<ro0ias
"
inspired wisdom." From these passages the usage of Proclus is clear, and,
therefore, while keeping the wards of Taylor s translation, I have arranged
the last clause so as to bring out more clearly the real meaning of the
original author.
NOTE N, p. 228.
Zoroaster, the Head of the Fire- Worshippers.
That Zoroaster was head of the fire-worshippers, the following, among
other evidence, may prove. Not to mention that the name Zoroaster is
almost a synonym for a fire-worshipper, the testimony of Plutarch is of
weight Plutarchus agnoscit Zoroastrem apud Chaldseos Magos instituisse,
:
"
the Magi, in imitation of whom the Persians also had their (Magi). The
Arabian History also (edited by Erpenius) relates that Zaradussit, or
Zerdusht, did not for the first time institute, but (only) reform the religion
The great antiquity of the institution of the Magi is proved from the statement of
Aristotle already referred to, as preserved in Theopompus, which makes them to have been
"
more ancient than the Egj-ptians," whose antiquity is well known. (Theopompi Fragmenta
in MttLLER, vol. i. p. 280.)
314 APPENDIX.
of the Persians and Magi, who had been divided into many sects." The
testimony of Agathias is to the same effect. He gives it as his opinion that
the worship of fire came from the Chaldeans to the Persians, lib. ii. cap.
25, pp. 118, 119. That the Magi among the Persians were the guardians
the sacred and eternal fire may be assumed from Curtius (lib. iii.
"
of "
altars from the statement of Strabo (Geograph., lib. xv. p. 696), that
;
"
the Magi kept upon the altar a quantity of ashes and an immortal fire,"
"
and of Herodotus (lib. i. p. 63), that without them, no sacrifice could be "
offered." The
fire-worship was an essential part of the system of the
Persian Magi (WILSON, Parsee Religion, pp. 228-235). This fire-worship
the Persian Magi did not pretend to have invented but their popular ;
proved, that though many others bore the name of Zoroaster, the lines of
evidence all converge, so as to demonstrate that Ninus and Nimrod and
Zoroaster were one. The legends of Zoroaster show that he was known
not only as a Magus, but as a Warrior (ARNOBIUS, lib. i. p. 327). Plato
says that Eros Armenius (whom CLEHICUS, De Chaldceis, states, vol. ii.
p. 195, to have been the same as the fourth Zoroaster) died and rose again
after ten days, having been killed in battle and that what he pretended ;
decisively prove it, and cast further light on the primitive fire-worship.
1. In the first
place, Tammuz and Adonis are proved to be the same
divinity. Jerome, who when the rites of Tammuz were
lived in Palestine
up
observed, to the very time when, he wrote, expressly identifies Tammuz
and Adonis (vol. ii. p. 353), in his Commentary on EzeJciel, viii. 14, where
the Jewish are represented as weeping for Tammuz ; and the
women
testimony of Jerome on this subject is universally admitted. Then the
mode in which the rites of Tammuz or Adonis were celebrated in Syria
was essentially the same as the rites of Osiris. The statement of Lucian
(De Dea Syria, vol. iii. p. 454) strikingly shows this, and Bunsen (vol. i.
443) distinctly admits it. The identity of Osiris and Nimrod, has been
E.irgely proved in the body of this work. When, therefore, Tammuz or
Adonis is identified with Osiris, the identification of Tammuz with Nimrod
follows of course. And then this entirely agrees with the language of
Bion, in his Lament for Adonis, where he represents Venus as going in a
frenzy of grief, like a Bacchant, after the death of Adonis, through the
woods and valleys, and calling upon her Assyrian husband (BiON, Idyll,
" "
Id. i. v. 24, in Poetce Minores Greed, p. 304). It equally agrees with the
statement of Maimonides, that when Tammuz was put to death, the
grand scene of weeping for that death was in the temple of Babylon (see
APPENDIX. 315
But the
intention of that passing through the fire was undoubtedly to purify. The
name Tammuz has evidently reference to this, for it signifies to perfect," "
that is, "to purify * "by fire;" and if Nimrod was, as the Paschal
3
Chronicle (vol. i. pp. 50, 51), and the general voice of antiquity, represent
him to have been, the orginator of fire-worship, this name very exactly
expresses his character in that respect. It is evident, however, from the
Zoruastrian verse, elsewhere quoted (ante, p. 245), that fire itself was wor
shipped as Tammuz, for it is called the Father that perfected all things."
"
In one aspect this represented fire as the Creative god but in another, ;
This was the very idea that, from time immemorial till very recently, led
so many widows in India to immolate themselves on the funeral piles of
their husbands, the woman who thus burned herself being counted blessed,
because she became Suttee^ i.e., Pure by burning." And this also, no "
beams," referred to in the text of this work, identifies itself with Nimrod.
The fact that that fifth head \vas represented as having read the Vedas, or
sacred books produced by the other four heads, shows, I think, a
succession.^ Now, coining down from Noah, what would that succession
*
From tarn, "to perfect," and muz, to burn." To be "pure in heart in Scripture is just
"
"
the same as to be
"
flood, seems to be a correlative term of the water-worshippers. Dukh-ka .eh signifies "to
purify by washing," from Dukh, to wash (CLAVIS STOCKII, p. 223), and Khaleh, "to com
" "
plete," or
"
perfect." The noun from the latter verb, found in 2 Chrou. iv. 21, shows that the
root means
1
form of the Hebrew Khmn, "the burner," which becomes Akmon in the same way as the
Hebrew Dem, "blood," in Chaldee becomes Adem." Hesychius says that Akmon is Kronos, "
sub voce "Akmon." In Virgil (/Eneid, lib. viii. 1. 425) we find this name compounded so as
to be an exact synonym for Tammuz, Pyracmon being the name of one of the three famous
Cyclops whom the poet introduces. We have seen that the original Cyclops were Kronos and
his brethren, and deriving the name from Pur," the Chaldee form of Bur, to purify," and
" "
"
t MOOR S Pantheon, The epithet for a woman that burns herself is spelled
"
Siva," p. 43.
Suttee," as above.
"
J The Indian Vedas that now exist do not seem to be of very great antiquity as written
documents but the legend goes much further back than anything that took place in India.
;
The antiquity of writing seems to be very great, but whether or not there was any written
religious document in Nimrod s day, a Veda there must have been for what is the meaning ;
of the word "Veda"? It is evidently just the same as the Anglo-Saxon Edda with the
digamma prefixed, and both alike evidently come from Ed" a Testimony," a
"
Religious
" "
316 APPENDIX.
be We
have evidence from Berosus, that, in the days of Belus that is,
?
p. 670, B) says that the Egyptians were of the opinion that darkness was
"
prior to light, and that the latter [viz., light] was produced from mice, in
the fifth generation, at the time of the new moon. In India, we find that
a new moon
"
meaning o f that term, and that the production of that new moon was not
only important in Indian mythology, but evidently agreed in time with
the period when the fifth head of Brahma scorched the world with its
insufferable splendour. The account of its production runs thus that the :
gods and mankind were entirely discontented with the moon which they
had got, because it gave no light" and besides the plants were poor and
the fruits of no use, and that therefore they churned the White sea [or, as
it is commonly
expressed, they churned the ocean when all things
"
"],
were mingled i.e., were thrown into confusion, and that then a new
moon, with a new regent, was appointed, which brought in an entirely
new system of things (Asiatic liesearches, vol. ix. p. 98). From MAURICE S
Indian Antiquities (vol. ii. sect. 6, pp. 264-266), we learn that at this very
time of the churning of the ocean, the earth was set on fire, and a great con
flagration was the result. But the name of the moon in India is Soina, or
Som (for the final a is only a breathing, and the word is found in the name
of the famous temple of $omnaut, which name signifies Lord of the "
the question naturally arises, who could be meant by the moon, or regent of
the moon, who was cast off in the fifth generation of the world ? The name
Som shows at once who he must have been. Som is just the name of
Shem for Shem s name comes from Shorn, to appoint," and is legiti
;
"
appear consider the way in which his father Noah was evidently
if we
symbolised. The head of a family is divinely compared to the sun, as in
the dream of Joseph (Genesis xxxvii. 9), and it may be easily conceived
how Noah would, by his posterity in general, be looked up to as occupy
ing the paramount place as the Sun of the world ; and accordingly
Bryant, Davies, Faber, and others, have agreed in recognising Noah as so
symbolised by Paganism. When, however, his younger son for Shem
was younger than Japhet (Genesis x. 21) was substituted for his father, to
whom the world had looked up in comparison of the greater light, " 55
Shem would naturally, especially by those who disliked him and rebelled
against him, be compared to the lesser light," or the moon.f Now, the
"
symbol of the king, and the moon of the next to him in power." This sentence, extracted
from DAUBUZ S Symbolical Dictionary (p. 115), illustrated with judicious notes by iny learned
APPENDIX. 317
Kheber, in Arabic, Turkish, and some of the other eastern dialects, becomes
Akbar," as in the well-known Moslem saying,
"
NOTE O, p. 230.
The Story oj Phaethon.
The identity of Phaethon and Nimrod has much to support it besides
the prima facie evidence arising from the statement
that Phaethon was an
Ethiopian or Cushite, and the resemblance of his fate, in being cast down
from heaven while driving the chariot of the sun, as "the child of the
Sun,"
to the casting down of Molk Gheber, whose very name, as the god of
fire, identifies him with Nimrod. 1. Phaethon. is said by Apollodorus
(vol. i. p. 354) to have been the son of Tithonus but if the meaning of ;
Tithonus," is in Chaldee Phaethon Bar Tithon." But this also signifies "
fire."
Phaethon and Tithonus, this goes far to identify Phaethon with Nimrod ;
for Homer, as we have seen (Odyssey, lib. v. 1. 121, p. 127), mentions the
marriage of Aurora with Orion, the mighty Hunter, whose identity with
Nimrod is established. Then the name of the celebrated son that sprang
from the union between Aurora and Tithonus, shows that Tithonus, in his
original character, must have been indeed the same as "the mighty hun
ter" of
Scripture, for the name of that son was Memnon (MARTIAL, lib. viii.,
s. 21, p. 440, and OVID, Metam. lib. xiii. 1.
517, vol. ii.
p. 467), which
signifies The son of the spotted
"
How
thou fallen from heaven,
art Lucifer, son of the morning
"
friend, the Rev. A. Forbes, London, shows that the conclusion to which I had come before
seeing it, in regard to the symbolical meaning of the moon, is entirely in harmony with
Oriental modes of thinking. For some excellent remarks in regard to Babylon, see the same
work, p. 38,
*
From Tzet or Tzit, "
to give."
a son."
318 APPENDIX.
of that term, but in its mystical sense ; as The woman pregnant with "
light ;
who was to enlighten the world, Lucifer, the son of the morning," who
"
was the pretended enlightener of the souls of men.* The name Lucifer,
in Isaiah, is the very word from which Eleleus, one of the names of
Bacchus, evidently comes. It comes from Helel," which to
" "
signifies
irradiate or to bring light," and is equivalent to the name Tithon.
" "
Now
we have evidence that Lucifer, the son of Aurora, or the morning, was
worshipped in the very same character as Nimrocl, when he appeared in his
new character as a little child for there is an inscription extant in these ;
words :
"
Bono Deo
Puero Phosphoro."
p. 674) and the meaning of this name will appear in one of its aspects when
;
the meaning of the name of the Dea Matuta is ascertained. Dea Matuta
signifies The kindling or Light-bringing goddess," f and accordingly, by
"
(PRISCIAN, p. 591, apitd Sir WILLIAM BETHAM S JEtruria, vol. ii. p. 53).
ii.
ing ;
But further, Matuta is identified with Ino, after she had plunged into the
sea, and had, along with her son Melikerta, been changed into a sea-
divinity (Gradus ad Parnassum, sub voce Consequently her son
"
Ino").
Melikerta,
Lucifer, Phaethon, or Nimrod.
There is still another link by which Melikerta, the sea-divinity, or Janus
Matutinus, is identified with the primitive god of the fire-worshippers.
The most common name of Ino, or Matuta, after she had passed through
the waters, was Leukothoe (OviD, Metam. lib. iv. 11. 541, 542). Now,
Leukothou or Leukothea has a double meaning, as it is derived either from
Lukhoth," which signifies to light," or set on fire," J or from Lukoth "to
" " "
glean."
In the Maltese medal given (ante, p. 160), the reader will see both
of these senses exemplified. The ear of corn, at the side of the goddess,
which is more commonly held in her hand, while really referring in its
hidden meaning to her being the Mother of Bar, the son," to the unin "
itiated exhibits her as Spicilega, or The Gleaner," the popular name," " "
says Hyde (De Religions, Vet. Pers., p. 392), "for the female with the ear
of wheat represented in the constellation Virgo." In Bryant (vol. iii.
p. 245), Cybele is represented with two or three ears of corn in her hand ;
for, as there were three peculiarly distinguished Bacchuses, there were con-
*
The reader will see, from the following extracts from the Pancarpium Marianum that the
Virgin of Rome is not only called by the name of Aurora, but that that name is evidently
applied to her in two distinct sexes specified in the text: "O Aurora Maria, qua} a lumine
incepisti, crevisti cum lumine, et nunquam lumine privaris. Sicut lux meridiana clara es.
Dominutn concepisti, qui dixit, Lux sum mundi (cap. 41, p. 170). "Numquid sol justitise "
Christus, qui dixit. Lux sum mundi, operamini, dum dies est? Numquid hanc solis aeterni
lampadem aurora Maria consurgens invexit; surgite soporati ? (Ibid. p. 171.) These words
"
t In Hebrew, the verb is Lhth, but the Hebrew letter He" frequently becomes in Chaldee
"
one, two, or three ears in her hand. But to revert to the Maltese medal
just referred to, the flames coming
out of the head of Lukothea, the
Gleaner," show that, though
"
she has passed through the waters, she is
still Lukhothea, "the Burner," or Light-giver."
And the rays around
"
very place of
proved to be. But he is equally the Sea-divinity, who in that
(ante, p. 252)
capacity wears the mitre of Dagon (compare woodcuts, pp. 160
and 216,
where different forms of the same Maltese divinity are given). The fish-
head mitre which the Pope wears shows that, in this character also, as the
Beast from the
"
NOTE P, p. 238.
oi fire-colour to us. But it does convey the idea of red; and red in one
shade or another, among idolatrous nations, has almost with one consent
been used to represent fire. The Egyptians (BUNSEX, vol. i. p. 290), the
Hindoos (Moon s Pantheon, "Brahma," p. 6), the Assyrians (LAYARD S
Nineveh, &c., vol. ii. chap. 3, p. 312, Note), all represented fire by red. The
Persians evidently did the same, for when Quintus Curtius describes the
Magi as following "the sacred and eternal he describes the 365 fire,"
youths, who formed the train of these Magi, as clad "puniceis amiculis,"
in scarlet garments (lib. iii. cap. 3, p. 42), the colour of these garments,
"
"
no doubt, having reference to the fire whose ministers they were. Puniceus
is equivalent to purpureus, for it was in Phenicia that the purpura, or
purple-fish, was originally found. The colour derived from that purple-fish
was scarlet (see KITTO S Illustrated Commentary on Exodus xxxv. 35, vol. i.
p. 215), and it is the very name of that Phenician purple-fish,
"
arguna," that
is used in Daniel v. 16 and 19, where it is said that he that should
interpret
the handwriting on the wall should "be clothed in scarlet" The Tyrians
had the art of making true purples, as well as scarlet and there seems no ;
as
p. 223). Now, when we find that the purpura of Tyre produced the scarlet
colour which naturally represented fire, and that puniceus, which is equiva
lent to purpnreus, is evidently used for scarlet, there is nothing that forbids
us to understand purpureus in the same sense here, but rather requires it.
But even though it were admitted that the tinge was deeper, and purpureus
meant the true purple, as red, of which it is a shade, is the established
colour of fire, and as the serpent was the universally acknowledged symbol
of fire-worship, the probability is strong that the use of a red dragon as
the Imperial standard of Rome was designed as an emblem of that system
of fire-worship on which the safety of the empire was believed so vitally
to hinge.
NOTE Q, p. 268.
The Slaying oj the Witnesses.
Is it past, or is it still to come ? This is a vital question. The favourite
doctrine at this moment is, that it is past centuries ago, and that no such
dark night of suffering to the saints of God can ever come again, as hap
pened just before the era of the Reformation. This is the cardinal principle
of a work that has just appeared, under the title of TJie Great Exodus, which
implies, that however much the truth may be assailed, however much the
saints of God may be threatened, however their fears may be aroused, they
have no real reason to fear, for that the Red Sea will divide, the tribes of
the Lord will pass through dry shod, and all their enemies, like Pharaoh
and his host, shall sink in overwhelming ruin. If the doctrine maintained
by many of the soberest interpreters of Scripture for a century past, includ
ing such names as Brown of Haddington, Thomas Scott, and others, be
well founded viz., that the putting down of the testimony of the witnesses
is still to come, this theory must not only be a delusion, but a delusion of
most fatal tendency a delusion that by throwing professors off their
guard, and giving them an excuse for taking their ease, rather than standing
in the high places of the field, and bearing bold and unflinching testimony
for Christ, directly paves the way for that very extinction of the testimony
which is predicted. I enter not into any historical disquisition as to the
question, whether, as a matter of fact, it was true that the witnesses were
slain before Luther appeared. Those who wish
an historical argu
to see
ment on the subject may see it in the which I venture to
Red Republic,
think has not yet been answered. Neither do I think it worth while par
ticularly to examine the assumption of Dr. Wylie, and I hold it to be a
pure and gratuitous assumption, that the 1260 days during which the
saints of God in Gospel times were to suffer for righteousness sake, has any
relation whatever, as a half period, to a whole, symbolised by the "Seven
times" that
passed over Nebuchadnezzar when he was suffering and chas
tened for his pride and blasphemy, as the representative of the "world
* But to this
power." only I call the reader s attention, that even on the
* The author does not himself make the humiliation of the
Babylonian king a type of the
humiliation of the Church. How then can he establish any typical relation between the
"seven times" in the one cse, and the "seven times" in the other? He seems to think it
quite enough to establish that relation, if he can find one point of resemblance between
Nebuchadnezzar, the humbled despot, and the "world-power" that oppresses the Church
during the two periods of "seven times respectively. That one point is the madness of
" "
"
the one and the other. It might be asked, Was, then, the "world power" in its right mind
before "the seven times" began? But waiving that, here is the vital objection to this view :
APPENDIX. 321
theory of Dr. Wylie himself, the witnesses of Christ could not possibly
have
finished their testimony before the Decree of the Immaculate Conception
came forth. The theory of Dr. Wylie, and those who take the same general
view as he, is, that the finishing of the testimony means completing
" "
"
against the errors of Rome. Dr. Wylie himself admits that the dogma
"
of the Immaculate Conception [which was given forth only during the
last few years] declares Mary truly divine, and places her upon the altars
of Rome as practically the sole and supreme object of worship (The Great
"
Exodus, 109). This was NEVER done before, and therefore the errors
p.
and blasphemies not complete until that decree had gone
of Rome were
forth, if even then. the corruption and blasphemy of Rome were
Now, if
"incomplete" up
to day, and if they have risen to a height which
our own
was never witnessed before, as all men instinctively felt and declared, when
that decree was issued, how could the testimony of the witnesses be com- "
plete,"
before Luther s day It is nothing to say that the principle and the !
germ of this decree were in operation long before. The same thing may be
The madness in the case of Nebuchadnezzar was simply an affliction; in the other it was sin.
The madness of Nebuchadnezzar did not, so far as we know, lead him to oppress a single indi
vidual the madness of the world-power," according to the theory, is essentially characterised
"
by the oppression of the Where, then, can there be the least analogy between the two
saints.
cases? The of the Babylonian king were seven times of humiliation, and
"seven times"
humiliation alone. The suffering monarch cannot be a type of the suffering Church and still ;
less can his "seven times" of deepest humiliation, when all power and glory was taken from
him, be a type of the "seven times" of the world-power," when that "world-power" was to
"
concentrate in itself all the glory and grandeur of the earth. This is one fatal objection to this
theory. Then let the reader only look at the following sentence from the work under con
sideration, and compare it with historical fact, and he will see still more how unfounded the
theory is: "It follows undeniably," says the author (pp. 184, 185), "that as the Church is
to be tyrannised over by the idolatrous power throughout the whole of the seven times, she
will be oppressed during the first half of the seven times, by idolatry in the form of Paganism,
and during the last half by idolatry in the form of Popery." Now, the first half, or 1260 years,
during which the Church was to be oppressed by Pagan idolatry, ran out exactly, it is said, in
A.I). 530 or 532 when suddenly Justinian changed the scene, and brought the new oppressor
;
on the stage. But I ask where was the "world-power" to be found up to 530, maintaining
"idolatry in the form of Paganism"? From the time of Gratian at least, Avho, about 376,
formally abolished the worship of the gods, and confiscated their revenues, where was there
any such Pagan power to persecute? There is certainly a very considerable interval between
376 and 532. The necessities of the theory require that Paganism, and that avowed Paganism,
be it observed, shall be persecuting the Church straight away till 532 but for 156 years there ;
was no such thing as a Pagan "world-power" in existence to persecute the Church. "The legs
of the lame," says Solomon, "are not equal and if the 1260 years of Pagan persecution lack
;"
no less than 156 years of the predicted period, surely it must be manifest that the theory halts
very much on one side at least. But I ask, do the facts agree with the theory, even in regard
to the running out of the second 1260 years in 1792, at the period of the French Revolution?
If the 1260 years of Papal oppression terminated then, and if then the Ancient of days came to
begin the final judgment on the beast, He came also to do something else. This will appear
from the language of Daniel Dan. vii. 21, 22, I beheld, and the same horn made war with
:
"
the saints, and prevailed against them until the Ancient of days came, and judgment was ;
given to the saints of thb Most High and the time came that the saints possessed the kingdom."
;
This language implies that the judgment on the little horn, and the putting of the saints in pos
session the kingdom" are contemporaneous events. Long has the rule of the kingdoms of this
"of
world been inthe hands of worldly men, thatknewnot God nor obeyed Him butnow, when He to ;
whom the kingdom belongs comes to inflict judgment on His enemies, He comes also to transfer
the rule of the kingdoms of this world from the hands of those who have abused it, into the hands
of those that fear God and govern their public conduct by His revealed will. This is evidently
the meaning of the Divine statement. Now, on the supposition that 1792 was the predicted
period of the coming of the Ancient of days, it follows that, ever since, the principles of God s
Word must have been leavening the governments of Europe more and more, and good and holy
men, of the spirit of Daniel and Nehemiah, must have been advanced to the high places of
power. But has it been in point of fact? Is there one nation in all Europe that, acts on
<o
Scriptural principles at this day? Does Britain itself do so? Why, it is notorious tbat it was
just three years after the reign of righteousness, according to this theory, must have commenced
that that unprincipled policy began that has left hardly a shred of appearance of respect for the
honour of the "Prince of the Kings of the earth in the public rule of this nation. It was in
"
1795 that Pitt, and the British Parliament, passed the Act for the erecting of the Roman
Catholic College of Maynooth, which formed the beginning of a course that, year by year, has
lifted the Man of Sin into a position of power in this land, that threatens, if Divine mercy dp
not miraculously interfere, to bring us speedily back again under complete thraldom to Anti
christ. Yet, according to the theory of The Great Exodus, the very opposite of this ought to
have been the case.
Y
322 APPENDIX.
said of all the leading errors of Rome long before Luther s day. They were
all in essence and substance very broadly developed, from near the time
when Gregory the Great commanded the image of the Virgin to be carried
forth in the processions that supplicated the Most High to remove the
pestilence from Rome, when it was committing such havoc among its
citizens. But that does in nowise prove that they were complete," or "
that the witnesses of Christ could then finish their testimony by bearing " "
a full and complete testimony against the errors and corruptions of the
"
"
Papacy. I submit this view of the matter to every intelligent reader for
his prayerful consideration. If we have not "understanding of the times,"
it is vain to expect that we shall know what Israel ought to do." If we
"
are saying Peace and safety," when trouble is at hand, or underrating the
"
nature of that trouble, we cannot be prepared for the grand struggle when
that struggle shall come.
NOTE R, p. 274.
We have seen that the name Pan signifies to turn aside," and have "
sin,"
meaning of which is to turn aside from the straight line," that name was
"
the name of our first parent, Adam. One of the names of Eve, as the
primeval goddess, worshipped in ancient Babylon, while it gives confirma
tion to this conclusion, elucidates also another classical myth in a somewhat
unexpected way. The name of that primeval goddess, as given by Berosus,
is Thalatth, which, as we have seen, signifies the Adam s name, as "
rib."
identified with Adam, as well as the other fathers of the gods," to whom "
we have already traced him. Now Adam, in consequence of his sin and
departure from the straight line of duty, was, all his life after, in a double
sense "Baal-Thalatth," not only the "Husband of the but "The man rib,"
altar,"
when
supplicating their god to hear them (for that is the exact
meaning in the original of the word rendered leaped see KITTO S Bib.
" "
Cyclop., vol. i. p. 261), and that the Druidic priests went sideways in per
forming some of their sacred rites, as appears from the following passage of
Davies "The dance is
:
performed with solemn festivity about the lakes,
round which and the sanctuary the priests move sideivays, whilst the
sanctuary is earnestly invoking the gliding king, before whom the fair one
retreats upon the veil that covers the huge stones" (Druids, p. 171). This
Davies regards as connected with the story of Jupiter, the father of the
gods, violating his own daughter in the form of a serpent (p. 561). Now,
let the reader look at what ia on the breast of the Ephesian Diana, as the
Mother of the gods (ante, p. 29), and he will see a reference to her share in the
same act of going aside ; for there is the crab, and how does a crab go but
sideivays ? This, then, shows the meaning of another of the signs of the
Zodiac. Cancer commemorates the fatal turning aside of our first parent
from the paths of righteousness, when the covenant of Eden was broken.
*
The Chaldee Thalatth, a rib or a side," comes from the verb Thalaa, the Chaldee
" "
"
form
of Tzalaa, which signifies to turn aside," to sidle," or "to walk sideways."
" " "
to halt,"
t For Vulcan as the first of all the gods," see MINUTIUS FELIX, Octavius, p. 163.
"
APPENDIX. 323
The Pagans knew that this turning aside or going sideways, implied
death the death of the soul In the day thou eatest thereof, thou shalt
("
surely die and, therefore, while at the spring festival of Cybele and Attes,
") ;
there were great lamentations for the death of Attes, so on the Hilaria or
rejoicing festival of the 25th of March that is, Lady-day, the last day of
the festival the mourning was turned into joy, "on occasion of the dead
god being restored to life again" (Dupuis, Origins de tous les Cultes, torn. iv.
pt. 1, p. 253, Paris, L an iii. de la Republique [1794]). If Attes was he that
by his turning aside brought sin and death into the world, what could
" "
the life be to which he was so speedily restored, but just that new and
divine life which enters every soul when it is born again," and so
" "
passes
from death unto life." When the promise was given that the seed of the
woman should bruise the serpent s head, and Adam grasped it by faith,
that, there can be no doubt, was evidence that the divine life was restored,
and that he was born again. And thus do the very Mysteries of Attes,
Avhich were guarded with special jealousy, and the secret meaning of which
Pausanias declares that he found it impossible, notwithstanding all his
efforts, to discover (Lib. vii., Achaica, cap. 17), bear their distinct testi
mony, when once the meaning of the name of Attes is deciphered, to the
knowledge which Paganism itself had of the real nature of the Fall, and of
the essential character of that death, which was threatened in the primeval
covenant.
This new birth of Attes laid the foundation for his being represented as
a little child, and so being identified with Adonis, who, though he died a
full-grown man, was represented in that very way. In the Eleusinian
Mysteries, that commemorated the rape of Proserpine, that is, the seduction
of Eve, the lamented god, or Bacchus, was represented as a babe at the
breast of the great Mother, who by Sophocles is called Deo (Antigone, v.
1121, Oxon. 1808). As Deo or Demete, applied to the Great Mother, is
evidently just another form of Idaia Mater, "The Mother of Knowledge"
(the verb to know" being either Daa or Idaa), this little child, in one of
"
his aspects, was no doubt the same as Attes, and thus also Deoius, as his
name is given (ante, p. 20). The Hilaria, or rejoicing festival of the 25th
of March, or Lady-day, owed its gladness to the Annunciation of a birth
yet to come, even the birth of the woman s seed but, at the same time, ;
the joy of that festival was enhanced by the immediate new birth that very
day of Attes, The sinner," or Adam, who, in consequence of his breach of
"
Abydos, temple of, 179 music at, : 22. Anubis,- Egyptian god, 146, 149-50, 153,
Achad, the Only One," 16. 169, 307.
Achilles, 61. [
Aor or Our light hence Ouranos, 193.
Adad, 302. Aphrodite, 75; "the Wrath Subduer,"
Adam, clothed, 183; "the Man," 273; 158, 264, 309.
the "Hidden One," 296. Apis, the Calf, meaning of name, 45.
Adi Sheik, 120. Apollo, 32, 60, 87, 117, 151-2, 175, 191 ;
Adon, 20, 70, 245, 312. statue of at Cumse shed tears, 257.
Adonai, 70. Apophis, 244.
Adonis, 56, 65, 67-70, 97, 99-105, 118, \
Apostate, the Great, 52 slain, 66. ;
unbloody sacri
yEneas, 228, 236, 239, 271. fice," 159-64.
^Esculapius, 98, 234-6-7, 241 ;
deriva Arabians, Zero or Cypher, from, 18 ;
Athor, cow of, spotted, 45, 77, 86. Beltis, My 20, 103, 264.
Lady,
Athyr, month, Osiris disappears, 136. Beltis, and
the Shining Bar," 73.
"
Lord of tongue ;
"
zer, 312. {
Chalchivitlycue, Mexican goddess of
Bard, or Pard, the spotted one, 73. Water, 133, 144.
Bassareus, the "vintage-gatherer," and -haos, 26-7-8-9.
encornpasser with a wall," 50. Chinevad, bridge of, connects heaven
"
i
aiid
Batzar gathering grapes or fortifying, 50. earth, 146.
Bee, the, 194 (an Assyrian symbol, Isaiah Chiron, 42.
:
Lord
Fly," 279.
of the Colly ridians, 164.
Sacred
"
Heart, 190.
"
Bel, Sacred, j
Confession, 9, 10.
Bel-Athri, Lord of Spies," 27.
"
I
Constantine, 192, 201, 202-4, 234.
Bellona, Lainenter of Bel," 44, 152, 270.
"
|
Census, 41-2.
Belshazzar, 3, 95, 146, 240-1, 255. Core", 126.
Crishna, 60-1 ; Black, 238. Druids, 45, 81, 103, 108, 115-6, 121, 151,
Cross of Fire, 155. 186, 199, 232.
Crown, first worn by Saturn, 35 ; by Bac Durgu, 243.
chus, 185.
Crux Ansata, or Sign of Life, 201.
Eanush, "the Man," = Janus, 271.
Cup, the Golden, 4, 5. Egg, sacred, 108-10.
Cupid, 40, 101 Statue of, 189, 291.
;
Egeria, nymph, 260.
Cush, 25-30, 32-4, 43-8-9, 50-1, 56, 73, El-Bar, God the Son," 73.
95, 124, 135, 316. Eleleus, 318-9.
Cybele, 20, 30-1, 78-9, 99-103, 111, 154, Elephanta, cave of, triform image in,
206-8, 240-1, 264 Phrygian, 273 ; ;18.
Magna Mater, 273 = Rhea and Terra, Eleusinian Mysteries, 9, 13, 144, 163,
304.
184, 323.
Cyclops, 32, 229-30, 232; Cannibals, Elioun, the Most High, 193.
315. 86.
Ellewoman,
Cycnus, King, 243. Bngonaisis,
"
the Ser
Cyprian Venus, 75, 157.
pent-crusher," 61.
Cyrus, 2, 5, 39.
Enos, 311.
Ephesian Diana, 30, 188, 195.
Dabar, the Bee, the Word, 194-5-6. Epidaurian Serpent, 236-7, 280.
Daedalus, 39. Era, Christian, changed, 105.
Dagon, 114; his Mitre, 215, 241-3, Eros, 40.
252-5 the Merman, 264, 270, 319.
; Er- Rahman, the all-merciful one, 15.
Damasus, Pope, 248-50, 251-2. Etrurians, from Lydia, 239-40.
Danae, 39. Europa, 85.
Darius, Hystaspes, Modem Parseeism
Eurydice, 124.
dates from his time, 59.
Dayyad, the Hunter, 34.
Fan, the Mystic, 139.
Demeter, 310. Fauna = Fatua and Oma, 311.
Delos, Hymn to, 152.
Sacred Stone of, 301. Feronia, goddess of liberty, 52, 117-9.
Delphi, 9, 117 ;
Hestia- Vesta, 77, 306. tomb of, 154, 174 ; Zagreus, 178, 191,
Heva, Living One," 306.
"the 234 Tonans, 262.
;
Horns, symbol, 32-7, 54, 65. Khubele, "the binder with cords, -
Horus, 20, 25, 43, 60, 68-9, 140, 146, Cybele and Juno, 303-6.
151, 188, 190, 204, 299, 307. Khubeli, Adam, "the cords of a man,"
Hoshang, 45. 303.
Hostilius Tullus, imitating Numa, per King, the Wilful, 253.
ishes, 260. Kissos, Kissaioi, Kissioi, 49.
Hue = Eve and Semele, 278. Knox, John, on the Wafer-god, 160 ;
his
Hypsistos, the Most High, 295. account of Sanct Geyle, 171.
Koes, 10.
Icarus, 39. Ivronos = Saturn and Nimrod, 31 5,
Ichor, 71. 42-3, 97-8, 153, 193, 216, 231, 255,
Ichthys, applied to Christ, 252 son of 264, 294-5, 315.
;
Cybele and Khea, 273, 310. Lakshini, mother of the universe, 85, 158,
Ignigena, 59, 73, 97. 266.
I.H.S., original meaning of, 164. Loadice, daughter of Agapenor, 182.
Immaculate Virgin, 265-8. Lateinos, "the Hidden On = Saturn, e,"
of the Moon, 310. Noah, 54, 1347, 183, 244 ; Worship of,
Melkart = Quirinus, 296. 245, 311.
Melkat, Ashemin, queen of heaven, 264. Norns, Scandinavian goddesses, 94.
Memnon, 22 derivation of, 317.
;
Numa Pompilius, forbids image worship,
Mene, 95 ; Merii, the Lord Moon, 94-5. 239-40, 256-9.
Menes - Mizraim, 2924. Nur-Cakes, 94-5.
Mercury, 25-6, 87, 150, 168.
Merodach, 28, 44. Oannes, 114, 121, 124, 136, 164 = He- ;
Narcissus, 22 ; meaning and derivation of, Pelops, the Shoulder Blade of, 177.
156. Pentheus, torn in pieces, 55.
Nebo, 26, 34, 256, 260. Persea, Fruit of, 188.
NebrodrzNimrod, 47, 56, 240. Perseus, 39.
INDEX. 329
238, 401 ;
Lord of
Quirinus, Mars = Nimrod, 297. St. Francis of Assisi and of Macerata, 258.
St. Jean, fires of Monsieur, 115.
Rabdos Tripetelos, three-leaved rod, 186. St. Lawrence O Toole, 181.
Ramesses, meaning of, 25. St. Michael, scales of, 145-9, 150.
Raymi, Feast of, 118, 223. St. Mithra, 123.
Rekh, the Holy Spirit," 140. St. Paul, 181.
"
St. Vermine,
|
Thalatth, the primeval goddess of Baby Vestal Virgins, 223, 236-8, 250.
lon, and who she was, 306. Virgo, 76.
Thainus, King of Egypt, 56 = Nimrod, 227. Vishnu, 18, 36, 60, 70, 135, 158-9, 190,
Themis, goddess of justice, 309. 222, 266.
Theseus, 52. Volar, Evil Spirits, 58.
Theurgists, 258. Vulcan = Nimrod, 27-8, 70, 157, 229, 233.
Thor, tiOrzThouros, meaning of, 312.
Thot, 56, 103, 146, 227. Wafer, the, why round, 160.
Thothmes, meaning of, 25.
Wings, symbol, 3740.
Thuone. Thuoneus, "
Wut-yune, 57.
Satan, 27tf-7, 295.
Titans, 190, 230, 277.
Tithonus, meaning and derivation of, 31 7. Yezidis, 104, 119, 191.
Tonsure, 220. |
Yule-log, 97-8.
Triangle, the, a symbol, 17.
Tusks of boar, symbolical, 65, 99. i
Zaradas, the only seed," 59.
"
Zarathustra, 59.
Typhon, 73, 142-3-4, 276. ;
Z emir-amit, 79.
Tyrannus, etymology of, 33. Zen, or Zan 8un, 297.
1
Zera-hosha, 76.
Ulysses, 87. ;
Zernebogus, 33-4.
Urania, Venus, 80, 143, 221. Zero, the seed," and a circle," 18, 50-9,
" "
"The volume before us 011 the subject of Romanism is able and interest
ing. The author is a full man. His scholarship is ripe, and his histori
cal research deep and accurate. Classical and Oriental literature and the
records of antiquity, he employs with the skill and readiness of a master,
to make good his positions. Rarely, indeed, within the same space, have
we seen such a rich variety of learned and curious information arrayed in
evidence against the assumptions, usages, doctrines, and pretended apostoli
cal origin of Romanism. The tinsel garments of pretended sanctity he
strips off, and the charm of sacred association he scatters to the winds."
Evangelical Magazine.
"
Mr. Hislop s work entitles him to a place in the first ranks of those
who have been honoured, by their discoveries, to throw intensely interest
ing light, in different ways, on some of the darkest pages of the world s
These papers (on the Moral Identity of Babylon and Rome) produced
"
at the time a powerful impression and their learned author has since
:
prosecuted his inquiries more fully, and in a most interesting volume, just
published, has set forth in ample detail the whole proofs and illustrations
of his interesting and striking theory. ... It gives one a strange and vivid
idea of the inspiration of Scripture to read these remarkable pages."
Stanyan Bigg, in
Devonshire Protestant.
[SEE OVER.
OPINIONS OF THE PRESS Continued.
"
Mr. Hislop has collected a large mass of materials (many of them new
;ind very striking) in proof of his position and has arranged and stated
;
his argument with a calmness, precision, and force, that greatly impress the
reader." Christian Treasury.
"
is of no common erudition.
This work We have not for a con . . .
siderable timemet with any volume that presents the subjects in lights so
striking and original. The author has performed a noble service to our
common Protestantism, and is entitled to the thanks of every section of
the true Church." Dr. Campbell, in British Standard.
"
We venture to say, no reader will rise from its perusal without a loftier
reverence for God s
and a deeper conviction of the indelible brand
truth,
that truth has stamped upon the Papal system. There is a touch of the
sublime in finding the predictions of the seer of Patmos unloosed from their
enigmatic mystery, when we bring together the early idolatrous worship of
Chaldea, arid the latest dogmas of Rome. The simple narrative of the two
developments completes the circle a luminous ring, which lights up the
dark page of prophecy until it reads like a history written but yesterday."
Northern Warder.
"
The vast amount of learning, and the philological research and com
parison so fascinating to many minds, coupled with the striking analogies
every now and then made apparent, render the book as attractive as a
novel, and the reader is drawn on irresistibly to the end. Its pages form a
mine of historical wealth, or rather a depository of ores and fossils dug
from a vast number of sources, and labelled, classified, and arranged until,
like specimens from the various strata of the earth s crust similarly laid out
in amuseum, and pieced together by the hands of a master in geology, the
oneness of the source whence sprang the many systems of religion of
ancient times is made manifest, as are the corruptions which in later ages
have crept into the Church of the primitive Christians." Arbroath Guide.
"
Romanism has not appeared since the days of Luther. Our author . . .